o ... •\ jC? TWO YEARS AGO CHARf.FS KINGSIKV BOUGHT WITH THE INCOME FROM THE SAGE ENDOWMENT FUND THE GIFT OF 1891 A-'M-o.-'b.iBh i*\z.{si.. Cornell University Library on.,J ^924 031 187 572 Cornell University Library The original of tliis book is in tine Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924031187572 TWO YEARS AGO THE REV. CHARLES KINGSLEY. Axnaon of "ahtas lei«b^' £tc. ^tb forlt: MACMILLAN AND CO. 1890. ' CONTENTS. OnHODTICTDET » CHAPTEK I. POEIRT AND PROaS, .1 CHAPTER II. STILL LIFE, , . 25 CHAPTER III. ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE, . . , 42 CHAPTER IV. FLOTSOM, JBTSOM, AND LAGEND, . . 56 CHAPTER V. niE WAT TO WIN THEM, . . . 81 CHAPTER VI. AN OLD FOB WITH A NEW FACE, ... 94 CHAPTER VII. LA CORDIFIAMMA, " .100 CHAPTER VIII. TAKING ROOT, . , 116 CHAPTER IX. "AM I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTER T " 133 CHAPTER X. THE RECOGNITION, . 148 CHAPTER XI. fllE FIRST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBT, 183 CHAPTER XII. A PEER IN TROUBLE, . . 200 CHAPTER XIII. ti'HOMMB INCOMPRIS . 209 (III) IV CONTENTS. CHAPTER XIV. PiOi THE DOCTOR AT BAT , .. 222 CHAPTER XV. THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH .262 CHAPTER XVI. COME AT LAST, 800 CHAPTER XVII. baalzebxjb's banquet . 820 CHAPTER XVIII. IHE BLACK HOUND, 889 CHAPTER XIX. beddoelert < . 863 CHAPTER XX. BOTH SIDES OE THE MOON AT ONCE, 879 CHAPTER XXI. nature's MELODRAMA . . 403 CHAPTER XXII. FOND, TET NOT FOOLISH . . 422 CHAPTER XXIII. THE BROAD STONE OP HONOR, . . 430 CHAPTER XXIV. THE THIRTIETH OY SEPTEMBER . 441 CHAPTER XXV. THE BANKER AND HIS DAUGHTER, . . 46-S CHAPTER XXVI. TOO LATE 498 CHAPTER XXVII. A RECENT EXPLOSION IN AN ANCIENT CRATER, , • . . 618 CHAPTER XXVIII. I.AST CHRISTMAS ETE, , . , , 628 TWO YEAES AGO INTRODUCTORY. It may seem a somewhat Irish method of begiuring xLe Btory of " Two Years Ago " by a scene which happened but a month since. And yet, will not the story be on thai very account a better type of many a man's own expe- riences ? How few of us had learnt the meaning of " Two Years Ago," until this late quiet autumn time ; and till Christmas, too, with its gaps in the old ring of friendly faces, never to be filled up again on earth, began to teach us somewhat of its lesson. Two years ago, while pestilence was hovering over us and ours, — while the battle-roar was ringing in our ears,^ — who had time to think, to ask what all that meant ; to seek for the deep lesson which we knew must lie beneath ? Two years ago was the time for work ; for men to do with all their might whatsoever their hands found to do. But now, the storm has lulled once more ; the air has cleared a while, and we can talk calmly over all the wonders of that sudden, strange, and sad " Two Years Ago." So telt, at least, two friends who went down, just one week before Christmas-day, to Whitbury, in Berkshire. Two years ago had come, to one of them, as to thousands more, the crisis of his life ; and he was talking of it with his companion ; and was on his way, too, to learn more of that story, which this book contains, and in which he had borne his part. They were both of them men who would, at first sight, interest a stranger. The shorter of the two he might have seen before — at picture-sales. Royal Academy meetings, dinner-parties, evening parties, anywhere and everywhere in town ; for Claude Mellot is a general favorite, and a gen- eral guest. A* (V) VI INTRODUCTOET. He is a tiny, delicate-featured man, with a look of half lazy enthusiasm about his beautiful face, which reminds you much of Shelley's portrait ; only he has what Shelley had not, clustering auburn curls, and a rich, brown beard, soft as silk. Tou set him down at once as a man of delicate susceptibility, sweetness, thoughtfulness ; probably (as he actually is) an artist. His companion is a man of statelier stamp, tall, dark, and handsome, with a very large forehead. If the face has a fault, it is that the mouth is too small ; that, and the expres- sion of face, too, and the tone of voice, seem to indicate over-refinement, possibly a too aristocratic exclusiveness. He is dressed like a very fine gentleman indeed, and looksi and talks like one. Aristocrat, however, in the common sense of the word, he is not ; for he is a native of the Model Republic, and sleeping-partner in a great New York merchant firm. He is chatting away to Claude Mellot, the artist, about Fremont's election ; and, on that point, seems to be earnest enough, though patient and moderate. " My dear Claude, our loss is gain. The delay of the next four years was really necessary, that we might consol- idate our party. And I leave you to judge, if it have grown to its present size in but a few months, what dimensions it will have attained before the next election. We require the delay, too, to discover who are our really best men, — not merely as orators, but as workers ; and you English ought to know, better than any nation, that the latter class of men are those whom the world most needs ; that, though Aaron may be an altogether inspired preacher, yet it is only slow- tongued, practical Moses, whose spokesman he is, who can deliver Israel from their taskmasters. Beside, my dear fel- low, we really want the next four years — ' tell it not in Gath ' — to look about us, and see what is to be done Your wisest Englishmen justly complain of us, that our ' platform ' is as yet a merely negative one ; that we define what the South shall not do, but not what the North shall. Ere four years be over, we will have a ' positive platform,' at which you shall have no cause to grumble." " I still think with Marie, that your 'positive platform' is already made for you, plain as the sun in heaven, as the lightnings of Sinai. Free those slaves at once and utterly 1 " " Impatient idealist ! By what means ? By law, or by force ? Leave us to draw a cordon sanitaire round the tainted States, and leave the system to die a natural death, INTRODUCTORY. VII SB it rapidly will if it be prevented from enlarging its field. Don't fancy that a dream of mine. None know it bettei than the Southerners themselves. What makes them ready just now to risk honor, justice, even the common law of nations and humanity, in the struggle for new slave terri tory ? What but the consciousness, that, without virgin soil, which will yield rapid and enormous profit to slave- labor, they and their institution must be ruined ? " " The more reason for accelerating so desirable a con- summation, by freeing the slaves at once." " Humph 1 " said Stangrave, with a smile. " Who so cruel at times as your too-benevolent philanthropist? Did you ever count the meaning of those words ? Disruption of the Union, an invasion of the South by the North ; and an internecine war, aggravated by the horrors of a general rising of the slaves, and such scenes as Hayti beheld sixty years ago. If you have ever read them, you will pause ere you determine to repeat them on a vaster scale." " It is dreadful, Heaven knows, even in thought I But, Stangrave, can any moderation on your part ward it off? Where there is crime, there is vengeance ; and without shedding of blood is no remission of sin." " God knows ! It may be true ; but God forbid that I should ever do aught to hasten what may come I 0, Claude, do you fancy that I, of all men, do not feel at moments the thirst for brute vengeance ? " Claude was silent. "Judge for yourself, you who know all — what man among us Northerners can feel, as I do, what those hapless men may have deserved ? I who have day and night before me the brand of their cruelty, filling my heart with fire ? 1 need all my strength, all my reason, at times, to say to myself, as I say to others, ' Are not these slaveholders men of like passions with yourself? What have they done which you would not have done in their place ? ' I have never read that Key to Uncle Tom's Cabin. I will not even read this Dred, admirable as I believe it to be." "Why should you?" said Claude. "Have you not a key to Uncle Tom's Cabin, more pathetic than any word of man's or woman's ? " " But I do not mean that 1 I will not read them, because I have the key to them in my own heart, Claude ; because conscience has taught me to feel for the Southerner as a brother, who is but what I might have been ; and to sigh over his misdirected courage and energy, not with hatred, Vra INTRODUCTORY. not with contempt ; but with pity, all the more intense tne more he scorns that pity ; to long, not merely for the slaves' sake, but for the masters' sake, to see them — the once chivalrous gentlemen of the South — delivered from the meshes of a net which they did not spread for themselves, but which was round their feet, and round their fathers', from the day that they were born. You ask me to destroy these men. I long to save them from their certain doom 1 " " You are right, and a better Christian than I am, I believe. (Certainly they do need pity, if any sinners do ; for slavery seems to be — to judge from Mr. Brooks's triumph — a greater moral curse, and a heavier degrada- tion, to the slaveholder himself, than it can ever be to the slave." " Then I would free them from that curse, that degrada- tion. If the negro asks, ' Am I not a man and a brother ? ' have they no right to ask it also ? Shall I, pretending to love my country, venture on any rash step which may shut out the whole Southern white population from their share in my country's future glory ? No ; have but patience with us, you comfortable liberals of the old world, who find free- dom ready-made to your hands, and we will pay you all. Remember, we are but children yet ; our sins are the sins of youth, — greediness, intemperance, petulance, self-con- ceit. When we are purged from our youthful sins, England will not be ashamed of her child." " Ashamed of you ? I often wish I could make Americans understand the feeling of England to you — the honest pride, as of a mother who has brought into the world the biggest baby that ever this earth beheld, and is rather proud of its stamping about and beating her in its pretty pets. Only the old lady does get a little cross, when she hears you talk of the wrongs which you have endured from her, and teaching your children to hate us as their ancient oppressors, on the ground of a foolish war, of which every Englishman is utterly ashamed, and in the result of which he glories really as much as you do." " Don't talk of ' you,' Claude I You know well what I think on that point. Never did one nation make the amende honorable to another more fully and nobly than you have to us ; and those who try to keep up the quarrel are — I won't say what. But the truth is, Claude, we have had no real sorrows ; and, therefoi'e, we can afford to play with imaginary ones. God grant that we may not ha^a INTEODUCTORY. IX o\iir real ones — that we may not have to drink of the cup of which our great mother drank two years ago 1 " " It was a wholesome bitter for us ; and it may be so for you likewise ; but we will have no sad forebodings on the eve of the blessed Christmas tide. He lives, He loves, He reigns ; and all is well, for we are His, and He is ours." " Ah," said Stangrave, " when Emerson sneered at you English for believing your Old Testament, he little thought that that was the lesson which it had taught you ; and that that same lesson was the root of all your greatness. That that belief in God's being, in some mysterious way, the living King of England and of Christendom, has been the very idea which has kept you in peace and safety, now for many a hundred years, moving slowly on from good to bet- ter, not without many backslidings and many shortcomings, but still finding out, quickly enough, when you were on the wrong road ; and not ashamed to retrace your steps, and to reform,, as brave strong men should dare to do ; a people who have been for many an age in the vanguard of all the nations, and the champions of sure and solid progress throughout the world ; because what is new among you is not patched artificially on to the old, but grows organically out of it, with a growth like that of your own English oak, whose every new-year's leaf-crop is fed by roots which bur- row deep in many a buried generation, and the rich soil of full a thousand years." " Stay 1 " said the little artist. " We are quite conceited enough already, without your eloquent adulation, sir 1 But there is a truth in your words. There is a better spirit roused among us ; and that not merely of two years ago. I knew this part of the country well in ISie-T-S, and ^ince then, I can bear witness, a spirit of self-reform has been awakened round here, in many a heart which I thought once utterly frivolous. I find, in every circle of every class, men and women asking to be taught their duty, that they may go and do it ; I find everywhere schools, libraries, and mechanics' institutes springing up ; and rich and poor meet- ing together more and more in the faith that God has made them all. As for the outward and material improvements — you know, as well as I, that since free trade and emigration the laborers confess themselves better off than they have been for fifty years ; and though you will not see in the chalk counties that rapid and enormous agi-icultural im- provement which you will in Lincolnshire, Yorkshire, or the Lothians, yet you shall see enough to-day to settle for yon X INTRODUCTORY. the question whether we old country folk are in a state of decadence and decay. Par exemple — " And Claude pointed to the clean large fields, with theii neat, close-clipt hedge-rows, among which here and there stood cottages, more than three fourths of them new. " Those well-drained fallow fields, ten years ago, were poor clay pastures, fetlock deep in mire six months in the year, and accursed in the eyes of my poor dear old friend, Squire Lavington ; because they were so full of old moles'- nests, that they threw all horses down. I am no farmer; but they seem surely to be somewhat altered since then." As he spoke, they turned ofi' the main line of the rolling clays toward the foot of the chalk hills, and began to brush through short cuttings of blue gault and " green sand," so called by geologists, because its usual colors are bright brown, snow white, and crimson. Soon they get glimpses of broad silver Whit, as she slides, with divided streams, through bright water-meadows, and stately groves of poplar, and abele, and pine ; while, far aloft upon the left, the downs rise steep, crowned with black fir spinnies, and dotted with dark box and juniper. Soon they pass old Whitford Priory, with its numberless gables, nestling amid mighty elms, and the Nunpool flash ing and roaring as of old, and the broad shallow below sparkling and laughing in the low but bright December sun. " So slides on the noble river, forever changing, and yet forever the same — always fulfilling its errand, which yet is never fulfilled," said Stangrave, — he was given to half- mystic utterances, and hankerings after Pagan mythology, learnt in the days when he worshipped Emerson, and tried (but unsuccessfully) to worship Margaret Puller Ossoli. — " Those old Greeks had a deep insight into nature, when they gave to each river not merely a name, but a semi- human personality, a river-god of its own. It may be but a collection of ever-changing atoms of water ; — what is your body but a similar collection of atoms, decaying and renew- ing every moment ? Yet you are a person ; and is not the river, too, a person — a live thing ? It has an individual countenance which you love, which you would recognize again, meet it where you will ; it marks the whole land- scape ; it determines, probably, the geography and the society of a whole district. It draws you, too, to itself by an indefinable mesmeric attraction. If you stop in a strange INTEODUCTOET. Xj place, the first instinct of your idle half-houi is to lounge bj the river. It is a person to you ; you call it — Scotchmen do, at least — she, and not it. How do you know that you are not philosophically correct, and that the river has a spirit as well as you ? " " Humph 1 " said Claude, who talks mysticism himself by the hour, but snubs it in every one else. " It has trout, at least ; and they stand, I suppose, for its soul, as the raisina did for those of Jean Paul's gingerbread bride and bride- groom and peradventure baby." " 0, you materialist English I sporting-mad all of you, from the duke who shooteth stags to the clod who poacheth rabbits 1 " " And who, therefore, can fight Russians at Inkermann, duke and clod alike, and side by side ; never better (says the chronicler of old) than in their first battle. I can neither fight nor fish, and, on the whole, agree with you ; but I think it proper to be as English as I can in the pres- ence of an American." A whistle — a creak — a jar ; and they stop at the little Whitford station, where a cicerone for the vale, far better than Claude was, made his appearance, in the person of Mark Armsworth, banker, railway director, and de faolo king of Whitbury town, long since elected by universal suf- frage (his own vote included) as permanent locum tenens of her gracious majesty. He hails Claude cheerfully from the platform, as he wad- dles about, with a face as of the rising sun, radiant with good fun, good humor, good deeds, good news, and good living. His coat was scarlet once, but purple now. His leathers and boots were doubtless clean this morning, but are now afflicted with elephantiasis, being three inches deep in solid mud, which his old groom is scraping off as fast as he can. His cap is duntled in ; his back bears fresh stains of peat ; a gentle rain distils from the few angles of his person, and oedews the platform ; for Mark Armsworth has " been in Whit " to-day. All porters and guards touch their hats to him ; the sta- tion-master rushes up and down frartically, shouting, " Where are those horse-boxes ? Now Ihen, look alive ! " for Mark is chairman of the line, and everybody's friend, beside ; and as he stands there being sci aped, he finds time to inquire after every one of the officials by turn, and aftej their wives, children and sweethearts beside. £11 INTRODUCTORY. " What a fine specimen of your English squire 1 " saya Stangrave. " He is no squire ; he is the Whitbury banker, of whom I told you." " Armsworth? " said Stangrave, looking at the old man with interest. "Mark Armsworth himself. He is acting ais squire, though, now ; for he has hunted the Whitford P'riors ever since poor old Lavington's death." " Now, then — those horse-boxes 1 " . . . " Very sorry, sir ; I telegraphed up, but we could get but one down." "Put the horses into that, then; and there's an empty carriage I Jack, put the hounds into it, and they shall all go second class, as sure as I 'm chairman I " The grinning porters hand the strange passengers in, while Mark counts the couples with his whip-point, — " Eavager — Roysterer ; Melody — Gay-lass ; — all right. Why, where 's that old thief of a Goodman ? " " Went over a gate as soon as he saw the couples ; and wouldn't come in at any price, sir," says the huntsman. " Gone home by himself, I expect." " Goodman 1 Goodman I boy 1 " And forthwith out of the station-room slips the noble old hound, gray-nosed, gray- eyebrowed, who has hidden, for purposes of his own, till he sees all the rest safe locked in. Up he goes to Mark, and begins wriggling against his knees, and looking up as only dogs can. " 0, want to go first class with me, eh ? Jump in, then I " And in jumps the hound, and Mark struggles after him. " Hillo, sir I Come out ! Here are your betters here before you," as he sees Stangrave and a fat old lady in the oppo- site comer. " 0, no ; let the dog stay 1 " says Stangrave " I shall wet you, sir, I 'm afraid." " 0, no." And Mark settles himself, pufiSng, with the hound's head on his knees, and begins talking fast and loud. "Well, Mr. Mellot, you're a stranger here. Haven't seen you since poor Miss Honor died. Ah, sweet angel she was ! Thought my Mary would never get over it, 3he 's just such another, though I say it, barring the jeauty. Goodman, boy 1 You recollect old Goodman, soe f Galloper, that the old squire gave our old squire ? " Claude, of course, knows — as all do who know those INTEODUCTORT. Xin parts — who the old squire is ; long may he live, patriarch of the chase ! The genealogy he does not. " Ah, well ! Miss Honor took to the pup, and used to walk him out ; and a prince of a hound he is ; so now he 'a old we let him have his own way, for her sake ; and no- body '11 ever bully you, will they, Goodman, my boy ? " " I want to introduce you to a friend of mine." " Proud to know any friend of yours, sir." ' ' Mr. Stangrave, Mr. Armsworth. Mr. Stangrave is an American gentleman, who is anxious to see Whitbury and the neighborhood." " Well, I shall be happy to show it him, then ; can't have a better guide, though I say it— know everything by this time, and everybody, man, woman, and child, as I hope Mr. Stangrave '11 find when he gets to know old Mark." "You must not speak of getting to know you, my dear sir ; I know you intimately already, I assure you ; and, more, am under very deep obligations to you, which I regret to say I can only repay by thanks." " Obligation to me, my dear sir ? " " Indeed I am ; I will tell you all when we are alone." And Stangrave glanced at the fat old woman, who seemed to be listening intently. " 0, never mind her," says Armsworth ; " deaf as a post ; very good woman, but so deaf; ought to speak to her, though " — and, reaching across, to the infinite amusement of his companions, he roared in the fat woman's face, with a voice as of a speaking-trumpet, " Glad to see you, Mrs. Grove ! Got those dividends ready for you next time you come into town." " Yah I " screamed the hapless woman, who (as the rest saw) heard perfectly well. " What do you mean, frighten- ing a lady in that way ? Deaf, indeed 1 " " Why," roared Mark again, " an't you Mrs. Grove, of Drytown Dirty water ? " "No, nor no acquaintance! What business is it of your'n, sir, to go hollering in ladies' faces at your age ? " " Well r but I '11 swear, if you an't her, you 're somebody else. I know you as well as the town clock." " Me ? if you must know, sir, I 'm Mrs. Pettigrew's mother, the linendraper's establishment, sir ; a-going down for Christmas, sir ! " " Humph I " says Mark; "you see — was sure I knew ber — know everybody here. As I said, if she was n'1 XrV INTRODUCTORY. Mrs. Grove, she was somebody else. Ever in tliese parti befons ? " " Never ; but I have heard a good deal of them ; and very much charmed with them 1 am. I have seldom seen a more distinctive specimen of English scenery." " And how you are improving round here 1 " said Claude, who knew Mark's weak points, and wanted to draw him out. "Your homesteads seem all new ; three fields have been thi-own into one, I fancy, over half the farms." Mark broke out at once on his favorite topic. " I believe you I 1 'm making the mare go here in Whitford ; without the money, too, sometimes. I 'm steward now, bailiff — ha! ha I these four years past — to Mrs. Lavington's Irish husband ; wanted him to have a regular agent, a canny Scot, or Yorkshireman. Faith ! the poor man could n't afford it, and so fell back on old Mark. Paddy loves a job, you know. So I 've the votes and the fishing, and send him his rents, and manage all the rest pretty much my own way." When the name of Lavington was mentioned, Mark observed Stangrave start ; and an expression passed ove? his face difficult to be defined — it seemed to Mark mingled pride and shame. He turned to Claude, and said, in a low voice, but loud enough for Mark to hear, — "Lavington? Is this their country also? As I am going to visit the graves of my ancestors, I, I suppose, ought to visit those of hers." Mark caught the words which he was not intended to. " Eh ? Sii', do you belong to these parts ? " " My family, I believe, lived in the neighborhood of Whitbury, at a place called Stangrave-end." " To be sure I Old farm-house now ; fine old oak carving in it, though ; fine old family it must have been ; church full of their monuments. Hum, — ha 1 Well I that 's pleasant, now I I 've often heard there were good old families away there in New England ; never thought there were Whitbui-y people among them. Hum — well I the world's not so big as people think, after all. And you spoke of the Laying- tons ? They are great folks here — or were" — He wag ^oing to rattle on ; but he saw a pained expression on both the travellers' faces, and Stangrave stopped him, somewhat ■^Tyly, — " I know nothing of them, I assure you, or they of me, Your country here is certainly charming, and shows littl* INTRODUriOET. X\ of those signs of decay which some people in America impute to it." " Decay I " Mark went off at score. " Decay be hanged .' There 's life in the old dog, yet, sir ! and dead pigs arc looking up, since free trade and emigration. Cheap bread and high wages, now ; and, instead of lands going out of cultivation, as they threatened — bosh I there 's a greater breadth down in wheat in the vale now than there ever was , and look at the roots. Farmers must farm now, or sink ; and, by George I they are farming, like sensible fellows ; and a fig for that old turnip ghost of Protection 1 There was a fellow came down from the Carlton, — you know what that is ? " Stangrave bowed, and smiled assent. " From the Carlton, sir, two years since, and tried it on, till he fell in with old Mark. I told him a thing or two ; among the rest, told him to his face that he was a liar ; for he wanted to make farmers believe they were ruined, when he knew they were not ; and that he 'd get 'em back Protec- tion, when he knew that he could n't, and, what 's more, did n't mean to. So he cut up rough, and wanted to call me out." " Did you go ? " asked Stangrave, who was fast becom- ing amused with his man. " I told him that that was n't my line, unless he 'd try Eley's greens at forty yards, and then I was his man ; but if he laid a finger on me, I 'd give him as sound a horsewhip- ping, old as I am, as ever man had in his life. And so I would." And Mark looked complacently at his own broad shoulders. " And, since then, my lord and I have had it all our own way, and Minchampstead & Co. is the only firm in the vale." " What is become of a Lord Vieuxbois, who used to live somewhere hereabouts ? I used to meet him at Rome." " Rome ? " said Mark, solemnly. " Yes ; he was too fond of Rome, a while back ; can't see what people want, running into foreign parts to look at those poor idolaters, and their Punch and Judy plays. Pray for 'em, and keep clear of them, is the best rule; — but he has married my lord's youngest daughter, and three pretty children he has — ducks of children. Always comes to see me in my shop, when he drives into town. 0, he 's doing pretty well ! One of these new between-the-two-stools, Peelites they call them — hope they'll be as good as the name. ITowever. he 's a free-trader, because he can't help it. So we have hie votes ; and, as to his conservatism, let him conserve KVl INTEODUCTOET. nips and haws, if he chooses, like a 'pothecary. After all, why pull down anything before it 's tumbling on youi head ? By the by, sir, as you 're a man of money, there 's that Stangrave-end farm in the maiket now. Pretty little investment, — I'd see that you got it cheap ; and my lord would n't bid against you, of course, as you 're a liberal — all Americans are, I suppose. And so you 'd oblige us, as well as yourself, for it would give us another vote for the county." " Upon my word, you tempt me ; but I do not think that this is just the moment for an American to desert his own country, and settle in England. I should not be here now, had I not this autumn done all I could for America in Amer- ica, and so crossed the sea to serve her, if possible, in Eng- land." "Well, perhaps not; especially if you are a Fremonter." "I am, I assure you." " Thought as much, by your looks. Don't see what else an honest man can be just now." Stangrave laughed. " 1 hope every one thinks so in Eng- land." "Trust us for that, sir! We know a man when we see him here ; I hope they 'II do the same across the water." There was a silence for a minute or two' ; and then Mark began again. "Look I — there's a farm; that's my lord's. I should like to show you the short-horns there, sir I — all my Lord Ducie's and Sir Edward Knightley's stock : bought a bull- calf of him the other day myself for a cool hundred, old fool that I am. Never mind, spreads the breed. And here are mills — four pair of new stones. Old Whit don't know her- self again. I5ut I dare say they look small enough to you, sir, after your American water-power." " What of that ? It is just as honorable in you to make the most of a small river, as in us to make the most of a large one." " You speak like a book, sir. By the by, if you think of taking home a calf or two, to improve your New England breed — there are a good many gone across the sea in the last few years — I think we could find you three or foui beauties, and not so very dear, considering the blood." " Thanks ; but I really am no farmer." "Well — no offence, I hope ; but I am like your Yankees in one thing, you see; — always have an eye to a bit of business. If I did n't I should n't be here now." INTEODUCTORT. XTIl " How veiy tasteful I — our own American shrubs I What a pity that they are not in flower I What is this," asked Stangrave, — " one of your noblemen's parks ? " And they began to run through the cutting in Minchamp- stead Park, where the owner has concealed the banks of the rail, for nearly half a mile, in a thicket of azaleas, rhododen- drons, and clambering roses. " Ah 1 — is n't it pretty? His lordship let us have the land for a song ; only bargained that we should keep low, not to spoil his view ; and so we did ; and he 's planted our cutting for us. I call that a present to the county, and a very pretty one too I Ah, give me these new brooms that sweep clean I " " Your old brooms, like Lord Vieuxbois, were new brooms once, and swept well enough five hundred years ago," said Stangrave, who had that iilial reverence for English antiquity which sits so gracefully upon many highly-educated and far- sighted Americans. " Worn to the stumps now, too many of them, sir ; and want new hething, as our broom-squires would say ; and I doubt whether most of them are worth the cost of a fresh bind. Not that I can say that of the young lord. He 's foremost in all that 's good, if he had but money ; and when he has n't, he gives brains. Gave a lecture, in our institute at Whitford, last winter, on the four great Poets. Shot over my head a little, and other people's too ; but my Mary — my daughter, sir, thought it beautiful ; and there 's noth- ing that she don't know." "It is very hopeful to see your aristocracy joining in the general movement, and bringing their taste and knowledge to bear on the lower classes." " Yes, sir 1 We 're going all right now, in the old coun- try. Only have to steer straight, and not put on too much steam. But give me the new-comers, after all. They may be close men of business ; — how else could one live ? But when it comes to giving, I'll back them against the old ones for generosity, or taste either. They 've their proper pride, when they get hold of the land ; and they show it, and quite right they. You must see my little place, too. It 's not in such bad order, though I say it, and am but a country banker ; but I '11 back my flowers against half the squires round — my Mary's, that is — and my fruit, too. i See, there ! There 's my lord's new schools, and his model | cottages, with more comforts in them, saving the size, than my father's house had ; and there 's his barrack, as he calls B* XVm INTRODUCTORY. It, for the unmarried men — reading-room, and dining-room in common ; and a library of books, and a sleeping-room fol each." "It seems strange to complain of prosperity," said Stan grave ; "but I sometimes regret that in America there is sc little room for the very highest virtues ; all are so well off, that one never needs to give ; and what a man does here for others they do for themselves." " So much the better for them. There are other ways of being generous, besides putting your hand in your pocket, sir. By Jove 1 there '11 be room enough (if you '11 excuse me) for an American to do fine things, as long as those poor negro slaves " '"I know it; I know it," said Stangrave, in the tone of a man who had already made up his mind on a painful subject, and wished to hear no more of it. " You will excuse me ; but I am come here to learn what I can of England. Of my own country I know enough, I trust, to do my duty in it when I return." Mark was silent, seeing that he had touched a tendei place ; and pointed out one object of interest after another, as they ran through the flat park, past the great house with its Doric fagade, which the eighteenth century had raised above the quiet cell of the Minchampstead recluses. " It is very ugly," said Stangrave ; and truly. " Comfortable enough, though ; and, as somebody said, people live inside their houses, and not outside 'em. You should see the pictures there, though, while you 're in the country. I can show you one or two, too, I hope. Never grudge money for good pictures. The pleasantest furniture in the world, as long as you keep them ; and, if you 're tired of them, always fetch double their price." After Minchampstead, the rail leaves the sands and clays, and turns up between the chalk hills, along the barge river, which it has rendered useless, save as a supernumerary trout-stream ; and then along Whit now flowing clearer and clearer, as we approach its springs amid the lofty downs. On through more water-meadows, and rows of pollard willow, and peat pits crested with tall golden reeds, and still dykeSj — each in a summer floating flower-bed ; while Stangrave looks out of the window, his face lighting up with curi osity. " How perfectly English 1 At least, how perfectly un American ! It is just Tennyson's beautiful dream — INTRODUCTORY. XIX ' On cither side the rWer lie Long fields of barley and of rye. Which clothe the wold and meet the sky, And through the field the stream nins by, To many-towered Camelot.' " "Why, what is this?" as they stop again at a statioa where the board bears, in large letters, " Shalott." " Shalott ? Where are the ' Four gray walls, and four gray towers, which overlook a space of flowers ? " There, upon the little island, are the castle-ruins, now converted into a useful bone-mill. "And the lady? — is that she ? " It was only the miller's daughter, fresh from a boarding- school, gardening in a broad straw hat. " At least," said Claude, " she is tending far prettier flowers than ever the lady saw ; while the lady herself, instead of weaving and dreaming, is reading Miss Young's novels, and becoming all the wiser thereby, and teaching poor children in Hemmelford National School." " And where is her fairy knight," asked Stangrave, " whom one half hopes to see riding down from that grand old house wliich sulks there above among the beech-woods, as if frowning on all the change and civilization below ? " " You do old Sidricstone injustice. Vieuxbois descends from thence, now-a-days, to lecture at mechanics' institutes, instead of the fairy knight, toiling along in this blazing June weather, sweating in burning metal, like poor Perillus in his own bull." " Then the fairy knight is extinct in England ? '' asked Stangrave, smiling. " No man less ; only he (not Vieuxbois, but his younger brother) has found a wide-awake cooler than an iron kettle, and travels by rail when he is at home ; and when he was in the Crimea, rode a shaggy pony, and smoked cavendish all through the battle of Inkerman." " He showed himself the old Sir Lancelot there," said Stangrave. "He did. Wherefore the lady married him when the Guards came home ; and he will breed prize pigs, and sil at the board of guardians, and take in The Times, clothed, and in his right mind ; for the old Berserk spirit is gone oul XX INTEODUCTOKT. of him ; and he is become respectable, in a respectable age^ ani is nevertheless just as brave a fellow as ever." " And so all things are changed, except the river ; where Btill — ' Willows whiten, aspens quiver. Little breezes dash and shiver On the stream that runneth ever.' " "And," said Claude, smiling, "the descendants of me* diaeval trout snap at the descendants of medissval flies, spin- ning about upon just the same sized and colored wings on which their forefathers spun a thousand years ago : having become, in all that while, neither bigger nor wiser." "But is it not a grand thought," asked Stangrave, — ■ "the silence and permanence of nature amid the perpetual flux and noise of human life ? — a grand thought that one generation goeth, and another cometh, and the earth abideth forever ? " " At least, it is so much the worse for the poor old earth, if her doom is to stand still, while man improves and pro- gresses from age to age 1 " " May I ask one question, sir ? " said Stangrave, who saw that the conversation was puzzling their jolly com- panion. " Have you heard any news yet of Mr. Thur- aall?" Mark looked him fnll in the face. " Do you know him ? " " I did, in past years, most intimately." " Then you knew the finest fellow, sir, that ever walked mortal earth." " I have discovered that, sir, as well as you. I am under obligations to that man which my heart's blood will not repay. I shall make no secret of telling you what they are 8t a fit time." _ Mark held out his broad red hand, and grasped Stangrave's till the joints cracked ; his face grew as red as a turkey- cock's ; his eyes filled with tears. " His father must hear that 1 Hang it ; his father must hear that I And Grace too I " " Grace 1 " said Claude ; " and is she with you ? " " With the old man, the angel 1 tending him night and day." "And as beautiful as ever? " "Sir!" said Mark, solemnly, "when anyone's soul ia as beautiful as hers is, one never thinks about her face." INTaODtJCTOKT. XX] " Who is Grace ? " asked Stangrave. "A saint and a heroine?" said Clauile, " Tou shaft know all ; for you ought to know. But you'Jil^iEe no news of Tom ; and I have none either. I am lo'sing'ltll hope now." "I'm not, sir I " said Mark, fiercely. " Sir, that boy "s not dead ; he can't be. He has more lives than a cat, auj if you know anything of him, you ought to .know that." " I have good reason to know it, none more ; but — " "But, sir I But what? Harm come to him, sir? The Lord would n't harm him, for his father's sake ; and as foi the devil ! — I tell you, sir, if he tried to fly away with him, he 'd have to drop him before he 'd gone a mile I " And Mark began blowing his nose violently, and getting so red that he seemed on the point of going into a fit. " 'Tell you what it is, gentlemen," said he at last, " you come and stay with me, and see his father. It will comfort the old man — and — and comfort me too ; for I get down- hearted about him at times." " Strange attraction there was about that man," says Stangrave, soito voce, to Claude. " He was like a son to him — " " Now, gentlemen. Mr. Mellot, you don't hunt ? " " No, thank you," said Claude, smiling. " Mr. Stangrave does, I '11 warrant." " I have, at various times, both in England and in Vir- ginia." " Ah I Do they keep up the real sport there, eh ? Well, that's the best thing I've heard of them. Sir! my horses are yours ! A friend of that boy's, sir, is welcome to lame the whole lot, and I won't grumble. Three days a week, sir. Breakfast at eight, dinner at 5'30 — none of your late London hours for me, sir ; and after it, the best bottle of port, though I say it, short of my friend S 's, at Beading." " You must accept," whispered Claude, " or he will be angry." So Stangrave accepted ; and all the more readily because he wanted to hear from the good banker many things about the lost Tom Thurnall. ***** " Here we are," cries Mark. " Now, you must excuse me : see to yourselves. I see to the puppies. Dinner a1 5.30, mind J Come along, Goodman, boy." " Is this Whitbui-y ? " asked Stangrave. X.Xn INTRODUCTOET. It was Wljitbury, indeed Pleasant old town, whicl slopes down the hill-side to the old church, — just "re- stored," though, by Lords Minchampstead and Vieuxbois, not without Mark Armsworth's help, to its ancient beauty of gray flint and white clunch checker-work, and quaint wooden spire. Pleasant church-yard round it, where the dead lie looking up to the bright southern sun, among huge black yews, upon their knoll of white chalk above the an- cient stream. Pleasant white wooden bridge, with its row of urchins dropping flints upon the noses of elephantine trout, or fishing over the rail with crooked pins, while hap- less gudgeon come dangling upwards between stream and sky, with a look of sheepish surprise and shame, as of a school-boy caught stealing apples, in their foolish visages. Pleasant new National Schools at the bridge end, whither the urchins scamper at the sound of the two o'clock bell. Though it be an ugly pile enough of bright red brick, it is doing its work, as Whitbury folk know well by now. Pleas- ant, too, though still more ugly, those long red arms of new houses which Whitbury is stretching out along its fine turn- pikes, — especially up to the railway f«tation beyond the bridge, and to the smart new hotel, which hopes (but hopes in vain) to outrival the ancient " Angler's Eest." Away thither, and not to the Railway Hotel, they trundle in a fly, — leaving Mark Armsworth all but angry because they will not sleep, as well as breakfast, lunch, and dine, with him daily, — and settle in the good old inn, with its three white gables overhanging the pavement, and its long lattice- window buried deep beneath them, like — so Stangrave says — to a shrewd kindly eye under a bland white fore- head. No, good old inn ; not such shall be thy fate, as long aa trout are trout, and men have wit to catch them. For art thou not a sacred house ? Art thou not consecrate to the Whitbury brotherhood of anglers ? Is not the wainscot of that long, low parlor inscribed with many a famous name ? Are not its walls hung with many a famous countenance ? Has not its oak-ribbed ceiling rung, for now a hundred years, to the laughter of painters, sculptors, grave divines (unbending at least there), great lawyers, statesmen, wits even of Poote and Quin themselves ; while the sleek land- lord wiped the cobwebs ofi" another magnum of that grand old port, and took in all the wisdom with a quiet twinkle of his sleepy eye ? He rests now, good old man, am ong the yews beside his forefathers ; and on his tomb his INTllODUCTORY. XXUi lengthy epitapb, writ by himself; for Barker was a poei in his way. Some people hold the said epitaph to be irreverent, be- cause in a list of Barker's many blessings occurs the profane word " trout ; " but those trout, and the custom which they brought him, had made the old man's life comfortable, and enabled him to leave a competence for his children ; and tvhy should not a man honestly thank Heaven for that which he knows has done him good, even though it be but fish ? He is gone ; but the Whit is not, nor the VVhitbury club; nor will, while old Mark Armsworth is king in Whitbury, and sits every evening in the May-fly season at the table- head, retailing good stories of the great anglers of his youth, — names which you, reader, have heard manj' a time, — and who could do many things besides handling a blow-line. But though the club is not what it was fifty years ago, — before Norway and Scotland became easy of access, — yet it is still an important institution of the town, to the members whereof all good subjects touch their hats ; for does not the club bring into the town good money, and take out again only fish, which cost nothing in the breed- ing ? Did not the club present the Town-hall with a por- trait of the renowned fishing sculptor? and did it not (only stipulating that the school should be built beyond the bridge to avoid noise) give fifty pounds to the said schools but five years ago, in addition to Mark's own hundred ? But enough of this. Only may the Whitbury club, in recompense for my thus handing them down to immortal- ity, give me another day next year, as they gave me this ; and may the May-fly be strong on, and a south-we^t gale blowing I In the course of the next week, in many a conversation, the three men compared notes as to the events of two years ago ; and each supplied the other with new facts, which shall be duly set forth in this tale, saving and excepting, of course, the real reason why everybody did everything. Poi — as everybody knows who has watched life — the true springs of all human action are generally those which foole will not see, which wise men will not mention ; so that, in order to present a readable tragedy of Hamlet, you must always " omit the part of Hamlet," — and probably the ghost and the queen into the bargain. CHAPTER 1. POETRY AND PEOSE. Now, to tell my story — if not as it ought to be tcild, at least as I can tell it, — I must go back sixteen years, — to the days when Whitbury boasted of fortj' coaches per diem, instead of one railway, — and set forth how, in its southern suburb, there stood two pleasant houses side by side, with their gardens sloping down to the Whit, and parted from each other only by the high brick fruit-wall, through which there used to be a door of communication ; for the two occu- piers were fast friends. In one of these two houses, sixteen years ago, lived our friend Mark Armsworth, banker, soli- citor, land-agent, church- warden, guardianof the poor, justice of the' peace, — in a word, viceroy of Whitbury town, and far more potent therein than her gracious ma,jesty Queen Victoria. In the other lived Edward Thurnall, esquire, doc- tor of medicine, and consulting physician of all the country round. These two men were as brothers ; and had been as brothers for now twenty years, though no two men could be more different, save in the two common virtues which bound them to each other ; and that was, that they both were honest and kind-hearted men. What Mark's charac- ter was, and is, I have already shown, and enough of it, I hope, to make my readers like the good old banker : as for Doctor Thurnall, a purer or gentler soul never entered a Bick-room, with patient wisdom in his brain, and patient ten- derness in his heart. Beloved and trusted by rich and poor, he had made to himself a practice large enough to enable hiir to settle two sons well in his own profession ; the third and youngest was still in Whitbury. He was something of a geologist, too, and a botanist, and an antiquarian ; and Mark Armsworth, who knew, and knows still, nothing of science, looked up to the doctor as an inspired sage, quoted him, defended his opinion, right or wrong, and thrust him forward at public meetings, and in all places and seasons, much to the modest doctor's discomfiture. 1 (1) 2 POETRY AND PROSE. The good doctor was sitting in his study on the morning on which my tale begins ; having just finished his breakfast, and settled to his microscope in the bay-window opening oc the lawn. A beautiful October morning it was ; one of those ic which Dame Nature, healthily tired with the revelry of summer, is composing herself, with a quiet, satisfied smile, for her winter's sleep. Sheets of dappled cloud were slid- ing slowly from the west ; long bars of hazy blue hung ovei the southern chalk downs, which gleamed pearly gray beneath the low south-eastern sun. In the vale below, soft white flakes of mist still hung over the water-meadows, and barred the dark trunks of the huge elms and poplars, whose fast-yellowing leaves came showering down at every rustle of the western breeze, spotting the grass below. The river swirled along, glassy no more, but dingy gray with autumu rains and rotting leaves. All beyond the garden told of autumn ; bright and peaceful, even in decay ; but up the sunny slope of the garden itself, and to the very window- sill, summer still lingered. The beds of red verbena and geranium were still brilliant, though choked with fallen leaves of acacia and plane ; the canary plant, still untouched by frost, twined its delicate green leaves, and more delicate yellow blossoms, through the crimson lacework of the Vir- ginia creeper ; and the great yellow noisette swung its long canes across the window, filling all the air with fruity fra- grance. And the good doctor, lifting his eyes from his microscope, looked out upon it all with a quiet satisfaction, and, though his lips did not move, his eyes seemed to be thanking God for it all ; and thanking Him, too, perhaps, that he was still permitted to gaze upon that fair world outside. For, as he gazed, he started, as if with sudden pain, and passed his hand across his eyes, with something like a sigh, and then looked at the microscope no more, but sat, seemingly -absorbed in thought, while upon his delicate, toil-worn feat- ures, and high, bland, unwrinkled forehead, and the few soft gray locks which not time, — for he was scarcely fifty- Svo, — but long labor of brain, had spared to him, there lay a hopeful calm, as of a man who had nigh done his work, and felt that he had not altogether done it ill ; ; — an autumnal calm, resigned, yet full of cheerfulness, which harmonized fitly with the quiet beauty of the decaying landscape before him. " I say, daddy, you must drop that microscope and put POETRY AND PEOSL'. 3 on your shade. You are ruining those dear old eyes of yours again, in spite of what Alexander told you." The doctor took up the green shade which lay beside him, and replaced it with a sigh and a smile. " I must use the oA things now and then, till you can take my place at the microscope, Tom ; or till we have, as we ought to have, a first-rate analytical chemist settled in every county-town, and paid, in part at least, out of the county rates." The " Tom " who had spoken was one of two youths of eighteen, who stood in opposite corners of the bay-window, gazing out upon the landscape, but evidently with thoughts as different as were their complexions. * Tom was of that bull-terrier type so common in England ; sturdy, and yet not coarse ; middle-sized, deep-chested, broad-shouldered ; with small, well-knit hands and feet, large jaw, bright gray eyes, crisp brown hair, a heavy pro- jecting brow ; his face full of shrewdness and good-nature, and of humor withal, which might be at whiles a little saucy and sarcastic, to judge from the glances which he sent from the corners of his wicked eyes at his companion on the other side of the window. He was evidently prepared for a day's shooting, in velveteen jacket and leather gaiters, and stood feeling about in his pockets to see whether he had forgotten any of his tackle, and muttering to himself amid his whis- tling, — " Capital day ! How the birds will lie ! Where on earth is old Mark ? Why must he wait to smoke his cigar after breakfast ? Could n't he have had i^t in the trap, the blessed old chimney that he is ? " I The other lad was somewhat taller than Tom, awkwardly and plainly dressed, but with a highly-developed Byronic turn-down collar, and long, black, curling locks. He was certainly handsome, as far as the form of his features and brow ; and would have been very handsome, but for the bad complexion which at his age so often accompanies a sedentary life and a melancholic temper. One glance at bis face was sufficient to tell that he was moody, shy, rest- less, perhaps discontented, perhaps ambitious and vain. He held in his hand a volume of Percy's Eehques, which he Lad just taken down from Thurnall's shelves ; yet he was looking not at it, but at the landscape. Nevertheless, as he looked, one might have seen that he was thinking not so much of it as of his own thoughts about it. His eye, which was verj' large, dark, and beautiful, with heavy lids and long lashes, had that dreamy look so common among meu 4 POETRY AND PROSE. of the poetic temperament ; conscious of though r,, it not conscious of self; and, as his face kindled, and his lips moved more and more earnestly, he began muttering to himself, half aloud, till Tom Thurnall burst into an open laugh. " There 's Jack at it again ! — making poetry, I '11 bet my head to a China orange." " And why not ? " said his father, looking up quietly, but reprovingly, as Jack winced and blushed, and a dark shade of impatience passed across his face. "0! it's no concern of mine. Let everybody please themselves. The country looks very pretty, no doubt ; I 'can tell that ; only my notion is that a wise man ought to go out and enjoy it, — as I am going to do, — with a gun on his shoulder, instead of poking at home like a yard-dog, and behowling one's self in po — o — oetry ; " and Tom lifted up his voice into a doleful mastiff's howl. " Then be as good as your word, Tom, and let every one please themselves," said the doctor ; but the dark youth broke out in sudden passion. " Mr. Thomas Thurnall, I will not endure this 1 Why are you always making me your butt, — insulting me, sir, even in your father's house ? You do not understand me ; and I do not care to understand you. If my presence is disagreeable to you, I can easily relieve you of it 1 " and the dark youth turned to go away, like Naaman, in a rage.* " Stop, John I " said the doctor. " I think it would be the more courteous plan for Tom to relieve you of his pres- ence. Go and find Mark, Tom ; and please to remember ^hat John Briggs is my guest, and that I will not allow any rudeness to him in my house." " I '11 go, daddy, to the world's end, if you like, provided you won't ask me to write poetry. But Jack takes offence so soon. Give us your hand, old tinder-box ! I meant nc harm, and you know it." John Briggs took the proffered hand sulkily enough, and Tom went out of the glass door, whistling as merrily as a jricket. " My dear boy," said the doctor, when they were alone " you must try to curb this temper of yours. Don't be angry with me, but — " " I should be an ungrateful brute if I was, sir. I can bear anything from you. I ought to, for I owe everything •■o you ; but — " POETRY AST) PROSE. b " But, my dear boy, ' better is he that ruleth his spirit, than he that taketh a city.' " John Briggs tapped his foot on the ground impatiently. •■[ I cannot help it, sir. It will drive me mad, I think, at times, — this contrast between what I might be and what I am. I can bear it no longer, mixing medicines here, when I might be educating myself, distinguishing myself — for I can do it I Have you not said as much yourself to me again and again ? " "I have, of course ; but — " " But, sir, only hear me. It is in vain to ask me to com- mand my temper while I stay here. I am not fit for this work ; not fit for the dull country. I am not appreciated, not understood ; and I shall never be till I can get to Lon- don, — till 1 can find congenial spirits, and take my right- ful place in the great parliament of mind. I am Pegasus in harne.ss, here I" cried the vain, discontented youth. " Let me but once get there, — amid art, civilization, intellect, and the company of men like that old Mermaid Club, to hear and to answer • words So nimble and so full of subtle flame. As one had put his whole soul in a jest ; * — and then you shall see whether Pegasus has not wings, and can use them, too I " And he stopped suddenly, choking with emotion, his nostril and chest dilating, his foot stamp- ing impatiently on the ground. The doctor watched him with a sad smile. " Do you remember the devil's temptation of our Lord, — ' Cast thyself down from hence ; for it is written, Ue shall give his angels charge over thee ' ? " " I do ; but what has that to do with me ? " " Throw away the safe station in which God has certainly put you, to seek, by some desperate venture, a new, and, as you fancy, a grander one for yourself? Look out of that window, lad ! Is there not poetry enough, beauty and glory enough, in that sky, those fields, — ay, in every fallen leaf, — to employ all your powers, considerable as I believe them to be ? Why spurn the pure, quiet, country life, in which such men as Wordsworth have been content to live and grow old ? " The boy shook his head like an impatient hors?. " Too slow, too slow for me, to wait and wait, as Wordsworth did, thn 'igh long years of obscurity, misconception, ridicule 1* b POETRY AND PROSE. No. What I have I must have at once ; and, if it must be, die like Chatterton, if only, like Chatterton, I can have m^ little day of success, and make the world confess that another priest of the beautiful has arisen among men." Now, it can scarcely be denied that the good doctor was guilty of a certain amount of weakness in listening patiently to all this rant. Not that the rant was very blamable in a lad of eighteen ; for have we not all, while we were going through our course of Shelley, talked very much the same abominable stuff, and thought ourselves the grandest fellows upon earth on account of that very length of ear which was patent to all the world save our precious selves ; blinded by our self-conceit, and wondering in wrath why everybody was laughuig at us ? But the truth is, the doctor was easy and indulgent to a fault, and dreaded nothing so much, save telling a lie, as hurting people's feelings ; beside, as the acknowledged wise man of Whitbury, he was a little proud of playing the Msecenas ; and he had, and not unjustly, a very high opinion of John Briggs' powers. So he had lent him books, corrected his taste in many matters, and, by dint of petting and humoring, had kept the wayward youth half a dozen times from running away from his father, who was an apothecary in the town, and from the general practi- tioner, Mr. Bolus, under whom John Briggs fulfilled the oflSce of coassistant with Tom Thurnall. Plenty of trouble had both the lads given the doctor in the last five years, but of very different kinds. Tom, though he was in ever- lasting hot water, as the most incorrigible scapegrace for ten miles round, contrived to confine his naughtiness strictly to play-hours, while he learnt everything which was to be learnt with marvellous quickness, and so utterly fulfilled the ideal of a bottle-boy (for of him, too, as of all things, I pre- sume, an ideal exists eternally in the supra-sensual Platonic universe), that Bolus told his father, " In hours, sir, he takes care of my business as well as I could myself; but out of hours, sir, I believe he is possessed by seven devils." John Briggs, on the other hand, siimed in the very oppo- site direction. Too proud to learn his business, and too proud also to play the scapegrace as Tom did, he neglected alike work and amusement, for lazy mooning over books, and the dreams which books called up. He made perpetual mistakes in the shop ; and then considered himself insulted by an "inferior spirit" if poor Bolus called him to account for it. Indeed, had it not been for many applications of fhat " precious oil of unity " with which the good doctor POETRY AKD PROSE. 7 ilaily anointed the creaking wheels of Whitbury society, John Briggs and his master would have long ago "broken out ol' gear," and parted company in mutual wrath and fury. And now, indeed, the critical moment seemed come at last : for the lad began afresh to declare his deliberate intention of going to London to seek his fortune, in spite of pareuta and all the world. "To live on here, and never to rise, perhaps, above the post of correspondent to a country newspaper I To publish a volume of poems by subscription, and have to go round, hat in hand, begging five shillings' worth of patronage from every stupid country squire — intolerable! I must go! Shakspeare was never Shakspeare till he fled from miserable Stratford, to become at once the friend of Sidney and Southampton." " But John Briggs will be John Briggs still, if he went to the moon," shouted Tom Thurnall, who had just come up to the window. " I advise you to change that name of yours. Jack, to Sidney, or Percy, or Walker, if you like ; anything but the illustrious surname of Briggs the poisoner ! " "What do you mean, sir?" thundered John, while the doctor himself jumped up ; for Tom was red with rage. "What is this, Tom?" " What's that? " screamed Tom, bursting, in spite of his passion, into roars of laughter. "What's that?"- — and he held out a phial. " Smell it ! taste it ! 0, if I had but a gallon of it to pour down your throat ! That 's what you brought Mark Armsworth last night, instead of his cough mixture, while your brains were wool-gathering after poetrj' ! " " What is it ? " gasped John Briggs. " Miss Twiddle's black dose ; — strong enough to rive the gizzard out of an old cock ! " "It's not!" "It is!" roared Mark Armsworth from behind, as ho rushed in, in shooting-jacket and gaiters, his red face redder with fury, his red whiskers standing on end witli wrath liko a tiger's, his left hand upon his hapless hypogastric region, his right brandishing an empty glass, which smelt strongly of brandy and water. " It is ! And you 've gi^en me the cholera, and spoilt my day's shooting ; and if 1 don't serve you out for it, there 's no law in England ! " " And spoilt my day's shooting, too ; the last I shall get before I 'm off to Paris ! To have a day in Lord Minchamp stead's preserves, and to be balked of it in this way ! " 8 POETRY AND PROSE, John Briggs stood as one astonished. " If I don't serve you out for this ! " shouted Mark. "If I don't serve you out for it I You shall never hear the last of.it 1 " shouted Tom. " I '11 take to writing, after all. I 'II put it in the papers. I 'II make ballads on it, and sing 'em at the market-cross. I '11 make the name of Brigga the poisoner an abomination in the land." John Briggs turned and fled. "Weill" said Mark, "I must spend my morning at home, I suppose. So I shall just sit and chat with you, doctor." " And I shall go and play with Molly," said Tom, and walked off to Armsworth's garden. " I don't care for myself so much," said Mark ; " but I'm sorry the boy 's lost his last day's shooting." " 0, you will be well enough by noon, and can go then ; and as for the boy, it is just as well for him not to grow too fond of sports in which he can never indulge." " Never indulge ? Why not ? He vows he '11 go to the Rocky Mountains, and shoot a grizzly bear ; and he '11 do it." " He has a great deal to do before that, poor fellow ; and a great deal to learn." " And he '11 learn it. You 're always down-hearted about the boy, doctor." " I can't help feeling the parting with him ; and for Paris, too ; — such a seat of temptation. But it his own choice ; and, after all, he must see temptation, wherever he goes." " Bless the man ! if a boj' means to go to the bad, he '11 go just as easily in Whitbury as in Paris. Give the lad his head, and never fear ; he 'II fall on his legs, like a cat, I '11 warrant him, whatever happens. He 's as steady as old Time, i tell you ; there 's a gray head on green shoulders there." " Steady? " said the doctor, with a smile and a shrug. " Steady, I tell you, at heart ; as prudent as you or I ; and never lost you a farthing, that you know. Hang good hoys ! give me one who knows how to be naughty in the right place ; I would n't give sixpence for a good boy ; i;<;vcr was one myself, and have no faith in them. Give me the lad who has more steam up than he knows what to do with, and must needs blow off a little in larks. When once he settles down on the rail, it '11 send him aloiig as steady ris a luggage-train. Did you never hear a locomotive puf- fing and roaring before it gets under way ? well, that 'b POETRY AND PROSE. 9 what your buy is doing. Look at him now, with my pooi little Molly." Tom was cantering about the garden with a little weakly child of eight in his arms. The little thing was looking up in his face with delight, screaming at his jokes. " You are right, Mark ; the boy's heart cannot be in the wrong place while he is so fond of little children." " Poor Molly ! How she '11 miss him ! Do you think she '11 ever walk, doctor ? " " I do, indeed." " Hum I ah ! well I if she grows up, doctor, and don't g-o to join her poor dear mother up there, I don't know that I W \vish her a better husband than your boy." " It would be a poor enough match for her." " Tut 1 she '11 have the money, and he the brains. Mark my words, doctor, that boy '11 be a credit to you ; he '11 Tiake a noise in the world, or I know nothing. And if his fancy holds seven years hence, and he wants still to turn traveller, let him. If he 's minded to go round the world, I '11 back him to go, somehow or other, or I '11 eat my head, Ned Thurnall I " The doctor acquiesced in this hopeful theory, partly to save an argument ; for Mark's reverence for his opinion was confined to scientific matters ; and he made up to his own self-respect by patronizing the doctor, and, indeed, taking him sometimes pretty sharply to task on practical matters. " Best fellow alive, is Thurnall ; but not a man of business, poor fellow. None of your geniuses are. Don't know what he 'd do without me." So Tom carried Mary about all the morning, and went to Minchampstead in the afternoon, and got three hours' good shooting ; but in the evening he vanished ; and his father went into Arrasworth's to look for him. " Why do you want to know where he is ? " replied Mark, looking sly. " However, as you can't stop him now, I 'II tell you. He is just about this time sewing up Briggs' coat- sleeves, putting copperas into his water jug, and powdered falls on his towel, and making various other little returns >r this morning's favor." "1 dislike practical jokes." "So do I; especially when they come in the form of a black dose. Sit doAvn, old boy, and we '11 have a game of eribbage." In a few minutes Tom came in. " Here 's a good rid- 10 POETRY AND PROSE. dance I The poisoner has fabricated his pilgrim's utaff, to speak scientifically, and perambulated his calcareous strata." "What!" " Cut his stick, and walked his chalks ; and is off to London." " Poor boy 1 " said the doctor, much distressed. " Don't cry, daddy ; you can't bring him back again He's been gone these four hours. I went to his room, at Bolus's, about a little business, and saw at once that he had packed up and carried off all he could. And, looking about, 1 found a letter directed to his father. So to his father I took it ; and really I was sorry for the poor people. I left them all crying in chorus." " I must go to them at once ; " and up rose the doctor. "He's not worth the trouble you take for him — the addle-headed, ill-tempered coxcomb!" said Mark. "But it's just like your soft-heartedness. Tom, sit down, and finish the game with me." So vanished from Whitbury, with all his aspirations, poor John Briggs ; and save an occasional letter to his parents, telling them that he was alive and well, no one heard any- thing of him for many a year. The doctor tried to find him out in London, again and again ; but without success. , His letters had no address upon them, and no clue to his where- abouts could bo found. And Tom Thurnall went to Paris, and became the best pistol-shot and billiard-player in the Quartier Latin ; ^nd then went to St. Mumpsimus's Hospital in London, and became the best boxer therein, and captain of the eight-oar, beside winning prizes and certificates without end, and becoming in due time the most popular house-surgeon in the hospital ; but nothing could keep him permanently at home. Stay drudging in London he would not. Settle down in a i^ountry practice he would not. Cost his father a farthing he would not. So he started forth into the wide world with nothing but his wits and his science, as ana- tomical professor to a new college in some South American republic. Unfortunately, when he got there he found that the annual revolution had just taken place, and that the party who had founded the college had been all shot the week before. Whereat he whistled, and started off again, no man knew whither. "Having got half round the world, daddy," he wrote iiome, " it 's hard if I don't get round the other half So POETRY AND PEOSE. 11 ion't expect me till j ou see mc ; and take care of your deai old eyes." With which he vanished into infinite space, and was only heard of by occasional letters dated from the Eocky Mcnn- tains (where he did shoot a grizzly bear), the Spanish West Indies, Otahiti, Singapore, the Falkland Islands, and all manner of unexpected places ; sending home valuable nc tes (sometimes accompanied by valuable specimens) zoological and botanical ; and informing his father that he was doing very well ; that work was plentiful, and that he always found / two fresh jobs before he had finished one old one. / His eldest brother, John, died meanwhile. His second brother, William, was in good general practice in Manches- ter. His father's connection supported him comfortably ; and if the old doctor ever longed for Tom to come heme, he never hinted it to the wanderer, but bade him go on and prosper, and become (which he gave high promise of becom- ing) a distinguished man of science. Nevertheless the old man's heart sunk, at last, when month after month, and at last two full years, had passed without any letter from Tom. At last, when full four years were past and gon'e since Tom started for South America, he descended from the box of the day-mail, with a serene and healthful countenance ; and with no more look of interest in his face than if he had been away on a two-days' visit, shouldered his carpet-bag, and started for his father's house. He stopped, however ; as there appeared from the inside of the mail a face which he must surely know. A second look told him that it was none other than John Briggs. But how altered ! He had grown up into arvBi-y handscrrne man, — tall and delicate-featured, with long black curls, and a black moustache. There was a slight stoop about his shoulders, as of a man accustomed to too much sitting and writing ; and he carried an eye-glass, whether for fashion's sake, or for his eyes' sake, was uncer- tain. He was wrapt in a long Spanish cloak, new and good ; wore well-cut trousers, and (what Tom, of course, examined carefully) French boots, very neat, and very thin. More- over, he had lavender kid gloves on. Tom looked and won- dered, and walked half round him, sniffing like a dog, when he examines into the character of a fellow-dog. " Hum ! — his mark seems to be at present P. P. — pros porous party ; so there can be no harm in renewing oui acquaintance. What trade on earth does he live by, though ? Editor of a newspaper ? or keeper of a gambling-table ? V2 POETRY AND PROSE. Begging his pardon, he looks a good deal more like the li»t ter than the former. However — " And he walked up and offered his hand, with "How d'e do, Briggs ? Who would have thought of our falling from the skies against each other in this fashion ? " Mr. Briggs hesitated a moment, and then took ccldly the offered hand. " Excuse me ; but the circumstances of my visit here are too painful to allow me to wish for society." And Mr. Briggs withdrew, evidently glad to escape. "Has he vampoosed with the contents of a till, that ho wishes so for solitude ? " asked Tom ; and, shouldering his carpet-bag a second time, with a grim inward laugh, he went to his father's house, and hung up his hat in the hall, just as if he had come in from a walk, and walked into the study ; and, not finding the old man, stepped through the garden to Mark Armsworth's, and in at the drawing-room window, frightening out of her wits a short, pale, ugly girl of seventeen, whom he discovered to be his old playfellow, Mary. ]Iowever, she soon recovered her equanimity: he certainly never lost his. " How d'e do, darling ? How you are grown ! and how well you look! How's your father? I hadn't anything particular to do, so j. thought I 'd come home and see you all, and get some fishing." And Mary, who had longed to throw her arms round his neck, as of old, and was restrained by the thought that she was grown a great girl now, called in her father, and all the household ; and after a while the old doctor came home, and the fatted calf was killed, and all made merry over the return of this altogether unrepentant prodigal son, who, whether from affectation, or from that blunted sensibility which often comes by continual change and wandering, took all their affection and delight with the most provoking coolness. Nevertheless, though his feelings were not " demonstra- tive," as fine ladies say now-a-days, he evidently had some 'eft in some corner of his heart ; for after the fatted calf was eaten, and they were all settled in the doctor's study, it came out that his carpet-bag contained little but presents, and those valuable ones ^ rare minerals from the Ural for his father ; a pair of Circassian pistols for Mark ; aiid for little Mary, to her astonishment, a Russian malacnite brace- let, at which Mary's eyes opened wide, and o''J Mirk said — POETRY AND PROSE. 13 " Pretty fellow you are, to go fooling your money away like that 1 What did that giracrack cost, pray, sir ? " " That is no concern of yours, sir, or of mine either, for I didn't pay for it." " ! " said Mary, doubtingly. " No, Mary. I killed a giant, who was carrying off a beautiful princess ; and this, you see, he wore as a ring on one of his fingers : so I thought it would just suit your wrist." " 0, Tom — Mr. Thurnall — what nonsense ! " "Come, come," said his father; "instead of telling us this sort of stories, you ought to give an account of your- self, as you seem quite to forget that we have not heard from you for more than two years." "Whew! I wrote," said Tom, "whenever I could. However, you can have all my letters in one now." So they sat round the fire, and Tom gave an account of himself ; while his father marked with pride that the young man had grown and strengthened in body and in mind ; and that under that nonchalant, almost cynical outside, the heart still beat honest and kindly. For, before Tom begun, he would needs draw his chair close to his father's, and half-whispered to him, — " This is very jolly. I can't be sentimental, you know. Knocking about the world has beat all that out of me ; but it is very comfortable, after all, to find one's self safe with a dear old daddy, and a good coal fire." " Which of the two could you best do without ? " "Well, one takes things as one finds them. It don't do to look too deeply into one's feelings. Like chemicals, the more you analyze them the worse they smell." So Tom began his story. " You heai-d from me at Bombay ; after I 'd been up to the Himalaya with an old Mumpsimus friend I " "Yes." " Well, I worked my way to Suez on board a ship whose doctor had fallen ill; and then I must needs see a little of / Egypt; and there robbed was I, and nearly murdered too,; but I take a good deal of killing." "I'll warrant you do," said Mark, looking at him with pride. '^ " So I begged my way to Cairo ; and there I picked up a "iankee — a New Yorker, made of money, who had a yacht at Alexandria, and travelled en prince ; and nothing would serve him but I must go with hin: to Constantinople ; but 14 POETRY AND PROSE. there he and I quarrelled — more fools both of us 1 I wrote to you from Constantinople." " We never got tlie letter." "I can't help that; 1 wrote. But there I was on the wide world again. So I took up with a Russian prince, whom I met at a gambling-table in Pera, — a mere boy, but such a plucky one, — and went with Iiim to Circassia, and lip to Astrakhan, and on to the Kirghis steppes ; and there 1 did see snakes." " Snakes ? " said Mary. " I should have thought you had seen plenty in India already." " Yes, Maiy; but these were snakes spiritual and meta- phorical. For, poking about where we had no business, Marj', the Tartars caught us, and tied us to their horses' tails, after giving me this scar across the cheek, and taught us to drink mares' milk, and to do a good deal of dirty work beside. So there we stayed with them sixmonths, and observed their manners, which were noneT and their customs, which were disgusting, as the midshipman said in his diary ; and had the honor of visiting a pleasant little place in No-man's Land, called Khiva, which you may find in your atlas. Mary ; and of very nearly being sold for" slaves into Persia, which would not have been pleasant; and, at last, Mary, we ran away — or, rather, rode away oii two razor-backed Calmuc ponies, and got back to Russia, via Orenburg, for which consult your atlas again ; so the young prince was restored to the bosom of his afflicted family ; and a good deal of trouble I had to get him safe there, for the poor boy's health gave way. They wanted me to stay with them, and offered to make my fortune." " I 'm so glad you did n't ! " said Mary. "Well; I wanted to see little Mary again, and two worthy old gentlemen beside, you see. However, those Russians are generous enough. They filled my pockets, and heaped me with presents ; that bracelet among them. What 's more, Mary, I 've been introduced to old Nick him- belf, and can testify, from personal experience, to the correctness of Shakspeare's opinion that the prince of dark- less is a gentleman." "And now you are going to stay at home ? " asked the doctor. ^ " Well, if you '11 take me in, daddy, I '11 send for my traps fi'om London, and stay a month or so." " A month ? " cried the forlorn father. " Well, daddy, you see, there is a chance of more fight POETEY AND PROSE. 15 ing in Mexico, and I shall see such practice there, beside Dieeting old friends who were with me in Texas. And — and I 've got a little commission toe down in Georgia, that 1 should like to go and do." ,'1 ^ " What is that?" '' / '' " Well, it 's a long story, and a sad one ; but there was a poor Yankee surgeon with the army in Circassia, — a South- erner, and a very good fellow. — and he had taken a Ancy to some colored girl at home. Poor fellow, he used to go half mad about her sometimes, when he was talking to me, for fear she should have been sold, sent to the New Orleans market, or some other devilry ; and what could I say to comfort him ? Well, he got his mittimus by one of Schamyl's bullets, and when he was dying he made me promise — I hadn't the heart to refuse — to take all his savings, which he had been hoarding for years for no other purpose, and see if I could n't buy the girl, and get her away to Canada. I was a fool for promising. It was no concern of mine ; but the poor fellow would n't die in peace ' else. So what must be, must." " 0, go ! go ! " said Mary. " You will let him go. Doctor Thurnall, and see the poor girl free ? Think how dreadful it must be to be a slave." " I will, my little Miss Mary ; and for more reasons than you think of Little do you know how dreadful it is to be a slave." "Hum!" said Mark Armsworth. "That's a queer story. Tom, have you got the poor fellow's money ? Did n't lose it when you were taken by those Tartars ? " "Not I. I was n't so green as to carry it with me. It ought to have been in England six months ago. My only fear is, it's not enough." "Hum!" said Mark ; "how much more do you think you '11 want ? " " Ileaven knows. There is a thousand dollars ; but if she be half as beautiful as poor Wyse used to swear she was, I may want more than double that." "If you do, pay it, and I'll pay you again. No, by George ! " said Mark, " no one shall say that while Mark &.rmsworth had a balance at his banker's he let a poor girl — " and, recollecting Mary's presence, he finished his sentence by sundry stamps and thumps on the table. " You would soon exhaust your balance, if you set tu work to free all poor girls who are in the same case in Georgia," paid the doctor. 16 POETRY AND PEOSE. " Well, what of that ? Them I don't know of, and so 1 an't responsible for them ; but this one I do know of, and so — there, I can't argue ; but, Tom, if you want the money, you know where to find it." "Very good. By the by — I forgot it till this moment — who should come down in the coach with me but the lost John Briggs ! " " He is come coo late, then," said the doctor. " Hispo(« father died this morning." " Ah ! then Briggs knew that he was ill ? That ex- plains the Manfredic mystery and gloom with which ho greeted me." " I cannot tell. lie has written from time to time, but he has never given any address ; so that no one could write in return." " He may have known. He looked very downcast. Perhaps that explains his cutting me dead." " Cut you ? " cried Mark. " I dare saj' he 's been doing something he 's ashamed of, and don't want to be recognized. That fellow has been' after no good all this while, I '11 war- rant. I always say he 's connected with the swell mob, or croupier at a gambling-table, or something of that kind Don't you think it 's likely, now ? " Mark was in the habit of so saying for the purpose of tormenting the doctor, Vho held stoutly to his old belief that John Briggs was a very clever man, and would turn up some day as a distinguished literary character. " Well," said Tom, " honest or not, he 's thriving ; came down inside the coach, dressed in the distinguished foreigner style, with lavender kid gloves and French boots." " Just like a swell pickpocket," said Mark. "I always told you so, Thurnall." " He had the old Byron collar and Eaphael hair, though." "Nasty, effeminate, un-English foppery I " grumbled Mark ; " so he may be in the scribbling line, after all." " I '11 go and see if I can find him," quoth the doctor. "Bother you," said Mark, "always running out o' nights after somebody else's business, instead of having a jolly evening. You stay, Tom, like a sensible fellow, and tell me and Mary some more travellers' lies. Had much sporting, boy ? " "Hum! I've shot and hunted every beast, I tliink, shootable and huntable, from a humming-bird to an ele- phant ; and I had some splendid fishing in Canada ; but POETKY AND PROSE. IT after all, give me a Whitbury trout, on a single-handed Chevalier. We '11 at them to-morrow, Mr. Armsworth 1 " " We will, my boy I Never so many fish in the river as this year, or in season so early." The good doctor returned ; but with no news which could throw light on the history of the now mysterious Mr. John Briggs. He had locked himself into the room with his father's corpse, evidently in great excitement and grief; spent several hours walking up and down there alone ; and had then gone to an attorney in the town, and settled everything about the funeral "in the handsomest way," said the man of law ; " and was quite the gentleman in his manner, but not much of a man of business ; never had thought even of looking for his father's will ; and was quite surprised when I told him that there ought to be a fair sum — eight hundred or a thousand, perhaps, to come in to him, if the stock and business were properly disposed of. So he went off to London by the evening mail, and told me to address him at a post-ofSce in some street off the Strand. Queer business, sir, is n't it ? " John Briggs did not reappear till a few minutes before his father's funeral, witnessed the ceremony evidently with great sorrow, bowed off silently all who attempted to speak to him, and returned to London by the next coach, ■ — leav- ing matter for much babble among all Whitbury gossips. One thing at least was plain, that he wished to be forgotten in his native town ; and forgotten he was, in due course of time. 1 Tom Thnrnall stayed his month at home, and then went to America; whence he wrote home, in about six months,/ a letter, of which only one paragraph need interest us. ' " Tell Mark I have no need for his dollars. 1 have done the deed ; and, thanks to the underground railway, done it nearly gratis ; which was both cheaper than buying her,r and infinitely better for me ; so that she has all poor] Wyse's dollars to start with afresh in Canada. I write this from New York. I could accompany her no further, fori I must get back to the South in time for the Mexican expedition.'' Then came a long and anxious silence ; and then a letter, ~ot from Mexico, but from California, — one out of several which had been posted ; and then letters, more regularly, from Australia. Sickened with California life, he had crossed the Pacific once more, and was hard at work in the diggings, d*>ctoring and gold-finding by turns 2* 18 POETEY AND PROSE. " A. rolling stone gathers no moss," said his father. "He has the pluck of a hound, and the cunning- of a fox," said Mark ; '" and he 'U be a credit to you yet." And Mary prayed every morning and night for her old playfellow ; and so the years slipped on till the autumn -^fJMS, As no one has heard of Tom now for eight month" and more (the pulse of Australian postage being of a somewhat intermittent type), we may as well go and look for him. A sheet of dark rolling ground, quarried into a gigantic rabbit burrow, with hundreds of tents and huts dotted about among the heaps of rubbish ; dark evergreen forests in the distance, and, above all, the great volcanic mountain of Buninyong towering far aloft — these are the " Black Hills of Ballarat ; " and that windlass at that shaft's mouth belongs in part to Thomas Thurnall. At the windlass are standing two men, whom we may have seen, in past years, self-satisfied in countenance, and spotless in 'array, sauntering down Piccadilly any July afternoon, or lounging in Haggis's stable-yard at Cambridge any autumn morning. Alas ! how changed from the fast young undergraduates, with powers of enjoyment only equalled by their powers of running into debt, are those two black-boarded and mud-bespattered ruffians, who once were Smith and Brown of Trinity. Yet who need pity them, as long as they have stouter limbs, healthier stomachs, and clearer consciences, than they have had since they left Eton at seventeen ? Would Smith have been a happier man as a briefless barrister in a dingy Inn of Law, peeping now and then into third-rate London society, and scribbling for the daily press ? Would Brown have been a happier man had he been forced into those holy orders for which he never felt the least vocation, to pay off his college debts out of his curate's income, and settle down on his lees at last, in the family living of Nomansland-cum-Clayhole, and support a wife and five children on five hundred a year, exclusive of rates and taxes ? Let them dig, and be men. The windlass rattles, and the rope goes down. A shout from the bottom of the shaft proclaims all right ; and in ,lue time, sitting in the noose of the rope, up comes Thomas Thui-nall, barefooted and bareheaded, in flannel trousers and red jersey, begrimed with slush and mud ; with a mahogany face, a brick-red neck, and a huge brown beard, looking, to use his own expression, " as jolly as a sand- boy." POETRY AND PROSE. 19 " A. letter for you, doctor, from Europe." Tom takes it, and his countenance falls ; for it is black- edged and black-sealed. The handwriting is Mary Arms- worth's. "I suppose the old lady who is going to leave mo a for- •Eune is dead," says he, dryly, and turns away to read. " Bad luck, I suppose," he says to himself " I have not had any for full six months, so I suppose it is time foi Dame Fortune to give me a sly stab again. I only hope it is not my father ; for, begging the dame's pardon, I can bear any trick of hers but that." And he sets his teeth doggedly, and reads. "My dear Mr. Thurnall, — My father would have written himself, but he thought, I don't know why, that I could tell you better than he. Your father is quite well iu health," — Thurnall breathes freely again, — "but he has had heavy trials since your poor brother .JVilliam's death." Tom opens his eyes and sets his teeth more firmly. " Willy dead ? I suppose there is a letter lost : better so ; better to have the whole list of troubles together, and s(. get them sooner over. Poor Will ! " " Your father caught the scarlet fever from him, while he was attending him, and was very ill after he came back. He is quite well again now ; but, if I must tell you the truth, the disease has affected his eyes. You know how weak they always were, and how much worse they have grown of late years ; and the doctors are afraid that he has little chance of recovering the sight, at least of the left eye." "Eecovering? He 's blind, then ! " And Tom set his teeth more tightly than ever. He felt a sob rise in his throat, but choked it down, shaking his head like an impa- tient bull. " Wait a bit, Tom," said he to himself " before you have it out with Dame Fortune. There 's more behind, I '11 warrant. News like this lies in pockets, and not in single nuggets." And he read on — " And — for it is better you should know all — something has happened to the jailroad in which he had invested so much. My father has lost money in it also ; but not much ; but 1 t-,-ar that your poor dear father is very much straitened. My father is dreadfully vexed about it, and thinks it all his fault in not having watched the matter more closely, and made your father sell out in time ; and he wants your father to come and live with us, but l?e will not hear of it. So 20 POETRY AND PROSE. he has given up the old house, and taken one in Water street, and, ! I need not tell you that we arc there every day, and that I am trying to make him happy as I can — but What can I do ? " And then followed kind womanly common-places, which Tom hurried over with fierce im- patience. "He wants you to come home; but my father has entreated him to let you stay. You know, while we are here, he is safe ; and my father begs you not to come home, if you are succeeding as well as you have been doing." There was much more in the letter, which I need not repeat ; and, after all, a short postscript by Mark him- self followed : — " Stay where you are, boy, and keep up heart ; while I have a pound, your father shall ha-ve half of it ; and you know Mark Armsworth." He walked away slowly into the forest. He felt that the crisis of his life was come ; that he must turn his hand hence- forth to quite new work ; and as he went he " took stock," as it were, of his own soul, to see what point he had attained — what he could do. Fifteen years of adventure had hardened into wrought metal a character never very ductile. Tom was now, in his own way, an altogether accomplished man of the world, who knew (at least in all companies and places where he was likely to find himself) exactly what to say, to do, to make, to seek, and to avoid. Shifty and thrifty as old Greek, or mod- ern Scot, there were few things he could not invent, and perhaps nothing he could not endure. He had watched human nature under every disguise, from the pomp of the ambassador to the war-paint of the savage, and formed his own clear, hard, shallow, practical estimate thereof He looked on it as his raw material, which he had to work up into subsistence and comfort for himself. He did not wish to live on men, but live by them he must ; and for that pur- pose he must study them, and especially their weaknesses. He would not cheat them ; for there was in him an innate vein of honesty, so surly and explosive, at times, as to give him much trouble. The severest part of his self-education nad been the repression of his dangerous inclination to call a sham a sham on the spot, and to answer fools according to their folly. That youthful rashness, however, was now well-nigh subdued, and Tom could flatter and bully also, when it served his turn — as who cannot ? Let him that is tvithout sin among my readers cast the first stone. Self- POETET AND PROSE. 21 conscious he was, therefore, in every word and action ; not from morbid 7anity, but a necessary consequence of his mode of life. He had to use men, and therefore to watch how he used tliem ; to watch every word, gesture, tone of voice, and, in all times and places, do the fitting thing. It was hard work ; but necessary for a man who stood alone and self-poised in the midst of the universe ; fashioning foi himself everywhere, just as far as his arm could reach, some not intolerable condition ; depending on nothing but himself, and caring for little but himself and the father whom, to do him justice^ he never forgot. If I wished to define Ton? Thurnall by one epithet, I should call him specially an ungodly man — were it not that scriptural epithets have now- a-days such altogether conventional and official meanings, that one fears to convey, in using them, some notion quite foreign to the truth. Tom was certainly not one of those ungodly whom David had to deal with of old, who robbed the widow, and put the fatherless to death. Ilis morality was as high as that of the average ; his sense of honor far higher. He was generous and kind-hearted. No one ever hoard him tell a lie ; and he had a blunt honesty about him, half real, because he liked to bo honest, and yet half affected too, because he found it paj' in the long run, and because it threw off their guard the people whom he intended to make his tools. But of godliness in its true sense — of belief that any Being above cared for him, and was helping him in the daily business of life — that it was worth while asking that Being's advice, or that any advice would be given if asked for ; of any practical notion of a heavenly Father, or a Divine education — Tom was as ignorant — as thousands of respectable people who go to church every Sunday, and read good books, and believe firmly that the Pope is Anti- christ. He ought to have learnt it, no doubt ; for his father was a religious man ; but he had not learnt it — any more than thousands learn it, who have likewise religious parents. He had been taught, of course, the common doc- trines and duties of religion ; but early remembrances had been rubbed out, as off a school-boy's slate, by the mere cur- rent of new thoughts and objects, in his continual wander- ings. Disappointments he had had, and dangers in plenty ; but only such as rouse a brave and cheerful spirit to bolder self-reliance and invention ; not those deep sorrows of the heart which leave a man helpless in the lowest pit, crying for help from without, for there is none within. He had seen men of all creeds, and had found in all alike (so he held) 22 POETRY AND PROSE. the many rogues, and the few honest men. All religions were, in his eyes, equally true and equally false. Superior mo- rality was owing principally to the influences of race and cli- mate ; and devotional experiences (to judge, at least, from American camp-meetings and popish cities) the results of a diseased nervous system. Upon a man so hard and strong this fearful blow had fallen, and, to do him justice, he took it like a man. He wanden^d on and on for an hour or more, up the hills, and into tiie forest, talking to himself. " Poor old Willie ! I should have liked to have looked into his honest face before he went, if only to make sure that we were good friends. I used to plague him sadly with my tricks. But what is the use of wishing for what cannot be ? I recollect I had just the same feeling when John died ; and yet I got over it after a time, and was as cheerful as if he were alive again, or had never lived at all. And so I shall get over this. Why sliould I give way to what I know will pass, and is meant to pass ? It is my father I feel for. But I couldn't be there ; and it is no fault of mine that I was not there. No one told me what was going to happen ; and no one could know: so again, — why grieve over what can't be helped? " And then, to give the lie to all his cool arguments, he sat down among the fern, and burst into a violent fit of crj-ing. " 0, my poor, dear old daddy ! " .Yes : beneath all the hard crust of years, that fountain of life still lay pure as when it came down from heaven — love for his father. " Come, come, this won't do ! this is not the way to take stock of my goods, either mental or worldly. I can't cry the dear old man out of this scrape." lie looked up. The sun was setting. Beneath the dark roof of evergreens the eucalyptus boles stood out, like basalt pillars, black against a background of burning flame. The flying foxes shot from tree to tree, and moths as big as sparrows whirred about the trunks, one moment black against the glare bcj'ond, and vanishing the next, like imps of darkness, into their native gloom. There was no sound jf living thing around, save the ghastly rattle of the dead bark-tassels which swung from every tree, and, far away, the faint clicking of the diggers at their work, like the rus- tle of a gigantic ant-hill. Was there one among them all who cared for him? who would not forget him in a week with — "Well, he was pleasant company, poor fellow!" POETRY AND PROSE. 23 and go on d.ggiug, without a sigh ? What, if it were bis fate to die, as he had seen many a stronger man, there in tliat lonclj' wilderness, and sleep forever, unhonored and unknown, beneath that awful forest-roof, while his father looked for brend to others' hands ? No man was less sentimental, no man less superstitious, than Thomas Thurnall ; but crushed and softened — all but terrified (as who would not have been?) — by that day's news, he could not struggle against the weight of loneliness which fell upon him. For tlie first and last time, perhaps, in his life, he felt fear; a vague, awful dread of unseen and inevitable possibilities. Why should not calamity fall on him, wave after wave ? Was it not falling on him already ? Why should he not grow sick to-morrow, break his leg, his neck — why not? What guarantee had he in earth or heaven that he might not be " snuffed out silently," as he had seen hundreds already, and die and leave no sign ? And there sprung up in him at once the intensest yearning after his father and the haunts of his boyhood, and the wild- est dread that he should never see them. Might not his father be dead ere he could return ? — if ever he did return. That twelve thousand miles of sea looked to him a gulf impassable. 0, that he were safe at home ! that he could start that moment ! And for one minute a helplessness, as of a lost child, came over him. Perhaps it had been well for him had he given that feeling vent, and, confessing himself a lost child, cried out of the darkness to a Father ; but the next minute be had dashed it proudly away. "Pretty baby I am, to get frightened, at my time of life, because 1 find myself in a dark wood — and the sun shining all the while as jollily as ever away there in the west! It is morning somewhere or other now, and it will be morning here again to-morrow. ' Good times and bad times, and all times, pass over ; ' — I learnt that lessoji out of old Be- wick's vignettes, and it has stood me in good stead this many a year, and shall now. Die? — Nonsense! I take more killing than that comes to. So, for one more bout with old Dame Fortune I If she throws me again, why, I '11 get up again, as I have any time these fifteen years. Mark 's right. 1 '11 stay here and work till I make a hit, or luck runs dry, and then home and settle ; and, meanwhile, I '11 go down to Melbourne to-morrow, and send the dear old taaijJav^ hundred pounds ; and then back again here, and ton, again." 24 POETEY AND PR03F. And, with a fate-defiant smile, half bitter and half oheer fnl, Tom rose and went down again to his mates, and stopped their inquiries by — " What 's done can't be mend- ed, and needn't bj mentioned; whining won't make me work the harder, and harder than ever I must work." Strange it is, how mortal roan, " who cometh up and id cut down like the flower," can thus harden himself into isto- ical security, and count on the morrow, which may nevf.r come. Yet so it is ; and, perhaps, if it were not so, no work would get done on earth — at least, by the many who know not that God is guiding them, while they fancy that they are guiding themselTes. CHAPTER II. STILL LIFE. I MUST now, if I am to bring you to " Two years ago," and to my story, as it was told to me, ask you to follow me into the good old West Country, and set you down at the back of an old harbor pier ; thirty feet of gray and brown boulders, spotted aloft with bright yellow lichens, and black drops of tar ; polished lower down by the surge of centu- ries, and towards the foot of the wall roughened with crusts of barnacles, and mussel-nests in crack and cranny, and fes- toons of coarse dripping weed. On a low rock at its foot, her back resting against the Cyclopean wall, sits a young woman of eight-and-twenty, soberly, almost primly dressed, with three or four tiny chil- dren clustering round her. In front of them, on a narrow spit of sand between the rocks, a dozen little girls are laughing, romping, and pattering about, turning the stones for " shannies " and " bullies," and other luckless fish left by the tide ; while the party beneath the pier wall looked steadfastly down into a little rock-pool at their feet, — full of the pink and green and purple cut-work of delicate weeds and coralline, and starred with great sea-dahlias, crimson and brown and gray, and with the waving snake-locks of the Cereus, pale blue, and rose-tipped like the fingers of the dawn. One delicate Medusa is sliding across the pool, by slow pantings of its crystal bell ; and on it the eyes of the whole group are fixed ; for it seems to be the subject of some story, which the village schoolmistress is finishing in a sweet, half-abstracted voice, — " And so the cruel soldier was changed into a great rough rod starfish, who goes about killing the poor mussels, while nobody loves him, or cares to take his part ; and the poor little girl was changed into a beautiful bright jelly-fish, like that one, who swims about all day in the pleasant sun- shine, with a rod cross stamped on its heart." " 0, mistress what a pretty story 1 " cry the little ones, 8 ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE. 45 and for all ; and Lucia St. Just was a wild Irish girl, new to London society, all feeling and romance, and literally all ; for there was little real intellect underlying lier passionate sensibility. So when the sensibility burnt itself out, as it generally does ; and when children, and the weak health which comes with them, and the cares of a household, and money difficulties, were absorbing her little powers, Elsley Vavasour began to fancy that his wife was a very common- place person, who was fast losing even her good looks and her good temper. So, on the whole, they were not happy. Elsley was an affectionate man, and honorable to a fantastic nicety ; but he was vain, capricious, over-sensitive, craving for admiration and distinction ; and it was not enough for him that his wife loved him, bore him children, kept his accounts, mended and moiled all day long for him and his ; lie wanted her to act the public for him exactly when he was hungry for praise ; and that not the actual, but an alto- gether ideal, public ; to worship him as a deity, " live for him and him alone," " realize " his poetic dreams of mar- riage-bliss, and talk sentiment with him, or listen to him talking sentiment to her, when she would much sooner be safe in bed burying all the petty cares of the day, and the pain in her back too, poor thing ! in sound sleep ; and so it befell that they often quarrelled and wrangled, and that they were quarrelling and wrangling this very night. Who cares to know how it began ? Who cares to hear how it went on, — the stupid, aimless skirmish of bitter words, between two people who had forgotten themselves ? I believe it began with Elsleyi's being vexed at her spring- ing up two or three times, fancying that she heard the children cry, while he wanted to be quiet, and senti- mentalize over the roaring of the wind outside. Then — she thought of nothing but those children. Why did she not take a book and occupy her mind ? To which she had her pert, though just answer, about her mind having quite enough to do to keep clothes on the children's backs, and so forth, — let who list imagine the miserable little squab- ble, — till she says : "I know what has put you cut so to- night — nothing but the news of my sister's coming." lid answers, " That her sister is as little to him as to any man ; as welcome to come now as she has been to stay a'^vay these three years." "Ah, it's very well to say that; but you have been a different person ever since that letter came." And so she torments him into an angry self-justification (which she 44 ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE. takes triumphantly as a confession) that " it is very disa- j^reeable to have his thoughts broken in on by one who has no sympathy with him and his pursuits, and who — " and at that point he wisely stops short, for he was going to throw down a very ugly gage of battle Thrown down or not, Lucia snatches at it. "Ah, I understand; poor Valentia ! you always hated her." " I did not ;, but she is so brusque, and excited, and — " " Be so kind as not to abuse my family. You may say what you will of me ; but — " " And what have your family done for me, pray ? " " Why, considering that we are now living rent-free in my brother's house, and — " She stops in her tm-n ; for her pride and her prudence also will not let her tell him that Valentia has been clothing her and the children for the last three years. He is just the man to forbid her on the spot to receive any more presents, and to sacrifice her com- fort to his own pride. But what she has said is quite enough to bring out a very angry answer, which she expect- ing, nips in the bud by, "For goodness' sake, don't speak so loud; I don't want the servants to hear." "I am not speaking loud" (he has not yet opened his lips). "That is your old trick to prevent my defending myself, while you are driving one mad. How dare you taunt me with being a pensioner on your brother's bounty ? 1 '11 go up to town again, and take lodgings there. I need not be beholden to any aristocrat of them all. I have my own station in the real world, the world of intellect ; I ;iave my own friends ; I have made myself a name without his help ; and 1 can live without his help, he shall find ! " " winch name were you speaking of? " rejoins she, look- ing up at him, with all her native Irish humor flashing up foi' a moment in her naughty eyes. The next minute she would have given her hand not to have said it, for, with a very terrible word, Elsley springs to his feet and dashes oaf. of the room. She hears him catch up his hat and cloak, and hurry out into the rain, slamming the door behind him. She springs up to call him back, but he is gone, and she dashes herself on the floor, and bursts into an agony of weeping over " young bliss never to return ! " Not in the least. Her principal fear is lest he should catch cold in the rain. She takes up her work again, and stitches away in the comfortable ceP' ANrXHING BDT STILL LIFE. 45 tainty that in half an hour she will have recovered her toni per, and he also ; that they will pass a sulky night ; and to-morrow, by about mid-day, without explanation or formal reconciliation, have become as good friends as ever. " Per- haps," says she to herself, with a woman's sense of power, "if he be very much ashamed and very wet, I '11 pity him and make friends to-night." Miserable enough are these little squabbles. Why will two people, who have sworn to love and cherish each other utterly, and who, on the whole, do what they have sworn, behave to each other as they dare for very shame behave to no one else ? Is it that, as every beautiful thing has its hideous antitype, this mutual shamelessness is the devil's ape of mutual confidence ? Perhaps it cannot be otherwise with beings compact of good and evil. When the veil of reserve is withdrawn from between two souls, it must be withdrawn for evil, as for good, till the two natures, which ought to seek rest, each in the other's inmost depths, may at last spring apart, confronting each other recklessly with, " There, you see me as I am ; you know the worst of me, and 1 of you ; take me as you find me ; what care I ? " Elsley and Lucia have not yet arrived at that terrible crisis, though they are on the path toward it — the path of little carelessnesses, rudenesses, ungoverned words and tempers, and, worst of all, of that half-confidence, which is certain to avenge itself by irritation and quarrelling ; for if two married people will not tell each other in love what they ought, they will be sure to tell each other in anger what they ought not. It is plain enough already that Elsley has his weak point, which must not be touched, something about " a name," which Lucia is to be expected to ignore, — as if anything which really exists could be ignored while two people live together night and day, for better for worse. Till the thorn is out, the wound will not heal ; and till that matter (whatever it may be) is set right, by confession and absolution, there will be no peace for them, for they are living in a lie ; and, unless it be a very little one indeed, better, perhaps, that they should go on to that terrible crisis of open defiance. It may end in disgust, hatred, madness ; but it may, too, end in each falling again upon the other's bosom, and sobbing out through holy tears, " Yes, you do know the worst of me, and yet you love me Btill. This is happiness, to find one's self most loved when one most hates one's self I God, help us to confess oui sins to thee, as we have done to each other, and to begin 46 ANYVHING BUT STILL LiFE. life again like little chiidren, struggling hand in hand oui of this lowest pit, up the steep path which leads to life, and strength, and peace." Heaven grant that it may so end ! But now Elsley has gone raging out into the raging darkness, trying to prove himself to himself the most injured of men, and to hate Lis wife as much as possible, though the fool knows the whole time that he loves her better than anything on earth, even than that " fame," on which he tries to fatten his lean soul, snapping greedily at every scrap which falls in his way, and, in default, snapping at everybody and everything else. And little comfort it gives him. Why should it ? What com- fort, save in being wise and strong ? And is he the wiser or stronger for being told by a reviewer that he has written fine words, or has failed in writing them, or to have silly women writing to ask for his autograph, or for leave to set his songs to music ? Nay, shocking as the question may seem, is he the wiser and stronger man for being a poet of all, and a genius ? provided, of course, that the word genius is used in its modern meaning, of a person who can say prettier things than his neighbors. I think not. Be it as it may, away goes the poor genius, his long cloak, pictu- resque enough in calm weather, fluttering about uncom- fortably enough, while the rain washes his long curls into swabs ; out through the old garden, between storm-swept laurels, beneath dark groaning pines, and through a door in the wall which opens into the lane. The lane leads downward, on the right, into the village. He is in no temper to meet his fellow-creatures, even to see the comfortable gleam through their windows, as the sailors cose round the fire with wife and child ; so he turns to the left, up the deep stone-banked lane, which leads toward the cliff, dark now as pitch, for it is overhung, right and left, with deep oak-wood. It is no easy matter to proceed, though, for the wind pours down the lane as through a funnel, and the road is of slippery bare slate, worn here and there into puddles of greasy clay, and Elsley slips back half of every step, while his wrath, as he tires, oozes out of his heels. Moreover, those dark trees above him, tossing their heads impatiently against the scarcely less dark sky, strike an awe into him, — a sense of loneliness, almost of fear. An uncanny, bad night it is ; and he is out on a bad errand ; and he knows it, and wishes that he were home again. He does not lelieve, of course, in those " spirits of the storm," aboul ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE. 47 whom )ie has so often written, any more than he does in a great deal of his fine imagery ; bnt still, in such characters as his, the sympathy between the moods of nature ami those of the mind is most real and important ; and Dame Nature's equinoctial night-wrath is weird, grewsome, crushing, andean be faced — if it must be faced — in real comfort only when one is going on an errand of mercy, with a clear conscience, a light heart, a good cigar, and plenty of Mackintosh. So, ere Elsley had gone a quarter of a mile, he turned back, and resolved to go in, and take up his book once more. Perhaps Lucia might beg his pardon ; and, if not, why, per- haps he might beg hers. The rain was washing the spirit out of him as it does out of a thin-coated horse. Stay 1 What was that sound above the roar of the gale ? — a cannon ? He listened, turning his head right and left to escape the howling of the wind in his ears. A minute, and another boom rose and rang aloft. It was near, too. He almost fancied that he felt the concussion of the air. Another and another ; and then, in the village below, he could see lights hurrying to and fro. A wreck at sea ? He turned again up the lane. He had never seen a wreck. What an opportunity for a poet ; and on such a flight, too ! it would be magnificent if the moon would but come out 1 Just the scene, too, for his excited temper I He will work on upward, let it blow and rain as it may. He is not disappointed. Ere he has gone a hundred yards, a mass of dripping oil-skin runs full butt against him, knock- ing him against the bank ; and, by the clank of weapons, he recognizes the coast-guard watchman. "Hillo! — who's that? Beg your pardon, sir," as the n\an recognizes Elsley's voice. " What is it ? — what are the guns ? " " God knows, sir ! Overright the Chough and Crow ; on 'em, I'm afcard. There they go again 1 — hard up, poor souls 1 God help them ! " and the man runs shouting down the lane. Another gun, and another ; but, long ere Elsley reaches the cliff, they are silent ; and nothing is to be heard but the noise of the storm, which, loud as it was below among the wood, is almost intolerable now that he is on the open down. He struggles up the lane toward the cliff, and there pauses, gasping, under the shelter of a wall, trying tc analyze that enormous mass of sound which fills his ears 48 ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE. and braiu, and flows through his heart like maddening wine He can hear the sigh of the dead grass on the cliiF-edge, weary, feeble, expostulating with its old tormentor the gale ; then the fierce screams of the blasts as they rush up across the layers of rock below, like hounds leaping up at their prey ; and, far beneath, the horrible confused battle- roar of that great leaguer of waves. lie cannot see them, as lie strains his eyes over the wall into the blank depth, — nothing but a confused welter and quiver of mingled air, and rain, and spray, as if the very atmosphere is writhing in the clutches of the gale ; but he can hear, — what can he not hear ? It would have needed a less vivid brain than Elsley's to fancy another Badajos beneath. There it all is : the rush of columns to the breach, officers cheering them on ; pauses, breaks, wild retreats, upbraiding calls, whis- pering consultations, fresh rush on rush, now here, now there ; fierce shouts above, below, behind ; shrieks of agony, choked groans and gasps of dying men, scaling- ladders hurled down with all their rattling freight ; dull mine-explosions, ringing cannon-thunder, as the old fortress blasts back its besiegers pell-mell into the deep. It is all there ; truly enough there, at least, to madden yet more Elsley's wild, angry brain, till he tries to add his shouts to the great battle-cries of land and sea, and finds them as little audible as an infant's wail. Suddenly, far below him, a bright glimmer ; and, in a moment, a blue light reveals the whole scene, in ghastly hues, blue leaping breakers, blue weltering sheets of foam, blue rocks, crowded with blue figures, like ghosts, flitting to and fro upon the brink of that blue seething Phlegethon, and rushing up toward him through the air, a thousand flying blue foam-sponges, which dive over the brow of the hill and vanish, like delicate fairies fleeing before the wrath of the gale ; — but where is the wreck ? The blue light can- not pierce the gray veil of mingled mist and spray which hangs to seaward ; and her guns have been silent for half an hour and more. Elsley hurries down, and finds half the village collected on the long sloping point of down below. Sailors wrapt in pilot-cloth, oil-skinned coast-guardsmen, women with their gowns turned, over their heads, staggering restlessly up and down, and in and out, while every moment some fi-eph comer stumbles down the slope, thrusting himself into his clothes as he goes, and asks, " Where 's the wreck ? " and gets no answer but a surly advice to " hold his noise," ae ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE. 49 if they had hope of hearing the wrecli which they cannot see ; and kind women, with their hearts full of mother's instincts, dech.re that they can hear little children crying, and arc pooh-poohed down by kind men, who, man's fash ion, don't like to believe anything too painful, or, if thej' believe it, to talk of it. "Where were the guns from, then, Jones ?" asks the lieutenant of the head-boatman. "Off the Chough and Crow, I thought, sir. God granl na!" " You thought, sir ? " says the great man, willing to vent his vexation on some one. "Why didn't you make sure ? " "Why just look, lieutenant," says Jones, pointing into the "blank height of the dark ; " " and I was on the pier too, and couldn't see ; but the look-out man here says — " A shift of wind, a drift of cloud, and the moon flashes out a moment. " There she is, sir ! " Some three hundred yards out at sea lies a long curved black line, beautiful, severe, and still, amid those white wild leaping hills. A murmur from the crowd, which swells into a roar, as they surge aimlessly up and down. Another moment, and it is cut in two by a white line — covered — lost — all hold their breaths. No ; the sea passes on, and still the black curve is there, enduring. " A terrible big ship ! " "A Liverpool clipper, by the lines of her." "God help the poor passengers, thenl " sobs a woman "They're past olir help ; she's on her beam-ends." " And her deck upright toward us." " Silence ! Out of the way, you loafing long-shores ! " shouts the lieutenant. " Jones, — the rockets I " What though the lieutenant be somewhat given to strong liquors, and stronger language ? He wears the Queen's uniform ; and what is more, he knows his work, and can do it. All make a silent ring while the fork is planted ; the lieutenant, throwing away the end of his cigar, kneels and adjusts the stick ; Jones and his mates examine and shake out the coils of line. Another minute, and the magnificent creature rushes forth with a triumphant roar, and soars aloft over jthe waves in a long stream of fire, defiant of the gale. Is it over her ? No I A fierce gust, which all but hurls the spectators to the ground ; the fiery stream sweeps away 5 50 ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE. to the left, in a grand curve of sparks, and drops into ti.(i sea. " Try it again ! " shouts the lieutenant, his blood now tip. " We '11 see which will beat, wind or powder." Again a rocket is fixed, with more allowance for the wind ; but the black curve has disappeared, and he must wait a while. " There it is again 1 Fly swift and sure," cries Elsley, " thou fiery angel of mercy, bearing the savior-line 1 It may not be too late yet." Pull and true the rocket went across her; and "three cheers for the lieutenant ! " rose above the storm. " Silence, lads ! Not so bad, though," says he, rubbing his wet hands. "Hold on by the line, and watch for a bite, Jones." Five minutes pass. Jones has the line in his hand, wait- ing for any signal touch from the ship ; but the line sways limp in the surge. Ten minutes. The lieutenant lights a fresh cigar, and paces up and down, smoking fiercely. A quarter of an hour ; and yet no response. The moon is shining clearly now. They can see her hatchways, the stumps of her masts, great tangles of rigging swaying and lashing down across her deck ; but that delicate black upper curve is becoming more ragged after every wave ; and the tide is rising fast. " There 's a pull 1 " shouts Jones. . . . "No there an't ! . God have mercy, sir I She 's going ! " The black curve boils up, as if a mine had been sprung on board ; leaps into arches, jagged peaks, black bar.s crossed and tangled ; and then all melts away into the white seeth- ing waste ; while the line floats home helplessly, as if disap- pointed ; and the billows plunge more sullenly and sadly toward the shore, as if in remorse for their dark and reckless deed. All is over. What shall we do now? Go home, and pray that God may have mercy on all drowning souls ? Or think what a picturesque and tragical scene it was, and what a beautiful poem it will make, when we have thrown it into an artistic form, and bedizened it with conceits and analogies stolen from all heaven and earth by our own self- willed fancy ? Elsley Vavasour — • through whose spectacles, rather than with my own eyes, I have been looking at the wreck, and to whose account, not to mine, the metanhors and similei ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE. 51 of the last two pages must be laid ^ took the latter course ; not that he was not awed, calmed, and even humbled, as he felt how poor and petty his own troubles were, compared with that great tragedy ; but, in his fatal habit of considering all matters in heaven and earth as bricks and mortar for the poet to build with, he considered that he had "seen enough ; " as if men were sent into the world to see, and not to act ; and going home too excited to sleep, much more to go and kiss forgiveness to his sleeping wife, sat up all night writ- ing " The Wreck," which may be (as the reviewer in " The Parthenon" asserts) an exquisite poem ; but I cannot say that it is of much importance. So the delicate genius sate that night, scribbling verses by a warm fire, and the rough lieutenant settled himself down in his Mackintoshes, to sit out those weary hours on the bare rock, having done all that he could do, and yet knowing that his duty was, not to leave the place as long as there was the chance of saving — not a life, for that was past all hope — -but a chest of clothes, or a stick of timber. There he settled himself, grumbling, yet faithful ; and filled up the time with sleepy maledictions against some old ad- miral, who had — or had not— taken a spite to him in the West Indies thirty years before, else he would have been a post captain by now, comfortably in bed on board a crack frigate, instead of sitting all night out on a rock, like an old cormorant, &c., &c. 'Who knows not the woes of ancient coast-guard lieutenants ? But, as it befell, Elsley Vavasour was justly punished for going home, by losing the most " poetical " incident of the whole night. For with the coast-guardsmen many sailors stayed. There was nothing to be earned by staying ; but still who knew but they might be wanted ? And they hung "n with the same feeling which tempts one to linger round a grave ere the earth is filled in, loth to give up the last sight, and with it the last hope. The ship herself, over and above her lost crew, was in their eyes a person, to be loved and regretted. And g€ntleman_tIan^spoke, like a true sailor : '"^ Ah, poor dear ! And she such a beauty, Mr. Jones ; a any one might see by her lines, even that way off. Ah poor dear ! " " And so many brave souls on board ; and, perhaps, some of them not leady, Mr. Beer," says the serious elderly chief boatman. " Eh, Captain Willis ?' " "The Lord has had mercy on thorn, I don't doubt." 52 • ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE. answers the old man, in his quiet sweet voico. " One can't but hope that He would give them time for one prayei before all was over ; and having been drowned myself, Mr. Jones, three times, and taken up for dead, — that is, once in Gibraltar bay, and once when I was a total wreck in the old Seahorse, that was in the hurricane in the Indies ; after that, when I fell over quay-head here, fishing for bass, — why, I know well how quick the prayer vsrill run through a man's heart, when he's a drowning, and the light of con- science, too, all one's life in one minute, like — " " It arn't the men I care for," says gentleman Jan ; " they 're gone to heaven, like all brave sailors do as dies by wrack and battle ; but the poor dear ship, d' ye see. Captain Willis, she han't no heaven to go to, and that's why I feels for her so." Both the old men shake their heads at Jan's doctrine, and turn the subject off. " You 'd better go home, captain, 'fear of the rheumatics. It 's a rough night for your years ; and you 've no call, like me." " I^.woilld, but for my rnaid there; and I can't get her home ; and I can't leave her." And Willis .point s to^ the sjchaolmistressr-wlio sits upon the Hat slope of rock, a little apart from the rest, with her face resting on her hands, gaz- ing intently out into the wild waste. " Make her go ; it 's her duty — we all have our duties. Why does her mother let her out at this time of night ? I keep my maids tighter than that, I warrant." And disci- plinarian Mr. Jones makes a step towards her. " Ah, Mr. Jones, don't now I She 's not one of us. There 's no saying what 's going on there in her. May be she 's praying ; may be she sees more than we do, over the sea there." " What do you mean ? There 's no living body in those breakers, be sure I " " There 's more living things about on such a night than have bodies to them, or than any but such as she can see. If any one ever talked with angels, that maid does ; and I 've heard her, too ; I can say I have — certain of it. Those that like may call her an innocent ; -but I wish I were such an innocent, Mr. Jones. I 'd be nearer heaven then, here on earth, than I fear sometimes I ever shall be, even aftei I 'm dead and gone." " Well, she 's a good girl, mazed or not ; but look at hei now ! What 's she after ? " ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE. 53 The girl had raised her head, and was pointing, with one irm stretched stiffly out, toward tlie sea. Old Willis went down to her, and touched her gently on the shoulder. " Come home, my maid, then, you 'II take cold, indeed ; " but she did not move or lower her arm. The old man, accustomed to her fits of fixed melancholy, looked down under her bonnet, to see whether she was " past," as he called it. By the moonlight he could see her great eyes steady and wide open. She motioned him away, half impatiently, and then sprang to her feet with a scream. " A man ! a man ! Save him ! " As she spoke, a huge wave rolled in, and shot up the Sloping end of the point in a broad sheet of foam. And out of it struggled, on hands and knees, a human figure. He looked wildly up, and round, and then his head dropped again on his breast ; and he lay clinging with outspread arms, like Homer's polypus in the Odyssey, as the wave drained back, in a thousand roaring cataracts, over the edge of the rock. " Save him ! " shrieked she again, as twenty men rushed forward — and stopped short. The man was fully thirty j'ards from them ; but close to him, between them and him, stretched a long ghastly crack, some ten feet wide, cutting the point across. All knew it ; its slippery edge, its pol- ished upright sides, the seething caldrons within it ; and knew, too, that the next wave would boil up from it in a hundred jets, and suck in the strongest to his doom, to fall, with brains dashed out, into a chasm from which was nc return. Ere they could nerve themselves for action, the wave had come. Up the slope it swept, one half of it burying the wretched mariner, and fell over into the chasm. The other half rushed up the chasm itself, and spouted forth again to the moonlight in columns of snow, in time to meet the wave from which it had just parted, as it fell from above ; and then the two boiled up, and round, and over, and swilled along the smooth rock to their very feet. The schoolmistress took one long look, and, as the wave retired, rushed after it to the very brink of the chasm, and flung herself on her knees. " She 's mazed ! " " No she 's not I " almost screamed old Willis, in mingled pride and terror, as he rushed after her. "The wave has 5* 5i ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE. carried him across the crack, and she 's got him ! " And ho sprang upon her, and caught her round the waist. " Now, if you be men 1 " shouted he, as the rest hurried down. " Now, if you be men ; before the next wave comes ! " shouted big Jan. " Hands together, and make a line ! '' And he took a grip with one hand of the old man's waist band, and held out the other hand for who would to seize. Who took it ? Prank Headley, the curate, who had been watching all sadly apart, longing to do something which no one could mistake. " Be you man enough ? " asked big Jan, doubtfully. " Try," said Frank. "Really, you ben't, sir," said Jan, civilly enough. " Means no offence, sir ; your heart 's stout enough, I see ; but you don't know what it'll be." And he caught the hand of a huge fellow next him, while Frank shrank sadly back into the darkness. Strong hand after hand was clasped, and strong knee after knee dropped almost to the rock, to meet the coming rush of water ; and all who knew their business took a long breath, — they might have need of one. It came, and surged over the man, and the girl, and up to old Willis's throat, and round the knees of Jan and his neighbor ; and then followed the returning out-draught, and every limb quivered with the strain ; but when the cataract had disappeared, the chain was still unbroken. " Saved ! " and a cheer broke from all lips, save those of the girl herself. She was as senseless as he whom she had saved. They hurried her and him up the rock ere another wave could come ; but they had much ado to open her hands, so firmly clenched together were they round his waist. Gently they lifted each, and laid them on the rock ; while old Willis, having recovered his breath, set to work, crying like a child, to restore breath to " his maiden." " Run for Dr. Heale, some good Christian 1 " But Frank, longing to escape from a company who did not love him, and to be of some use ere the night was out, was already hal'' vray to the village on that very errand. However, ere the doctor could bo stirred out of his boozy slumbers, and thrust into his clothes by his wife, the schoolmistress was safe in bed at her mother's house ; and the man, weak, but alive, carried triumphal. tly up to Heale's door ; which having been kicked open, the sailors insistei? ANYTHING BUT STILL LIFE. 55 in cairying him right up stairs, and depositing him on the best spare bed. "If you won't come to your patients, doctor, youi patients shall come to you. Why were you asleep in youi liquors, instead rf looking out for poor wratches, like a Christian ? You see whether his bones be broke, and gi'un his medicines proper ; and then go and see after the schoolmistress ; she 'm worth a dozen of any man, and a thousand of you ! We '11 pay for 'un like men ; and if you don't, we '11 break every bottle in your shop." To which, what between bodily fear and real good-natuie, old Heale ivsHented ; and so ended that eventful night. CHAPTER IV. PLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. About niue o'clock the next morning', gentleman Jaii strolled into Dr. Heale's. surgery, pipe in mouth, with an attendant satellite ; for every lion, — poor as well as rich, — in country as in town, must needs have his jackal. Heale's surgery — or, in plain English, shop — was a doleful hole enough ; in such dirt and confusion as might be expected from a drunken occupant, with a practice which was only not decaying because there was no rival in the field. But monopoly made the old man, as it makes most men, all the more lazy and careless ; and there was not a drug or his shelves which could be warranted to work the effect set forth in that sanguine and too trustful book, the Pharmacopoeia, which, like Mr. Pecksniff's England, ex- pects every man to do his duty, and is, accordingly (as the Lancet and Dr. Letheby know too well), grievously disappointed. In tliis kennel of evil savors, Heale was slowly trying to poke things into something like order ; and dragging out a few old drugs with a shaky hand, to see if anj' one would buy them, in a vague expectation that something must needs have happened to somebody, the night before, which would require somewhat of his art. And he was not disappointed. Gentleman Jan, without taking his pipe out of his mouth, dropped his huge elbows on the counter, and his black-fringed chin on his fists, took a look round the shop, as if to find something which would suit him, and then — "I say, doctor, gi 's some tackleum." " Some diachylum plaster, Mr. Beer ? " says Hoale, meekly. " What for, then ? " " To tackle my shins. I barked 'em cruel against King .Arthur's nose last night. Hard in the bone, he is ; — wish I was as hard." " How much diachylum will you want, thei, Mr. Beer? " " Well, I don't know. Let 's see 1 " and Jan pulls up (56) AND LAGEND. 57 his blue trousers, and pulls down his gray rig and furrows, and considers his broad and shaggy shins. " Matter of four pennies broad ; two to each leg ; " and then replaces his elbows, and smokes on. "I say, doctor, that 'ere curate come out well last night 1 shall go to church next Sunday." " What," asks the satellite, " after you upset he that fashion, yesterday ? " " I don't care what you thinks," says Jan, who, of course, bullies his jackal, like most lions ; "but I goes to church. He 's a good 'un, say I, — little and good, hko a Welshman's cow ; and clapped me on the back when we 'd got the man and the maid safe, and says, ' Well done our side, old fellow 1 ' and stands something hot all round, what's more, in at the Mariners' Rest. I say, doctor, where 's he as we hauled ashore ? I '11 go up and see 'un." "Not now, then, Mr. Beer ; not now, then. He 's sleep- ing, indeed he is, like any child." "So much the better. We wain't be bothered with his hollering. But go up I will. Do you let me, now ; I '11 be as still as a maid." And Jan kicked off his shoes, and marched on tiptoe through the shop, while Dr. Heale, moaning professional ejaculations, showed him the way. The shipwrecked man was sleeping sweetly ; and little was to be seen of his face, so covered was it with dark tangled curls and thick beard. " Ah 1 a 'Stralian digger, by the beard of him, and his red jersey," whispered Jan, as he bent tenderly over the poor fellow, and put his head on one side to listen to his breathing. " Beautiful he sleeps, to be sure 1 " said Jan ; "and a tidy-looking chap, too. 'T is a pity to wake 'uu, poor wratch ; and he, perhaps, with a sweetheart aboard, and drownded ; or else all his kit lost. Let 'un sleep so long as he can ; he '11 find all out soon enough, God help him ! " And big Jan stole down the stairs gently and reverently, like a true sailor, and took his diachylum, and went off to plaster his shins. About ten minutes afterwards, Heale was made aware that his guest was awake, by sundry grunts and ejacula- tions, which ended in a series of long and doleful whistles, and then broke out into a song. So he went up, and found the stranger sitting upright in bed, combing his curls with his fingers, and chanting unto himself a cheerful ditty. 58 FLOTSOM. JETSOM. AND LAGEND. " Goou morning, doctor," qtioth he, as his host entered. " Very kind of you, this. Hope I have n't turned a bettei man than myself out of his bed." " Delighted to see you so well. Verj' near drowned, though. We were pumping at your lungs for a full half hour." " Ah ? — nothing, though, for an experienced professional man like yon ! " " Hum 1 Speaks well for your discrimination," says Heale, flattered. " Very well-spoken young person, though his beard is a bit wild. How did you know, then, that I was a doctor ? " "By the reverend looks of you, sir. Besides, I smelt the rhubarb and senna all the way up stairs, and knew that [ 'd f3llen among professional brethren : ' 0, then this valiant mariner Which sailed across the sea, He came home to his own sweetheart With his heart so full of glee ; ' With his heart so full of glee, sir. And his pockets full of gold, And his bag of drugget, with many a nugget, As heavy as he could hold.' Don't you wish yours was, doctor ? " " Eh, eh, eh," sniggered Heale. " Mine was' last night. Now, doctor, let us have a glass of brandy and water, hot with, and an hour's more sleep ; and then kick me out, and into the workhouse. Was any- body else saved from the wreck last night ? " " Nobody, sir," said Heale ; and said ' sir,' because, in spite of the stranger's rough looks, his accent — or, rather, his no-accent — showed him that he had fallen in with a very different, and probably a very superior stamp of man to himself; in the light of which conviction (and being withal a good-natured old soul), he went down and mixed him a stiff glass of brandy and water, answering his wife's remonstrances by — " Tiie party up stairs is a bit of a frantic party, certainly ; but he is certainly a very superior party, and has the true gentleman about him, any one can see. Besides, he 's ship- wrecked, as you and I may be any day ; and what 's like brandy and water ? " " I should like to know when I 'm like to be shipwrecked, Dr you either," says Mrs. Heale, in a tone slightly savoring FLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. 59 i>f indignation and contempt. " You think of nothing but erandy and water." But she let the doctor take the glass up stairs, nevertheless. A few minutes afterwards Frank came in and inquired for the shipwrecked man. " Well enough in body, sir ; and rather requires your skill taan mine," said the old time-server. "Won't you walk ap?" So up Frank was shown. The stranger was sitting up in bed. " Capital, your brandy is, doctor. Ah, sir," seeing Frank, " it is very kind of you, I am sure, to call on me I I presume you are the clergyman ? " • But before Frank could answer, Heale had broken forth mto loud praises of him, setting forth how the stranger owed his life entirely to his superhuman strength and courage. " 'Pon my word, sir," said the stranger, — looking them both over and over, and through and through, as if to settle how much of all this he was to believe, — "I am deeply indebted to you for your gallantry. I only wish it had been employed on a better subject." "My good sir," said Frank, blushing, "you owe your fife not to me. I would have helped if I could ; but was not thought worthy by our sons of Anak here. Your actual preserver was a young girl." And Prank told him the story. "Whew ! I hope she won't expect me to marry her as payment I Handsome ? " " Beautiful," said Frank. " Money ? " " The village schoolmistress." " Clever ? " " A sort of half-baked body," said Heale. " A very puzzling intellect," said Frank. " Ah ! well, that 's a fair excuse for declining the honor. 1 can't be expected to marry a frantic party, as you called me, down stairs, just now, doctor." " I, sir ? " " Yes, I heard ; — no offence, though, my good sir, — but 1 've the ears of a fox. I hope really, though, that she is none the worse for her heroic flights." " How is she, this morning, Mr. Heale ? " " Well, poor thing, a little light-headed last night ; but kindly when I went in last." 60 FLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. " Whew ! I hope she has not fallen in love with mo ! She may fancy me her property — a private waif and stray. Better send for the coast-guard oflacer, and let him claim me as belonging to the Admiralty, as flotsom, jetsom, and lagend ; for I was all three last night." " You were, indeed, sir," said Prank, who began to be a little tired of this levity ; " and very thankful to Heaven you ought to be !" Frank spoke this in a somewhat professional tone of voice ; at which the stranger arched his eyebrows, screwed his lips up, and laid his ears back, like a horse when he medi- tates a kick. " You must be better acquainted with my affairs than 1 am, my dear sir, if you are able to state that fact. Doctor, I hear a patient coming into the surgery." "Extraordinary power of hearing, to be sure," said Heale, toddling down stairs, while the stranger went on, looking Frank full in the face. " Now that old fogy's gone down stairs, my dear sir, let us come to an understanding at the beginning of our acquaintance. Of course, you 're bound by your cloth to say that sort of thing to me, just as I am bound by it not to swear in your company ; but you '11 allow nie to remark,, that it would be rather trying, even to your faith, if yoi; were thrown ashore, with nothing in the world but an old jersey and a bag of tobacco, two hundred miles short of the port where you hoped' to land with fifteen hundred well- earned pounds in your pocket." "My dear sir," said Frank, after a pause, "whatsoever comes from our Father's hand must be meant in love. ' The Lord gave, and the Lord hath taken away.' " A. quaint wince passed over the stranger's face. " Father, sir ? That fifteen hundred pounds was going to my father's hand, from whosesoever hand it came, or the loss of it. And now what is to become of the poor old man, that hussy, Dame Fortune, only knows, — if she knows her mind an hour together, which 1 very much doubt. I worked early and late for that money, sir ; up to my knees in mud and water. Let it be enough for your lofty demands on poor humanity, that I take my loss like a man, with a whis- tle and a laugh, instead of howling and cursing over it like a baboon. Let's talk of something else ; and lend me five pounds and a suit of clothes. I shan't run away with them, for, as I 've been thrown ashore here, here I shall stay." Prank almost laughed at the free-and-easy request, though FLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. 61 he f«lt at once pained by the man's irreligion, and abashed by liis stoicism. Would he have behaved even as well in such a case ? " I have not five pounds in the world." " Good ! we shall understand each other the better." " But the suit of clothes you shall have at once." " Good again ! Let it be your oldest ; for I must do a little rock-scrambling here, for purposes of my own." So off went Frank to fetch the clothes, puzzling over hia new parishioner. The man was not altogether well bred, either in voice or manner ; but there was an ease, a confi- dence, a sense of power, which made Prank feel that he had fallen in with a very strong nature ; and one which had seen many men, and many lands, and profited by what it had seen. When he returned, he found the stranger busy at his ablutions, and gradually appearing as a somewhat dapper, handsome fellow, with a bright gray eye, a short nose, a firm, small mouth, a broad and upright forehead, across the left side of which ran a fearful scar. " That 's a shrewd mark," said he, as he caught Frank's eye fixed on it, while he sat coolly arranging himself on the bedside. " I got it in fair fight, though, by a Crow's tomahawk, in the Rocky Mountains. And here 's another token (lifting up his black curls), which a Greek robber gave me in the Morea. I 've another under my head, for which I have to thank a Tartar, and one or two more little remembrances of flood and field up and down me. Perhaps they may explain to you why I take life and death so coolly. I 've looked too often at the little razor-bridge which parts them, to care much for either. Now don't let me trouble you any longer. You have your fiock to see to, I don't doubt. You '11 find me at church on Sunday. I always do at Rome as Rome does." " Then you will stay away," said Frank, with a sad emile. " Ah ? No. Church is respectable and aristocratic ; and there one don't get sent to a place unmentionable, ten times in an hour, by some inspired tinker. Beside, country people like the doctor to go to church with their betters ; and the very fellows who go to the Methodist meeting them- selves would think it iy^ra dig. in me to walk in there. Now, good-by — though I haven't introduced myself — not knowing the name of my kind preserver." " My name is Frank Headley, Curate of the Parish " n 62 FLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. Baid Prank, smiliug ; though he saw the man was rattling on for the purpose of preventing his talking on serious matters. "And mine is Tom Thurnall, F. R. C. S., licentiate of the Universities of Paris, Glasgow, and whilom surgeon of the good clipper Hesperus, which you saw wrecked last night. So, farewell ! " " Come over with me, and have some breakfast." " No, thanks ; you '11 be busy. I '11 screw some out ol old bottles here." "And now," said Tom Thurnall to himself, as Frank left the room, " to begin life again with an old penknife and a pound of honey-dew. I wonder which of them got my git ■ die. I '11 stick here till I find out that^one thing, and stop the_notes__by to-day's post, if I can but recollect them all ; — if i could but stop the nugget, too ! " So saying, he walked down into the surgery, and looked round. Everything was in confusion. Cobwebs were over the bottles, and armies of mites played at bo-peep behind them. He tried a few drawers, and found that they stuck fast ; and when he at last opened one, its contents were two old dried-up horse-balls, and a dirty tobacco-pipe. He took down a jar marked Epsom salts, and found it full of Welsh snuff; the next, which was labelled cinnamon, con- tained blue vitriol. The spatula and pill-roller were crusted with deposits of every hue. The pill-box drawer had not a dozen whole boxes in it ; and the counter was a quarter of an inch deep in deposit of every vegetable and mineral matter, including ends of string, tobacco ashes, and broken glass. Tom took up a dirty duster, and set to work coolly to clear up, whistling away so merrily that he brought in He ale. " 1 'm doing a little in the way of business, you see." " Then you really are a professional practitioner, sir, as Mr. Headley informs me ; though, of course, I don't doubt the fact ? " said Heale, summoning up all the little courage he had, to ask the question with. " F. R. C. S. London, Paris, and Glasgow. Easy enough to write and ascertain the fact. Have been medical officer CO a poor-law union, and to a Brazilian man-of war. Have Been three choleras, two army fevers, and yellow-jack with- out end. Have doctored gun-shot wounds in the two Texan wars, in one Paris revolution, and in the Schleswig-Holstein row; beside accident practice in every country from Cali FLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. 63 fornia to China, and round the world and back again There 's a fine nest of Mr. Weekes's friend (if not crear tion), Acarus Horridus," and Tom went on dusting and arranging. Heale had been fairly taken aback by the imposing list 01 acquirements, and looked at his guest a while with con- siderable awe : suddenly a suspicion flashed across him, which caused him (not unseen by Tom) a start and a looit of selfcongratulatory wisdom. He next darted out of the shop, and returned as rapidly, rather redder about the eyes, and wiping his mouth with the back of his hand. " But, sir, though, though " — began he — " but, of course, you will allow me, being a stranger — and as a man of business — all I have to say is, if — that is to say — " "You want to know why, if I've had all these good businesses, why I have n't kept them ? " "Ex — exactly," stammered Heale, much relieved. " A very sensible and business-like question ; but you need n't have been so delicate about asking it as to want a screw before beginning." " Ah, you 're a wag, sir," keckled the old man. " I '11 tell you frankly ; I have an old father, sir, — a gen- tleman, and a scholar, and a man of science ; once in as good a country practice as man could have, till, God help him, he went blind, sir — and I had to keep hiin, and have still. I went over the world to make my fortune, and never made it ; and sent him home what I did make, and little enough too. At last, in my despair, I went to the diggings, and had a pretty haul — I needn't say how much. That matters little now ; for I suppose it 's at the bottom of the sea. There 's my story, sir, and a poor one enough it is, — for the dear old man, at least." And Tom's voice trembled so, as he told it, that old Heale believed every word, and, what is more, being — like most hard drinkers — not " un- used to the melting mood," wiped his eyes fervently, and went off for another drop of comfort ; while Tom dusted and arranged on, till the shop began to look quite smart and business-like. " Now, sir ! " — when the old man came back — " busi- ness is business, and beggars must not be choosers. I don't want to meddle with your practice ; I know the rules of the profession ; but if you '11 let me sit here, and mix your medicines for you, you '11 have the more time to visit your patients, that 's clear — and, perhaps (thought he), to :lrink your brandy and water, — and when any of them ara 64 FLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. poisoned by me, it will be time to kick me out. All I iisk is bed and board. Don't be frightened for your spirit-bottle — I can drink water ; I 've done it many a time, for a week together, in the prairies, and been thankful for a half-pint in the day." " But, sir, your dignity as a — " " Fiddlesticks, for dignity I I must live, sir. Only lend me a couple of sheets of paper and two queen's-heads, that I may tell my friends my whereabouts, — and go and talk it over with Mrs. Heale. We must never act without con- sulting the ladies." That day Tom sent off the following epistle : — " To Charles Shuter, Esq., M. D., St. Mumpsimus's Hospi- tal, London. " Dear Charley, — ' I do adjure thee, by old pleasant days, Quartier Latin, and neatly-shod grisettes, By all our wanderings in quaint by-ways. By ancient frolics, and by ancient debts,' " Go to the United Bank of Australia forthwith, and stop the notes whose numbers — all, alas I which I can recollect — are enclosed. Next, lend me five pounds. Next, send me down, as quick as possible, five pounds' worth of decent drugs, as per list ; and — if you can borrow me one — a tolerable microscope, and a few natural history books, to astound the yokels here with ; for I was shipwrecked here last night, after all, at a dirty little West-country port, and what 's worse, robbed of all I had made at the diggings, and start fair, once more, to run against cruel Dame For tune, as Colson did against the Indians, without a shirt to my back. Don't be a hospitable fellow, and ask me to come up and camp with you. Mumpsimus's and all old faces would be a great temptation ; but here I must stick till I hear of my money, and physic the natives for my daily bread." To his father he wrote thus, not having the heart tc tel] the truth : — " To Edward Thurnall, Esq., M. D., Whithury. " My dearest old Father, — I hope 1o see you again in a FI.OTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. 65 few weeks, as soon as I have settled a little business here, where 1 have found a capital opening for a medical man Meanwhile, let Mark or Mary write and tell me how you arc — and for sending you every penny I can spare, trust me. I have not liad all the luck 1 expected ; but am as hearty as a bull, and as merry as a cricket, and fall on my legs, as of old, like a cat. I long to come to you ; but 1 must n't yet. It is near three years since I had a sight of that blessed white head, which is the only thing I care for under the sun, except Mark and little Mary — big Mary I suppose she is now, and engaged to be married to some ' bloated aristocrat.' Best remembrances to old Mark Armsworth. " Your affectionate son, T. T." "Mr. Ileale," said Tom next, "are we Whigs or Tories here ? " " AVliy — ahem, sir, my Lord Scoutbush, who owns most hereabouts, and my Lord Minchampstead, who has bought Carcarrow moors above, — very old Whig connections, both of them ; but Mr. Trebooze of Trebooze, he, again, thor- ough-going Tory — very good patient he was once, and may be again — ha! ha! Gay j'oung man, sir — careless of his health ; so you see as a medical man, sir, — " " Which is the liberal paper ? This one ? Very good." And Tom wrote off to the liberal paper that evening a letter, which bore fruit ere the week's end, in the shape of five col- umns, headed thus : — "AVRECK OF THE 'HESPERUS.' " The follomng detailed account of this lamentable catas- trophe has been kindly contributed by the graphic pen of the only survivor, Thomas Thurnall, Esquire, F. R. C. S., &c. &c! &c., late surgeon on board the ill-fated vessel." Which five columns not only put a couple of guineas into Tom's pocket, but, as he intended they should, brought him before the public as an interesting personage, and served as a very good advertisement to the practice which Tom had already established in fancj'. Tom had not worked long, however, before the coast-guard lieutenant bustled in. lie had trotted home to shave and get his breakfast, and was trotting back again to the shore. " HiUo, Heale ! can I see the fellow who was savtd last night?" 6* 66 PLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. "I am that fellow," says Tom. " The dickens you are 1 you seem to have fallen on yom legs quickly enough." "It's a trick 1 have had occasion to learn, sir," saya Tom. " Can I prescribe for you this morning ? " "Medicine?" roars the lieutenant, laughing. "Catch mo at i1 ! No ; I want you to come down to the shore, and help to identify goods and things. The wind has chopped up north, and is blowing dead on ; and, with this tide, we shall have a good deal on shore. So, if you 're strong enough — " "I 'm always strong enough to do my duty," said Tom. " Hum 1 Very good sentiment, young man. Always strong enough for duty. Hum ! worthy of Nelson ; said pretty much the same, did n't he ? something about duty, I know it was, and always thought it uncommon fine. Now, then, what can you tell me about this business ? " It was a sad story ; but no sadder than hundreds beside. They had been struck by the gale to the westward two days before, with the wind south ; had lost their foretopmast and boltsprit, and become all but unmanageable ; had tried during a lull to rig a jury-mast, but were prevented by the gale, which burst on them with fresh fury from the south- west, with heavy rain and fog ; had passed a light in the night, which they took for Scilly, but which must have been the Longships ; had still fancied that they were safe, run- ning up Channel with a wide berth, when, about sunset, the gale had chopped again to the north-west ; — and Tom knew no more. " I was standing on the poop with the cap- tain about ten o'clock. The last words he said to me were, — 'If this lasts, we shall see Brest harbor to-morrow,' when she struck, and stopped dead. I was chucked clean off the poop, and nearly overboard ; but brought up in the mizzen rigging. Where the captain went, poor fellow. Heaven alone knows ; for I never saw him after. The main-mast went like a carrot. The mizzen stood. I ran round to the cabin doors. There were four men steering ; the wheel had broke out of the poor fellows' hands, and knocked them over, — broken their limbs, I believe. I was stooping to pick them up, when a sea came into the waist, and then aft, washing me in through the saloon doors, among the poor half-dressed women and children. Queer sight, lieutenant ! I 've seen a good many, but never worse than that bolted to my cabin, tied my notes and gold round me, and out again." FLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. 67 " Did n't d«3ert the poor things ? " " Could n't if I 'd tried ; they clung to me like a swarm of taes. 'Gad, sir, that was hard lines ! to have all the prettv (comen one had waltzed with every evening through the trades, and the little children one had been making play- things for, holding round one's knees, and screaming to the docto,r to save them. And how the * * * * was I to save them, sir? "cried Tom, with a sudden burst of feeling, which, as in so many Englishmen, exploded in anger to avoid melting in tears. " Ought to be a law against it, sir," growled the lieuten- ant ; " against women-folk and children going to sea. It's murder and cruelty. I 've been wrecked scores of times ; but it was with honest men, who could shift for themselves, and if they were drowned, drowned ; but did n't screech and catch hold — I could n't stand that ! Well ? " " Well, there was a pretty little creature, an ofBcer's wijlow, and two children. 1 caught her under one arm, and one of the children under the other ; said — ' I can't take all at once ; I '11 come back for the rest, one by one.' — Not that I believed it ; but anything to stop the scream- ing; and I did hope to put some of them out of the reach of the sea, if I could get them forward. I knew the forecastle was dry, for the chief officer was firnig there. You heard him?" " Yes, five or six times ; and then he stopped suddenly." " He had reason. We got out. I could see her nose up in the air forty feet above us, covered with forecabin pas- sengers. I warped the lady and the children upward — Heaven knows how ; for the seA was breaking over us very sharp — till we were at the main-mast stump, and holding on by the wreck of it. 1 felt the ship stagger as if a whale had struck her, and heard a roar and a swish behind me, and looked back, just in time to see the mizzen and poop, and all the poor women and children in it, go bodily, as if they had been shaved off with a knife. I suppose that altered her balance ; for before I could turn again she dived forward, and then rolled over upon her beam-ends to leeward ; and I saw the sea walk in over her from stem to stern like one white wall, and I was washed from my hold, and it was all over." " What became of the lady ? " "I saw a white thing flash by to leeward; — vhat's the use of asking ? " "But the child you held ? " S.S FLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. " I did n't let it go till there was good reasm." "Eh?" Tom tapped the points of his fingers smartly against the side of his head, and then went on, in the same cynicaj drawl, which he had affected throughout : " I heard that — against a piece of timber as we went over- board. And, as a medical man, I considered after that, that 1 had done my duty. Pretty little boy it was, just six years old ; and such a fancy for drawing." The lieutenant was quite puzzled by Tom's seeming non- chalance. " What do you mean, sir ? Did you leave the child to perish ? " " Confound you, sir 1 If you will have plain English, here it is. I tell you I heard the child's skull crack like an egg-shell ! There, let 's talk no more about it, or the whole matter. It 's a bad business, and I 'm not answerable for it, or you either ; so let 's go and do what we are answerable for, and identify — " j " Sir ! you will be so good as to recollect," said the lieu- tenant, with ruffled plumes. " I do ; I do ! I beg your pardon a thousand times, I 'm sure, for being so rude ; but you know as well as I, sir, there are a good many things in the world which won't stand too much thinking over ; and last night was one." " Very true, very true ; but how did you get ashore ? " " I get ashore ? 0, well enough ! Why not ? " "Gad, sir, yoa were near enough being drowned at last ; only that girl's pluck saved you." " Well ; but it did save me ; and here I am, as I knew I should be when I first struck out from the ship." " Knew ! — that is a bold word for mortal man at sea.'' " I suppose it is ; but we doctors, you sec, get into the way of looking at things as men of science ; aiid the ground of science is experience ; and, to judge from experience, it takes more to kill me than I have yet met with. If I had been going to be snuffed out, it would have happened long ago." " Hum I It 's well to carry a cheerful heart ; but the pitcher goes often to the well, and comes home broken at last." " I must be a gutta-percha pitcher, I think, then, or else • There 'e a sweet little cherub who sits up aloft,' &c. a.i Dibdin has it. Now, look at the facts yourself, sir,' FLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. 69 ooutinued the stranger, with a recklessness half true, half \ assumed to escape from the malady of thought. " I don't \ want to boast, sir ; I only want to show you that I have | Bome practical reason for wearing as my motto, ' Never say die.' I have had the cholera twice, and yellow-jack beside ; five several times I have had bullets through me ;, I have been bayonetted and left for dead ; I have been ship- i wrecked three times — and once, as now, I was the only man who escaped ; I have been fatted by savages for bak- ing and eating, and got away with a couple of friends only a day or two before the feast. One really narrow chance I had, which I never expected to squeeze through ; but, ou the whole, I have taken full precautions to prevent ita recurrence." " What was that, then ? " " I have been hanged, sir I " said the doctor quietly. " Hanged ? " cried the lieutenant, facing round upon his strange companion with a visage which asked plaiitly enough — " You hanged ? I don't believe you ; and if you have been hanged, what have you been doing to get hanged ? " " You need not take care of your pockets, sir, — neither robbery nor murder was it which brought me to the gal- lows ; but innocent bug-hunting. The fact is, I was caught by a party of Mexicans, during the last war, straggling after plants and insects, and hanged as a spy. I don't blame the fellows : I had no business where I was ; and they could not conceive that a man would risk his life for a few butterflies." " But if you were hanged, sir — " " Why did I not die ? — By my usual luck. The fellows were clumsy, and the noose would not work ; so that the Mexican doctor, who meant to dissect me, brought me round again ; and being a freemason, as I am, stood by me, 1 — got me safe off, and cheated the devil." The worthy lieutenant walked on in silence, stealing furtive glances at Tom, as if he had been a guest from the other world, but not disbelieving his story in the least. He had seen, as most old navy men, so many strange things happen, that he was prepared to give credit to any tale when told, as Tom's was, with a straightforward and unboastful simplicity. " There lives the girl who saved you," said he, as they passed Grace Harvey's door. | " Ah ! 1 ought to call and pay my respects." 70 PLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LA6END. But Grace was not at home. The wreck had emptieiJ the school ; and Grace had gone after her scholars to the beach. "We couldn't keep her away, weak as she was," said a neighbor, " as soon as she heard the poor corpses were ooming ashore." "Huml" said Tom. "True woman. Quaint,— that appetite for horrors the sweet creatures have. Did you ever see a man hanged, lieutenant ? No? If you had, you would have seen two women in the crowd to one man. Can you make out the philosophy of that ? " " I suppose they like it, as some people do hot pep- pers." "Or donkeys thistles; — find a little pain pleasant! I had a patient once, in France, who read Dumas's ' Crimes Celebres ' all the week, and the ' Vies des Saints ' on Sun- days, and both, as far as I could see, for just the same pur- pose, — to see how miserable people could be, and how tnuch pinching and pulling they could bear." So they walked on, along a sheep-path, and over the Spur, and down to the Cove. It was such a morning as often follows a gale, when the great firmament stares down upon the ruin which it has made, bright, and clear, and bold ; and seems to say, with shameless smile, " There, I have done it ; and am as merry as ever after it all ! " Beneath a cloudless sky, the break- ers, still gray and foul from the tempest, were tumbling in before a cold northern breeze. Half a mile out at sea, the rough backs of the Chough and Crow loomed black and sulky in the foam. At their feet, the rocks and shingle of the Cove were alive with human beings— =■ groups of women and children clustering round a corpse or a chest ; sailors, knee-deep in the surf, hauling at floating spars and ropes ; oil-skinned coast-guardsmen pacing up and down in charge of goods, while groups of farmers' men, who had hurried down from the villages inland, lounged about on the top of tlie cliff, looking sulkily on, hoping for plunder ; and yet half afraid to mingle with the sailors below, who looked on them as an inferior race, and refused, in general, to inter- marry with them. The lieutenant plainly held much the same opinion; for as a party of them tried to descend the narrow path to the beach, he shouted after them to come back. " Eh ? you won't ? " and out rattled from its scabbard tjie old worthy'? sword. " Come bark, T say, you loafing, niich- FLOTSOM, JETaOM, AND LAGEND. 71 >nff, wrecking crow-keepeis ! there are no pickings for you here. Jones, send those fellows back with the bayonet. None but blue-jackets allowed on the beach 1 " And the laborers go up again, grumbling. _ " Can't trust those land-sharks. They 'II plunder even the rings off a corpse's fingers. They think every wreck a god- send. I 've known them, after they 've been driven off, roll great stones over the cliff at night on the coast-guard, just out of spite ; while these blue-jackets here — I can depend on them. Can you tell me the reason of that, as you seem a bit of a philosopher ? " " It is easy enough ; the sailors have a fellow-feeling with sailors, and the landsmen have none. Besides, the sailors are finer fellows, body and soul ; and the reason is that they have been brought up to face danger, and the landsmen have n't." " Well," said the lieutenant, " unless a man has been taught to look death in the face, he never will grow up, I believe, to be much of a man at all." " Danger, my good sir, is a better schoolmaster than all your new model schools, diagrams and scientific apparatus. It made our forefathers the masters of the sea, though they never heard of popular science ; and I dare say could n't, one out often of them, spell their own names." This sentiment elicited from the lieutenant a grunt of approbation, as Tom intended that it should do ; shrewdly arguing that the old martinet was no friend to the modern superstition, that all which is required to cast out the devil is a smattering of the 'ologies. " Will the gentlemen see the corpses ? " asked Jones ; "we have fourteen already;" — and he led the way to where, along the shingle at high-water mark, lay a ghastly row, some fearfully bruised and mutilated, cramped together by the death agony ; others with the peaceful smile which showed that they had sunk to sleep in that strange water- death, amid a wilderness of pleasant dreams. Strong men lay there, little children, women, whom the sailors' wives had covered decently with cloaks and shawls ; and at their heads stood Grace Harvey, motionless, with folded hands,, gazing into the dead faces with her great solemn eyes. Hei\| mother and Captain Willis stood by, watching her with a sort of superstitious awe. She took no notice either of Thurnall or of the lieutenant, as the doctor identified the bodies one by one, without a remark which indicated any human emotion. 72 FLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. " A very sensible man, Willis," said the lieutenant, apart, as Tom knelt a while to examine the crushed features of a sailor ; and then looking up, said, simply, , " James Macgillivray, second mate. Cause of death, con tusions ; probably by the fall of the main-mast " "A very sensible man, and has seen a deal of life, and kept his eyes open ; but a terrible hard-plucked one. Talked like a book to me all the way ; but, be hanged if I don't think lie has a thirty-two pound shot under his ribs instead of a ueart. Doctor Thurnall, that is Miss Harvey, — tlie young person who saved your life last night." Tom rose, took off his hat (Frank Headley's), and made her a bow, of which an ambassador need not have been ashamed. "I ara exceedingly shocked that Miss Harvey should have run so much danger for anything so worthless as my life ! " She looked up at him, and answered, not him, but her own thoughts. " Strange, is it not, that it was a duty to pray for all (hese poor things last night, and a sin to pray for them this morning ? " " Grace, dear 1 " interposed her mother, "don't you hear the gentleman thanking j'ou ? " She started, as one awaking out of a dream, and looked into his face, blushing scarlet. " Good heavens, what a beautiful creature I " said Tom to himself, as a quite new emotion passed through him. Quite new it was, whatsoever it was ; and he was aware of it. He had had his passions, his intrigues, in past years, and prided himself — few men more — on understanding women ; but the expression of the face, and the strange words with which she had greeted him, added to the broad fact of her having offered her own life for his, raised in him a feeling of chival- rous awe and admiration, which no other woman had ever called up. "Madam," he said again, "I can repay you with noth- ing but thanks ; but, to judge from your conduct last night, you are one of those people who will find reward enough iu knowing +hat you have done a noble and heroic action," She look(;d at him very steadfastly, blushing still. Thur- uall. be it understood, was (at least, while his face was in the state in which Heaven intended it to be, half hidden in a pilky-brown beard) a very good-looking fellow ; and (to use Mark Armsworth's description), " as hard as a nail ; as fresh FLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. 73 as a rose ; and stood on liis legs like a game-cock." More- over, as Willis said approvingly, lie had spoken to her " as if he was a duke, and she was a duchess." Besides, by some blessed moral law, the surest way to make one's self love any human being is to go and do him a kindness ; and therefore Grace had already a tender interest in Tom, not because he had saved her, but she him. And so it was that a strange new emotion passed through her heart also, though so little understood by her, that she put it forthwith into words. " You might repay me," she said, in a sad and tender lone. " You have only to command me," said Torn, wincing a little as the words passed his lips. " Then turn to God, now in the day of his mercies. Un- less you have turned to him already." One glance at Tom's rising eyebrows told her what he thought upon those matters. She looked at him sadly, lingeringly, as if conscious that she ought not to look too long, and yet unable to withdraw her eyes. " Ah ! and such a precious soul as yours must be; a precious soul — all taken, and you alone left! God must have high things in store for yon. lie must have a great work for you to do. Else, why are you not as one of these ? 0, think ! where would you have been at this mo ment if God had dealt with you as with them ? " " Where 1 am now, I suppose," said Tom, quietly. " Where you are now ? " " Yes, where I ought to be. I am where I ought to bo now. I suppose, if 1 had found myself anywhere else this morning, I should have taken it as a sign that I was wanted there, and not here." Grace heaved a sigh at words which were certainly start- ling. The Stoic optimism of the world-hardened doctor was new and frightful to her. " My good madam," said he, " the part of Scripture which I appreciate best,just now, is the case of poor Job, where Satan has leave to rob and torment him to the utmost of his wicked will, provided only he does not touch his life. 1 wish," he went on, lowering- his voice, " to tell you some thing which I do not wish publicly talked of, but in whion you may help me. I had nearly fifteen hundred pound.s about me when I came ashore last night, sewed in a bolt round my waist. It is gone. That is all." Torn looked steadily at her as he spoke. She turned 1 74 yLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. pale, red, pale again, her lips quivered, but she spoke nc word. " She has it, as 1 live ! " thought Tom to himself. "' Frailty, thy name is woman!' The canting, little, methodistical humbug ! She must have slipped it off' my waist as 1 lay senseless. I suppose she means to keep il 11' pawn till I redeem it by marrying her. Well, I might take an uglier mate, certainly ; but, when I do enter into the bitter bonds of matrimony, I should like to be sure, beforehand, that my wife was not a thief! " Why, then, did not Tom, if he were so very sure of Grace's having the belt, charge her with the theft ? Be- cause he had found out already how popular she was, and was afraid of merely making himself unpopular ; because, too, he took for granted that whosoever had his belt had hidden it alreadj' beyond the reach of a search-warrant ; and because, after all, an honorable shame restrained him. It would be a poor return to the woman who had saved his life to charge her with theft the next morning ; and, more, there was something about that girl's face which made him fe'el that, if he had seen her put the belt into her pocket before his eyes, he could not find the heart to have sent her to jail. " No ! " thought he ; "I '11 get it out of her, or whoever has it, and stay here till I do get it. One place is as good as another to me." But what was Grace saying ? She had turned, after two or three minutes' astonished silence, to her mother and Captain Willis : " Belt ! Mother ! Uncle ! What is this ? The gentle- man has lost a belt ! " " Dear me I — a belt ? Well, child, that 's not much to grieve over, when the Lord has spared his life and soul from the pit ! " said her mother, somewhat testily. " You don't understand. A belt, I say, full of money — fifteen hundred pounds ; he lost it last night. Uncle I speak, quick ! Did you see a belt ? " Willis shook his head meditatively. " I don't, and jet 1 do, and yet I don't again. My brains were well-nigh washed out of me, I know. However, sir, I '11 think, and talk it over with you too ; for if it be in the village, Ibui^d it ought to be, and will be, with God's help." " Found ? " cried Grace, in so high a key that Tom en treated her to calm herself, and not make the matter public. "Found? yes ; and shall be found, if there be justice in heaven. Shame, that Wesl>country folk should turn i(>l> PLOTSOM, JBXSON, AND LAGEND. 7£ uere ai.d wreckers ! Mariners, too, and mariners' wives, ■who should be praying for those who are wandering far away, each man with his life in his hand ! Ah, what a world ! When will it end ? soon, too soon, when West country folk rob shipwrecked men ! But you will find your belt; yes, sir, you will find it. Wait, till you have learnt, to do without it. Man does not live by bread alone. Do you think he lives by gold ? Only be patient ; and, when 3 cu are worthy of it, you shall find it again, in the Lord's good time." To the doctor this seemed a mere burst of jargon, invented for the purpose of hiding guilt ; and his faith in womankind was not heightened when ho heard Grace's mother say, soUo voce, to Willis, that " In wrecks, and fires, and such like, a many people complained of having lost more than ever they had." " ho ! ray old lady, is that the way the fox is gone ? " quoth Tom to that trusty counsellor, himself, and began carefully scrutinizing Mrs. Harvey's face. It had been very handsome ; it was still very clever ; but the eyebrows, crushed together downwards above her nose, and rising high at the outer corners, indicated, as surely as the rest- less down-dropt eye, a character self-conscious, furtive, capable of great inconsistencies, possibly of great deceits. " You don't look me in the face, old lady ! " quoth Tom to himself " Very well 1 between you two it lies ; unless (hat old gentleman implicates himself also, in his approach- ing confession." He took his part at once. "Well, well, you will oblige me by saying nothing more about it. After all, as this good lady says, the loss of a little money is not worth com- plaining over, when one has escaped with life. Good morn^ ing ; and many thanks for all your kindness ! " And Tom made another grand bow, and went off to the lieutenant. Grace looked after him a while, as one stunned, and then turned to her mother. "Let us go home." " Go home ? Why there, dear ? " " Lot me go home ; you need not come. I am sick of this world. Is it not enough to have misery and death (and she pointed to the row of corpses), but we must have sin, too, wherever we turn? Meanness, and theft, — and ingratitude, too 1 " she added, in a lower tone. She went homeward ; her mother, in spite of her entreat (D PLOTSOM, JETSOM, AND LAGEND. ies, accompanied her ; and, for some reason or other, did not lose sight of her all that day, or for several days after. Meanwhile, Willis had beckoned the doctor aside. His face was serious and sad, and his lips were trembling. " This is a very shocking business, sir. Of course, you 've told the lieutenant." " Not yet, my good sir." " But — excuse my boldness ; what plainer way of get- ting it back from the rascal, whoever he is ? " " Wait a while," said Tom ; " I have my reasons." " But, sir, for the honor of the place, the matter should be cleared up ; and, till the thief 's found, suspicion will lie on a dozen innocent men ; myself among the rest, for that matter." " You ? " said Tom, smiling. " I don't know who I have the honor to speak to ; but you don't look much like a gen- tleman who wishes for a trip to Botany Bay." The old man chuckled, and then his face dropped again. " I 'm glad you take the thing so like a man, sir ; but it is really no laughing matter. It's a scoundrelly job, only fit tor a Maltee oif the Nix Mangeery. If it had been a lot of those carter fellows that had carried you up, I could have understood it ; wrecking 's born in the bone of them ; but for those four sailors that carried you up, 'gad, sir ! they 'd have been shot sooner. I 've known 'em from boys ! " and the old man spoke quite fiercely, and looked np, his lip trembling, and his eye moist. " There 's no doubt that you arc honest, whoever is not," thought Tom ; so he ventured a further question. "Then you were by all the while? " "All the while? Who more? And that's just what puzzles me." "Pray don't speak loud," said Tom. "I have my rea- sons for keeping things quiet." "I tell you, sir I held the maid, and big John Boer_ (Gentleman Jan they call him) held me, and the maid had both her hands tight in your belt. I saw it as plain as I see you, just before the wave covered us, though little I thought what was in it ; and should never have remem- bered you had a belt at all, if I had n't thought over things in the last five minutes." "Well, sir, I am lucky in having come straight to the fountain-head, and must thank you for telling me so frankly what you know." " Tell you, sii ? What else should one do but tell you? 7T I only wish I knew more, and more I '11 know, please the Lord. And you '11 excuse an old sailor (though not of your rank, sir) saying that he wonders a little that you don't tal^e the plain means of knowing more yourself." "May I take the liberty of asking your name?" said Tom, who saw by this time that the old man was worthy of his confidence. " Willis, at your service, sir. Captain they call me, though I'm none. Sailing-master I was, on board of his majesty's ship Niobe, eighty-four;" and Willis raised his hat with such an air, that Tom raised his in return. " Then, Captain Willis, let me have five words with you apart ; first thanking you for having helped to save my life." " I 'm very glad I did, sir ; and thanked God for it on my knees this morning. But you '11 excuse me, sir ; I was thinking — and no blame tome — more of saving my poor maid's life than yours, and no offence to you, for 1 had n't the honor of knowing you ; but for her I 'd have been drowned a dozen times over." "No offence, indeed," said Tom ; and hardly knew what to say next. " May I ask, is she your niece ? I heard her call you uncle." " no, no relation ; only I look on her as my own, poor thing, having no father ; and she always calls me uncle, as most do us old men in the West." " Well, then, sir," said Tom, "you will answer for none of the four sailors having robbed me ? " " I 've said it, sir." " Was any one else close to her when we were brought ashore ? " " No one but I. 1 brought her round myself." " And who took her home ? " " Her mother and I." " Very good. And you never saw the belt after she had her hands in it ? " " No ; I 'm sure not." " Was her mother by her when she was lying en the rock ? " " No ; came up afterwards, just as I got her on her feet." " Humph ! What sort of a character is her mother ? " " 0, a tidy, God-fearing person, enough. One of these Metho Toujjiad heard of Grace's intended dismissal, the curate's ( opinions had assumed a practical importance in his eyes ; ( and he had vowed in secret that, if his cunning failed him not, turned out of her school she should not be. Whether she had stolen his money or not, she had saved his life ; and nobody should wrong her, if he could help it. Besides, perhaps she had not his money. The belt might have slipped off in the struggle ; some one else might have taken it oft' in carrying him up ; he might have mistaken 8 B6 THE WAY TO WIN THEM. the shame of imiocence in her face for that of guilt. Be i' as it might, he had not the heart to make the matter public, and contented himself with staying at Aberalva, and watch- ing for every hint of his lost treasure. By which it befell that he was thinking, the-hajf of every day at least, giflut (If ace Harvey ; and her face was seldom out of his mind's eye ; ~a"nd~lhe more lie looked at it, eithe;- in fancy or in fact, the more did it fascinate him. They met but rarely, and then interchanged the most simple and modest of salutations ; but Tom liked to meet her, would have gladly stopped to chat with her, but, whether from modesty, or from a guilty conscience, she always hurried on in silence. And she ? Tom's request to her, through Willis, to say nothing about the matter, she had obeyed, as her mother also had done. That Tom suspected her, was a thought which never crossed her mind ; to suspect any one herself was in her eyes a sin ; and if the fancy arose that this man or that, among the sailors who had carried Tom up to Heale's, might have been capable of the baseness, she thrust the thought from her, and prayed to be forgiven for her un- charitable judgment. But night and day there weighed on that strange and delicate spirit the shame of the deed, as heavily, if possible, as if she herself had been the doer. There was another soul in danger of perdition ; another black spot of sin, making earth hideous to her. The village was disgraced ; not in the public eyes, true ; but in the eye of Heaven, and in the eyes of that stranger for whom she was beginning to feel an interest more intense than she ever had done in any human being before. Her saintliness (for Grace was a saint in the truest sense of that word) had long since made her free of that " communion of saints" which consists not in Pharisaic isolation from " the world," not in the mutual flatteries and congratulations of a self-conceited clique ; but which bears the sins and carries the sorrows of all around ; whose atmos- phere is disappointed hopes and plans for good ; the indig- nation which hates the sin because it loves the sinner ; and sacred fear and pity for the self-inflicted miseries of those who might be (so runs the dream, and will run till it becomes a waking reality) strong, and free, and safe, by being good and wise. To such a spirit this bold, cunning man had come, stifi"-necked and Heavendotiant, a "brand plucked from the burning ; " and yet equally unconscious of his danger, and thankless for his respite. Given, too. as it THE WAY TO WIN THEM. 87 were, into her hands ; tossed at her feet otit of the very racuth of the pit, — why, but that she might save him ? A far duller heart, a far narrower imagination tlian Grace's, would have done what Grace's did — concentrate themselves round the image of this man with all the love of woman. For, ere long^. Gi"ace found_that she did love this man, as a woman loves but once in her life ; perhaps in all time to come. She found that her heart throlibed, her cheek flushed, when his name was mentioned ; that she watched, almost unawares to herself, for his passing ; and she was not ashamed of the discovery. It was a sort of melancholy comfort to her that there was a great gulf fixed between them. His station, his acquirements, his great connections and friends in London (for all Tom's matters were the gos- sip of the town, as, indeed, he took care that they should be), made it impossible that he should ever think of her ; and therefore she held herself excused for thinking of him, without any fear of that "self-seeking," and "inordinate affection," and " unsanctified passions," which her religious books had taught her to dread. Besides, he was not "a Christian." That five minutes on the shore had told her that ; and even if her station had been the same as his, she must not be "unequally yoked with an unbeliever." And thus the very hopelessness of her love became its food and strength ; the feeling, which, had it been connected even remotely with marriage, she would have checked with maid- enly modesty, was allowed to take immediate and entire dominion ; and she held herself permitted to keep him next her heart of hearts, because she could do nothing for him but pray for his conversion. And pray for him she did, the noble, guileless girl, day and night, that he might be converted ; that he might pros- per, and become — -perhaps rich, at least useful ; a mighty instrument in some good work. And then she would build up one beautiful castle in the air after another, out of her fancies about what such a man, whom she had invested in her own mind with all the wisdom of Solomon, might do if his " talents were sanctified." Then she prayed that_ lie might recover his lost gold — when it was good for him ; that he might discover the thief; no — that would only in- volve fresh shame and sorrow ; that the thief, then, might be brought to repentance, and confession, and restitution. That was the solution of the dark problem, and for that she prayed ; while her face grew sadder and sadder day by day For a while^ over and above the pain which the thefl 88 THE WAT TO WIN THEM. caused her, there came — how could it be otherwise? — sudden pangs of regret ihat this same love was hopeless, a1 least upon this side the gi-ave. Inconsistent, they were, with the chivalrous unselfishness of her usual temper : and as such she dashed them from her, and conquered them, after a while, by a method which many a woman knows to'i well. It was but " one cross more ; " a na,tural part of he. destiny — the child of sorrow and heaviness of heart. Pleasure in joy she was never to find on eaith ; she would find it, then, in grief. And, nursing her own melancholy, she went on her way, sad, sweet, and steadfast, and lavished more care, and tenderness, and even gayety, than ever upon her neighbors' children, because she knew that she should never have a child of her own. But there is a third damsel, to whom, whether more oi less engaging than Grace Harvey or Miss Heale, my readers must needs be introduced — or rather let Miss Heale herself do it, with eyes full of jealous curiosity. " There is a foreign letter for Mr. Thurnall, marked Mon- treal, and sent on here from Whitbury," said she, one morn- ing at breakfast, and in a significant tone ; for the address was evidently in a woman's hand. "For me — ah, yes; I see," said Tom, taking it care- lessly, and thrusting it into his pocket. " Won't you read it at once, Mr. Thurnall ? I 'm sure you must be anxious to hear from friends abroad ; " with an emphasis on the word friends. " I have a good many acquaintances all over the world, but no friends that I am aware of," said Tom, and went on with his breakfast. " Ah, but some people are more than friends ! Are the Montreal ladies pretty, Mr. Thurnall ? " " Don't know ; for I never was there." Miss Heale was silent, being mystified ; and, moreover, not quite sure whether Montreal was in India or in Aus- tralia, and not willing to show her ignorance. She watched Tom through the glass door all the morning to see if he read the letter, and betrayed any emotion at its contents ; but Tom went about his business as usual, and, as far as she saw, never read it at all. However, it was read in duo time ; for, finding himself in a lonely place that afternoon, Tom pulled it out with an anxious face, and read a letter written in a hasty, ill-formed hand, underscored at every fifth vsord, and plentifully bedecked with notes of exclamation. THE WAY TO WIN THEM. 89 " What ! my dearest friend, and fortune still frowns upon you ? Your father blind and ruined 1 Ah, that I were there to comfort him for your sake ! And ah, that I were any- where, doing any drudgery, which might prevent my being dtill a burden to my benefactors ! Not that they are unkind ; not that they are not angels ! I told them at once that you could send me no more money till you reached England, perhaps not then ; and they answered that God would send it ; that He who had sent me to them would send the means of supporting me ; and ever since they have redoubled their kindness. But it is intolerable, this dependence, and on you, too, who have a father to support in his darkness. 0, how I feel for you I But, to tell you the truth, I pay a price for this dependence. 1 must needs be staid and sober ; I must needs dress like any quakeress ; I must not read this book nor that ; and my Shelley — taken from me, I suppose, because it spoke too much ' Liberty,' though, of course, the reason given was its infidel opinions — is replaced by ' Law's Serious Call.' 'T is all right and good, I doubt not ; but it is very dreary ; as dreary as these black fir-forests, and brown snake-fences, and that dreadful, dreadful Cana- dian winter which is past, which went to my very heart, day after day, like a sword of ice. Another such winter, and I shall die, as one of my own humming-birds would die, did you cage him here, and prevent him from fleeing home to the sunny South when the first leaves begin to fall. Dear children of the sun 1 my heart goes forth to them ; and the whir of their wings is music to me, for it tells me of the South, the glaring South, with its glorious flowers, and glorious woods, its luxuriance, life, fierce enjoyments — let fierce sorrows come with them, if it must be so 1 Let me take the evil with the good, and live my rich wild life through bliss and agony, like a true daughter of the sun, instead of crystallizing slowly here into ice, amid countenances rigid with respectability, sharpened by the lust of gain ; without taste, without emotion, without even sorrow ! Let who will be the stagnant mill-head, crawling in its ugly spade-cut ditch to turn the mill. Let me be the wild mountain brook, which foams and flashes over the rocks — what if they tear it ? — it leaps them, nevertheless, and goes laughing on its way. Let me go thus, for weal or woe ! And if I sleep a while, let it be, like the brook, beneath the shade of fra- grant magnolias and luxuriant vines, and image, meanwhile, in my bosom, nothing but the beauty around. "Yes, my friend,.! can live no longer this dull chrysalid 90 THE WAY TO WIN THKM. life, in comparison with which, at times, even the past dart dream seems tolerable ; for amid its lurid smoke were flashes of brightness. A slave ? Well ; I ask myself at times, and what were women meant for but to be slaves ? Free them, and they enslave themselves again, or languish unsatisfied ; for they must love. And what blame to them if they love a white man, tyrant though he be, rather than a fellow-slave ? If the men of our own race will claim us, let them prove themselves worthy of us 1 Let them rise, exterminate their tyrants, or, failing that, show that they know how to die I Till then, those who are the masters of their bodies will be the masters of our hearts. If they crouch before the white like brutes, what wonder if we look up to him as to a god ? Woman must worship, or be wretched. Do I not know it ? Have I not had my dream — too beautiful for earth ? Was there not one, whom you knew, to hear whom call me slave would have been rapture ; — to whom I would have answered on my knees. Master, I have no will but yours ? But that is past — past! One happiness alone was possible for a slave, and even that they tore from me ; and now I have no thought, no purpose, save revenge ! " These good people bid me forgive my enemies. Easy enough for them, who have no enemies to forgive. Forgive ? Forgive injustice, oppression, baseness, cruelty ? Forgive the devil, and bid him go in peace, and work his wicked will ? Why have they put into my hands, these last three years, books worthy of a free nation ? — books which call patriotism divine ; — which tell me how, in every age and clime, men have been called heroes who rose against their conquerors, — women martyrs, who stabbed their tyrants, and then died ? Hypocrites I Did their grandfathers meekly turn the other clieek when your English taxed them somewhat too heavily ? Do they not now teach every school-child to glory in their own revolution, their own declaration of inde- pendence, and to flatter themselves into the conceit that they are the lords of creation, and the examples of the world, because they asserted that sacred right of resistance which is discovered to be unchristian in the African ? They will free us, forsooth, in good time (is it to be in God's good time, or in their own ?), if we will but be patient, and endure the rice-swamp, the scourge, the slave-market, and shame unspeakable, a few years more, till all is ready and safe, — for them. Dreamers, as well as hypocrites ! What nation was ever freed by others' help ? I have been reading historj' to see. — vou do not know how much I have been reading, THE WAY TO WIN THEM. 91 — ind I find that freemen have always freed themselves, as wa must do ; and as they will never let us do, because they know that with freedom must come retribution ; that our Southern tyrants have an account to render which the cold Northerner has no heart to see him pay. For, after all, hp loves the Southerner better than the slave ; and fears hiri more, also. What if the Southern aristocrat, who lords n over him as the panther does over the ox, should transfer (as he has threatened many a time) the cowhide from the negro's loins to his ? No ; we must free ourselves ! A.nd there lives one woman, at least, who, having gained her freedom, knows how to use it in eternal war against all tyrants. 0, I could go down, I think at moments, down to New Orleans itself, with a brain and lips of fire, and speak words — you know how I could speak them — which would bring me in a week to the scourge, perhaps to the stake The scourge I could endure. Have I not felt it already ? Do I not bear its scars even now, and glory in them? for' they were won by speaking as a woman should speak ; and even the fire ? — Have not women been martyrs already ? and could not I be one ? Might not my torments madden a people into manhood, and my name become a war-cry in the sacred fight ? And yet, my friend, life is sweet ! — and my little day has been so dark and gloomy ! — maj I not have one hour's sunshine ere youth and vigor are gone, and my swift-vanishing Southern womanhood wrinkles itself up into despised old age ? 0, counsel me I help me, my friend, my preserver, my true master now ; who is so brave, so wise, so all-knowing, under whose mask of cyni- cism lies hid (have I not cause to know it ?) the heart of a hero. Marie." If Miss Heale could have watched Tom's face as he read, much moi-e could she have heard his words as he finished, all jealousy would have passed from her mind ; for, as he read, the cynical smile grew sharper and sharper, forming a fit prelude for the " little fool 1 " which was his only com- ment. " I thought you would have fallen in love with some hon- est farmer years ago ; but a martyr you shan't be, even if I have to send for you hither ; though how to get you bread to eat I don't know. However, you have been reading your book, it seems, — clever enough you always were, and too clever, — so you could go out as goveruess, or some- thing. Why, here 's a postscript, dated three months after. 92 THE WAY TO WIN THEM. wards ! Ah, I see ; this letter was written last July, in answer to my Australian one. What's the meaning of this ? " And he began reading again. " I wrote so far; but I had not the heart to send it; it was so full of repinings. And since then, — must I tell the truth ? I have made a step ; do not call it a desperate one ; do no., blame me, for your blame I cannot bear ; but I hav3 gone on the stage. There was no other means of independ- ence open t'o^'me ; and I had a dream, I have it still, that there, if anywhere, I might do my work. You told me that I might become a great actress ; I have set my heart on becoming one ; on learning to move the hearts of men, till the time comes when I can tell them, show them, in living flesh and blood, upon the stage, the secrets of a slave's vgorEQWs, and that_slaze a woman. The timeTias not come for that yet here ; but I have had my success already, more than I could have expected ; and not only in Canada but in the States. I have been at New York, acting to crowded houses. Ah, when they applauded me, how I longed to speak 1 to pour out my whole soul to them, and call upon them, as men, to . But that will come in time. I have found a friend, who has promised to write dramas especially for me. Merely republican ones at first ; in which I can give full vent to my passion, and hurl forth the eternal laws of liberty, which their consciences may — must — at last, apply for themselves. But soon, he says, we shall be able to dare to approach the real subject, if not in America, still i^i^urope ; and the^colored- actress wilL stand forth as the championess of her race, of all who are oppressed, in every capital in Europe, save, alas ! Italy, and the Austria who crushes her. I have taken, I should tell you, an Italian name. It was better, I thought, to hide my AMcau taint,, forsooth, for a while. And the wise New Yorkers have been feting, as3Iaria Cordi fiamm a, the white woman (for am I not fairer tETamnarny^an Italian signora?), whom they would have looked en as an inferior being under the name of Marie Lavington .; though there is finer old English blood running in my veins, from your native Berkshire, thej' say, than in any a Down-Easter's who hangs upon my lips. Address me henceforth, then, as La_Signara Maria -Cordifi- amma ; I am learning fast, by the by, to speak Italian. I shall be at Quebec till the end of the month. Then, I believe, I come to London ; and we shall meet once more ; and I shall thank you, thank you, thank you, once mere, for all your marvellous kindness." THE WAY TO WIN THEM. 03 " Humph 1 " said Tom, after a while. " Well, she is old ftaough to choose for herself. Five-and-twenty she nmst be by now. ... As for the stage, I suppose it is the best place for her ; better, at least, than turning governess, and going mad, as she would do, over her drudgery and her dreams. But who is this friend ? Singing-master, scribbler, or political refugee ? or, perhaps, all three together ? A dark lot, those fellows. I must keep my eye on him. Though it 's no concern of mine. I 've done my duty by the poor thing ; the devil himself can't deny that. But somehow, if this play-writing worthy plays her false, I feel very much as if I should be fool enough to try whether I bave forgotten my pistol-8hootin " Mr. Vavasour ? " says Tom, with a low bow. " I am Mr. Vavasour ! " But Elsley was a bad actor, and hesitated and colored so much as he spoke, that, if Tom had known nothing, he might have guessed something, " Nothing serious, I assure you, sir ; unless you are come to announce any fresh symptom." "0, no — not at all — that is, I was passing on my way t'^ the quay, and thought it as well to have your own assur- ain e ; Mrs. Vavasour is so over-anxious." " You seem to partake of her infirmity, sir," says Tom, with a smile and a bow. " However, it is one which does you both honor." An awkward pause. " I hope I am not taking a liberty, sir ; but I think I am bound to — " iN OLD FOE WITH A NEW FACE. 97 " What in Heaven is he going to say ? " thought Elsley to himself, feehng very much inclined to run away. "Thank you for all the pleasure and instruction which your writings have given me in lonely hours, and lonely places, too. Your first volume of poems has been read by one man, at least, beside wild watch-fires in the Rocky Mountains." Tom did not say that he pitched the said volume into the river in disgust ; and that it was, probablj', long since used up as house-material by the caddis-baits of those parts, — for doubtless there are caddises there as elsewhere. Poor Elsley rose at the bait, and smiled and bowed in silence. " I have been so long absent from England, and in utterly wild countries, too, that 1 need hardly be ashamed to ask if you have written anything since ' The Soul's Agonies ' ? No doubt, if you have, I might have found it at Melbourne, on my way home ; but my visit there was a very hurried one. However, the loss is mine, and the fault, too, as I ought to call it." " Pray make no excuses," says Elsley, delighted. " 1 have written, of course. Who can help writing, sir, while Nature is so glorious, and man so wretched ? One cannot but take refuge from the pettiness of the real in the contem- plation of the ideal. Yes, I have ■\-. ritten. I will send you my last book down. I don't knew whether you will find nie improved." " How can I doubt that I shall ? " " Saddened, perhaps ; perhaps more severe in my taste ; but we will not talk of that. I owe you a debt, sir, for having furnished me with one of the most striking ' mo'.ifs ' I ever had. I mean that miraculous escape of yours. It is seldom enough, in this dull every-day world, one stumbles on such an incident ready-made to one's hands, and needing only to be described as one sees it." And the weak, vain man chatted on, and ended by telling Tom all about his poem of " The Wreck," in a tone which seemed to imply that he had done Tom a serious favor, per- haps raised him to immortality, by putting him in a book. Tom thanked him gravely for the said honor, bowed him at last out of the shop, and then vaulted back clean over the counter, as soon as Elsley was out of sight, and com- menced an Indian war-dance of frantic character, accompa^ nying himself by an extemporary chant, with which the name of John Briggs was frequently intermingled : — 9 98 AN OI,D FOE WITH A NEW FACE. " If I don't know you, Johnny my boy, In spite of nil your beard. Why then I am a slower fellow Than ever has yet appeared." " 0, if it was but he ! what a card for me ! Wliat a world il is for poor honest rascals like me to try a fall w ith ! — ' Why did n't I take bad verse to make. And call it poetry, And so make up to an earl's daughter. Which was of high degree ? ' But perhaps 1 'm wrong after all; no, I saw he knew mo, the humbug ! though he never was a humbug, never rone above the rank of fool. However, I '11 make assurance doubly sure, and then, if it pays me not to tell him I know him, I won't tell him ; and if it pays me to tell him, I will tell him. Just as you choose, my good Mr. Poet." And Tom returned to his work singing an extempore parody of " We met, 'twas in a crowd," ending with "And thou art the cause of this anguish, my pill-box,' in a howl so doleful, that Mrs. Heale marched into the shop, evidently making up her mind for an explosion. " I am very sorry, sir, to have to speak to you upon such a subject ; but I must say that the profane songs, sir, which our house is not at all accustomed to them ; not to mention that at your time of life, and in your -position, sir, as my husband's assistant, though there 's no saying " (with a meaning toss of the head) " how long it may last," — and there, her g'-ammar having got into a hopeless knot, she stopped. Tom looked at her cheerfully and fixedly. "I had been expecting this," said he to himself " Better show the old, cat at once that I carry claws as well as she." " There is saying, madam, humbly begging your pardon, how long my present engagement will last. It will last just as long as I like." Mrs. Heale boiled over with rage ; but, ere the geyser could explode, Tom had continued, in that dogged nasal Yankee twang which he assumed when he was venomous, " As for the songs, ma'am, there are two ways of making one's self happy in this life ; you can judge for yourself which is best. One is to do one's work like a man, and hum a tune, to keep one's spirits up ; the othei is, to let the work AN OLU POK WITH A XEW FACE. 9ft go to raok and ruin, and keep one's spirits up, if one is a gentleman, by a little too much brandy ; — if one is a lady, by a little too much laudanum." "Laudanum, sir?" almost screamed Mrs. Heale, turn- ing pale as death. "The pint bottle of best laudanum, which I had from town a fortnight ago, ina'am, is now nearly empty, ma'am. 1 will make aflidavit that I have not used a hundred drops, or drunk one. I suppose it was the cat. Cats have queer tastes in the West, 1 believe. I have heard the cat coming down stairs into the surgery, once or twice after I was in bed ; and so I set my door ajar a little, and saw her come up again ; but whether she had a vial in her paws — " " 0, sir ! " says Mrs. Heale, bursting to tears. " And after the dreadful toothache which I have had this fortnight, vhich nothing but a Httle laudanum would ease it ; and at -ly time of life, to mock a poor elderly lady's infirmities, vhich I did not look for this cruelty and outrage ! " " Dry your tears, my dear madam," says Tom, in his nost winning tone. " You will always find me the thor- Dugh gentleman, I am sure. If I had not been one, it would Have been easy enough for me, with my powerful London connections, — though I won't boast, — to set up in oppo- sition to your good husband, instead of saving him labor in his g-ood old age. Only, my dear madam, how shall I get the laudanum-bottle refilled without the doctor's — you un- derstand ? " The wretched old woman hurried up stairs, and brought lira down a half sovereign out of her private hoard, trem- bling like an aspen-leaf, and departed. "So — scotched, but not killed. You'll gossip and lie too. Never trust a laudanum-drinker. You '11 see me, by the eye of imagination, committing all the seven deadly sins ; and, by the tongue of inspiration, go forth and proclaim the same at the town-head. I can't kill you, and I can't cure you, so I must endure you. What said old Gothe, in all the German I ever cared to recollect ? — ' Der Wallfish hat dooh seine Laus : Muss auch die meine haben.' " Now, then, for Mrs. Penberthy's draughts. I wonder Qow that pretty schoolmistress goes on ? If she were but honest, now, and had fifty thousand pounds — why, then, she would n't marry me ; and so, why, now, I would n't mai ry she, - -as my native Bcrshire grammar would render it." CHAPTER VII. LA COEDIFIAMMA. This chapter shall begin, good reader, with <.me of tbos.e startling bursts of " illustration," with which our niosl popular preachers aio wont now to astonish and edify their hearers, and after starting with them at the opening of the sermon from the north pole, the Crystal Palace, or the nearest cabbage-garden, float them safe, upon the gushing stream of oratory, to the safe and well-known shores of doctrinal commonplace, lost in admiration at the skill of the good man who can thus make all roads lead, if not to heaven, at least to strong language about its opposite. True, the log- ical sequence of their periods may be, like that of the com- ing one, somewhat questionable, reminding one at moments of Pluellen's comparison between Macedon and Monmouth, Henry the Fifth and Alexander ; but, in the logic of the pulpit, all 's well that ends well, and the end must needs sanctify the means. There is, of course, some connection or other between all things in heaven and earth, or how would the universe hold together ? And if one • has not time to find out the true connection, what is left but to invent the best one can for one's self ? Thus argues, proba- bly, the popular preacher, and fills his pews, proving there- by so clearly the excellence of his method. So argue also, probably, the popular poets, to whose " luxuriant fancy ' ' everything suggests anything, and thought plays leap- frog with thought down one page and up the next, till one fancies at moments that they had got permission from the higher powers, before looking at the universe, to stir it all Mp a few times with spoon. It is notorious, of course, that poets and preachers alike pride themselves upon this meth- od of astonishing ; that the former call it " seeing the infi- nite in the finite:" the latter, "pressing secular matters into the service of the sanctuary," and other pretty phrases which, for reverence' sake, shall be omitted. No doubt they have their reasons and their reward. The style takes ; the style pays'; and what more would you have ? Let them go (ioo> LA COllDIFIAMMA. 101 on rejoicing, in spite of the cynical pedants in the Satuiday Review, who dare to accuse (will it be believed?) these luminaries of the age of talking merely irreverent nonsense. For my part, so evident is the success (sole test of meriti which has attended the new method, that it is worth while trying whether it will not be as taking in the novel as it is in the chapel ; and therefore the reader is requested to pay special attention to the following paragraph, modelled care- fully after the exordiums of a famous Irish preacher, now drawing crowded houses at the west end of the town. As thus : — " It is the pleasant month of May, when, as in old Chaucer's time, the ' Smale foules maken melodie, That slepen alle night Tfith open eye So priketh hem nature in their oorages. Then longeu folli to goe on pilgrimages, And specially from every shire's end Of Englelond, to Exeter-hall they wend,' till the low places of the Strand blossom with white cravats, those lilies of the valley, types of meekness and humility, at least in the pious palmer — and why not of similar vir- tues in the undertaker, the concert-singer, the groom, the tavern-waiter, the croupier at the gaming-table, and Frederic Augustus Lord Scoutbush, who, white-cravatted like the rest, is just getting into his cab at the door of the Never- mind-what Theatre, to spend an hour at Kensington before s-auntering in to Lady M 's ball ? "Why not, I ask, at least in the case of little Scoutbush ? For guardsman, though he be, coming from a theatre and going to a ball, there is meekness and humility in him at this moment, as well as in the average of the white-cravatted gentlemen who trotted along that same pavement about eleven o'clock this forenoon. Why should, not his white cravat, like theirs, be held symbolic of that fact ? How- ever, Scoutbush belongs rather to the former than the latter of Chaucer's categories; for a 'smale foule ' he is, a little bird-like fellow, who maketh melodie also, and warbles like a c ock-robin ; we cannot liken him to any more dignified songster. Moreover, he will sleep all night with open eye ; for he will not be in bed till five to-morrow morning ; and pricked he is, and that sorely, in his courage ; for he is as much in love as his little nature can be with the new actress. La Signora Cordifiamma, of the Never-mind-what Theatre " 102 LA CORDIFIAMMA. How exquisitely, now (for this is one of the rare occa sions in which a man is permitted to praise himself), is established hereby an unexpected bond of linked sweetness long drawn out between things which had, ere they came beneath the magic touch of genius, no more to do with each other than this book has with the Stock Exchange ! Who would have dreamed of travelling from the Tabard in South- wark to the last new singer, via Exeter-hall and the lilies of the valley, and touching en passant on two cardinal virtues and an Irish viscount ? But see ; given only a little impudence, and less logic, and, hey presto ! the thing is done ; and all that remains to be done is to dilate (as the Eev. Dionysius O'Blareaway would do at this stage of the process) upon the moral question which has been so cun- ningly raised, and to inquire, firstly, how the virtues of meekness and humility could be predicated of Frederic Au- gustus St. Just, Viscount Scoutbush and Baron Torytown, in the peerage of Ireland ; and, secondly, how those virtues were called into special action, by his questionably wise attachment to a new actress, to whom he had never spoken a word in his life. First, then, "Little Freddy Scoutbush," as his compeers irreverently termed him, was, by common consent of her majesty's Guards, a " good fellow." Whether the St. James's Street definition of that adjective be the perfect one or not, we will not stay to inquire ; but in the Guards' club-house it meant this : that Scoutbush had not an enemy in the world, because he deserved none ; that he lent, and borrowed not ; gave, and asked not again ; envied not ; hustled not ; slandered not ; never bore malice, never said a cruel word, never played a dirty trick, would hear a fel- low's troubles out to the end, and, if he could not counsel, at least would not laugh at them, and at all times and in all places lived and let live, and was accordingly a general favorite. His morality was neither better nor worse than the average of his companions ; but, if he was sensual, he was at least not base ; and there were frail women who blessed " little Freddy " and his shy and secret generosity Ibr having saved them from the lowest pit. Au reste, he was idle, frivolous, useless ; but with these two palliating facts, that he knew it, and regretted it ; and that he never had a chance of being aught else. His father and mother had died when he was a child. He had been sent to Eton at seven, where he learnt nothing, and into the Guards at seventeen, where he learnt less than nothing LA CORDIFIA:,rMA. 103 llis aunt, old Lady Knockdown, who was a kind old Irish woman, an ex-blue and ex-beauty, now a high Evan- gelical professor, but as worldly as her neighbors in prac- tice, had tried to make him a good boy in old times ; but she had given him up, long before he left Eton, as a " ves sel of wrath " (which he certainly was, with his hot Irish temper) ; and since then she had only spoken of him with moans, and to him just as if he and she had made a compact to be as worldly as they could, and as if the fact that he was going, as she used to tell her private friends, straight to a certain place, was to be utterly ignored before the pressing reality of getting him and his sisters well married. And so it befell, that Lady Knockdown, like many more, having begun with too high (or at least precise) a spiritual standard, was forced to end practically in having no stand- ard at all ; and that for ten years of Scoutbush's life, nei- ther she nor any other human being bad spoken to him as if he had a soul to be saved, or any duty on earth save to eat, drink, and be merry. And all the while there was a quaint and pathetic con- sciousness in the little man's heart that he was meant for something better ; that he was no fool, and was not in- tended to be one. He would thrust his head into lectures at the Polytechnic and the British Institution, with a dim en- deavor to guess what they were all about, and a good- natured envy of the clever fellows who knew about " sci- ence, and all that." He would sit and listen, puzzled and admiring, to the talk of statesmen, and confide his woe afterwards to some chum. — " Ah, if I had had the chance now that my cousin Chalkclere has I If I had had two or three tutors, and a good mother, too, keeping me in a coop, and cramming me with learning, as they cram chickens for the market, I fancy I could have shown my comb and hackles in the House as well as some of them. I fancy I could make a speech in Parliament now, with the help of a little Irish impudence, if I only knew anything to speak about." „ So Scoutbush clung, in a childish way, to any superior ( n'ja'n-who wbald take notice of him, and not treat him as the fribble which he seemed. He had taken to that well-known artist, Claude Mellot, of late, simply from admiration of his brilliant talk about art and poetry, and boldly confessed that he preferred one of Mellot's orations on the sublime and beautiful, though he didn't understand a word of them, to the songs and jokes (very excellent ones Jn their way) of 104 LA CORDIPIAMMA. j Mr. Hector Ilarkaway, the distinguished Irish novelist, and j boon companion of her majesty's Life Guards Green. His I special intimate and mentor, however, was a certain Majoi / Campbell, of whom more hereafter; who, however, being a Icfty-minded and perhaps somewhat Pharisaic person, made heavier demands on Scoutbush's conscience than he had yet been able to meet ; for, fully as he agreed that Hercules' choice between pleasure and virtue was the right one, yet he could not yet follow that ancient hero along the thorny path, and confined his conception of " duty " to the minimum guard and drill. He had estates in Ireland, which had almost cleared themselves during his long minority, but which, since the famine, had cost him about as much as they brought hira in ; and estates in the West, which with a Welsh slate-quarry brought him in some seven or eight thousand a year, and so kept his poor little head above water, to look pitifully round the universe, longing for the life of him to make out what it all meant, and hoping that somebody would come and tell him. So much for his meekness and humility in general ; as foi the particular display of those virtues which he has shown yto-day, it must be understood that he has given a promise Ito Mrs. Mellot not to make love to La' Cordifiamma ; and, Hon that only condition, has been allowed to meet her to- might at one of Claude Mellot's petits soupers. La' Cordifiamma has been staying, ever since she came to England, with the Mellots, in the wilds of Brompton ; unapproachable there, as in all other places. In public, she is a very Zenobia, who keeps all animals of the other sex at an awfal distance ; and of the fifty young puppies who are raving about her beauty, her air, and her voice, not one has obtained an introduction ; while Claude, whose studio used to be a favorite lounge of young guardsmen, has, as civilly as he can, closed his doors to those magnificent personages ever since the new singer became his guest. Claude Mellot seems to have come in to a fortune of late years, large enough, at least, for his few wants. He paints no longer, save when he chooses ; and has taken a little old house in one of those back lanes of Brompton, where islands of primeval nursery garden still remain undcvoured oy the advancing surges of the brick and mortar deluge. There he liveo, happy in a green lawn, and windows open- ing thereon ; in three elms, a cork, an ilex, and a mulberry, with a great standard pear, for flower and foliage the queen Df all suburban trees. There he lies on the lawn, iipor LA COEDIFIAMMA. 105 Btiange ekins, the summer's day, playing with cats and dogs, and making love to Sabina, who has not lost hei beauty in the least, though she is on the wrong side of five- and-thirty. He deludes himself, too, into the belief that he is doing something, because he is writing a treatise on the " Principles of Beauty ; " which will be published, probably,, about the time the Thames is purified, in the season of Lat-j ter Lammas and the Greek Kalends ; and the more certainly > as, because he has wandered into the abyss of conic sec- tions and curves of double curvature, of which, if the trutt must be spoken, he knows no more than his friends of the Life Guards Green. To this charming little nest has Lord Scoutbush procured an evening's admission, after abject supplication to Sabina, who pets him because he is musical, and solemn promises neither to talk nor look any manner of foolishness. " My dearest Mrs. Mellot," says the poor wretch, " I will be good, indeed I will ; I will not even speak to her. Only let me sit and look, — and — and, — why, I thought you understood all about such things, and could pity a poor fellow who was spoony." And Sabina, who prides herself much on understanding such things, and on having, indeed, reduced them to a science in which she gives gratuitous lessons to all young gentlemen and ladies of her acquaintance, receives him pityingly, in that delicious little back drawing-room, whither whosoever enters is in no huriy to go out again. Claude's house is arranged with his usual defiance of all conventionalities. Dining or drawing room proper there is none ; the large front room is the studio, where he and Sabina eat and drink, as well as work and paint ; but out of it opens a little room, the walls of which are so covered with gems of art, — (where the rogue finds money to buy them is a puzzle), — that the eye can turn nowhere without taking in some new beauty, and wandering on from picture to statue, from portrait to landscape, dreaming and learnina: afresh after every glance. At the back, a glass bay has been thrown out, and forms a little conservatory, forever fresh and gay with tropic ferns and flowers ; gaudy orchids dangle from the roof, creepers hide the framework, and you hardly see where the room ends, and the winter-garden begins ; and in the centre an ottoman invites you to lounge. It costs Claude money, doubtless ; but he has his excuse, — " Having once seen the tropics, I cannot live without some lore-tokens from their lost paradises ; and which is the 106 LA COEDIKAMMA. wiser plan, to spend money on a horse and biougIi.im, which we don't care to use, and on scrambling into society at the price of one great stupid party a year, or to make our little world as pretty as we can, and let those who wish to see us take us as they find us ? " In this " nest," as Claude and Sabina call it, sacred to the everlasting billing and cooing of that sweet little pair of buman love-birds who have built it, was supper set. La Oordifiamma, all the more beautiful from the languor pro- luced by the excitement of acting, lay upon a sofa ; Claude attended, talking earnestly ; Sabina, according to her cus- tom, was fluttering in and out, and arranging supper with her own hands ; both husband and wife were as busy as bees ; and yet any one accustomed to watch the little ins and outs of married life, could have seen that neither forgot for a moment that the other was in the room, but basked and purred, like two blissful cats, each in the sunshine of the other's presence ; and he could have seen, too, that La Cordifiamma was divining their thoughts, and studying all its little expressions, perhaps that she might use them on the stage ; perhaps, too, happy in sympathy with their hap- piness ; and yet there was a shade of sadness on her fore- liead. Scoutbush enters, is introduced, and receives a salutation from the actress haughty and cold enough to check the for- wardest ; puts on the air of languid nonchalance, which is considered — or was before the little experiences of the Crimea — fit and proper for young gentlemen of rank and fashion. So he sits down, and feasts his 'foolish eyes upon his idol, hoping for a few words before the evening is over. Did I not say well, then, that there was as much meekness, and humility under Scoutbush's white cravat as undei others ? But his little joy is soon dashed ; for the black boy announces — seemingly much to his own pleasure — a tall personage, whom, from his dress and moustachio, Scoutbush takes for a Frenchman, till he hears him called ^§tan^aver;2The intru"aer is introduced to Lord Scout- TmsKTwEIch^ ceremony is consummated by a microscopic nod on either side ; he then walks straight up to La Cordifiamma ; and Scoutbush sees her cheeks flush as he does so. He takes her hand, speaks to her in a low voice, and sits down by her, Claude making room for him ; and the two engage earnestly in conversation. Scoutbush is much inclined to walk out of the room — was he brought there to see that ? Of course, however, he LA ou 're a good fellow, and I think you and I shall «uit." Tom had his doubts, but did not express them. "Gome up this afternoon and see my child ; Mrs. Tre-' oooze thinks it's got swelled glands, or some such woman's \ nonsense. Bother them, why can't they let the child alone, \ fussing and doctoring ? and she will have you. Heard of you from Mrs. Vavasour, I believe. Our doctor and I have quarrelled, and she said if 1 could get you, she 'd sooner have you than that old rum-puncheon Heale. And then, vou 'd better stop and take poUuck, and we' 11 make a night of it." " I have to go round Lord Minchampstead's estates, and will take you on my way. But I 'm afraid I shall be too dirty to have the pleasure of dining with Mrs. Trebooze coming back." " Mrs. Trebooze ! She must take what I like ; and what 's good enough for me is good enough for her, I hope. Come as you are — Liberty Hall at Trebooze ; " and out he swag- gered. "Does he bully her?" thought Tom, "or is he hen- pecked, and wants to hide it ? 1 '11 see to-night, and play my cards accordingly." All which Miss Heale had heard. She had been peeping and listening at the glass door, and her mother also ; for no sooner had Trebooze entered the shop, than she had run off to tell her mother the surprising fact, — Trobooze's custom having been, for some years past, courted in vain by Heale. So Miss Heale peeped and peeped at a man whom she regarded with delighted curiosity, because he bore the repu- tation of being " such a naughty wicked man I " and " so very handsome, too, and so distinguished as he looks ! " said the poor little fool, to whose novel-fed imagination Mr. Trebooze was an ideal Lothario. But the surprise of the two dames grew rapidly as they heard Tom's audacity towards the country aristocrat. " Impudent wretch I " moaned Mrs. Heale to herself. " He 'd drive away an angel, if he came into the shop." "0, ma I Hear how they are going on now 1 " " I can't bear it, my dear. This man will be the ruin of us. His manners is those of the potrhouse, when the cloven foot is shown, which it 's his nature as a child of wrath, and wc can't expect otherwise." " 0, ma ! do you hear that Mr. Trebooze has asked him to dinner? " 11 122 TAKING ROOT. " Nonsense ! " But it was true. " Well 1 if there an't the signs of the end of the world, which is ? All the years your poor father has been here, and never so much as send him a hare, and now this young, penniless interloper ; and he to dine at Trebooze off purple and fine linen 1 " "There is not much of that there, ma; I'm sure they are poor enough, for all his pride ; and as for her — " " Yes, my dear ; and as for her, though we haven't mar- ried squires, my dear, yet we have n't been squires' house- maids, and have adorned our own station, which was good enough for us, and has no need to rise out of it, nor ride on Pharaoh's chariot-wheels after filthy lucre — " Miss Heale hated poor Mrs. Trebooze with a bitter hatred, because she dreamed insanely that, but for her, she might have secured Mr. Trebooze for herself. And though her ambition was now transferred to the unconscious Tom, that need not make any difference in the said amiable feeling. But that Tom was a most wonderful person, she had no doubt. He had conquered her heart — so she informed her self passionately again and again ; as was very necessary, seeing that the passion, having no real life of its own, required a good deal of blowing to keep it alight. Yes, he had conquered her heart, and he was conquering all hearts likewise. There must be some mystery about him — there should be. And she settled in her novel-bewildered brain that Tom must be a nobleman in disguise — probably a for- eign prince, exiled for political offences. Bah ! Perhaps too many lines have been spent on the poor little fool ; but as such fools exist, and people must be as they are, there is j no harm in drawing her, and in asking, too. Who will help those young girls of the middle class, who, like Miss Heale, are often really less educated than the children of their parents' workmen ; sedentary, luxurious, full of petty vanity, gossip, and intrigue, without work, without pur- pose, except that of getting married to any one who wil' ask them — bewildering brain and heart with novels, which, after all, one hardly grudges them ; for what other means have they of learning that there is any fairer, nobler life possible, at least on earth, than that of the sordid money- getting, often the sordid puffery and adulteration, which is the atmosphere of their home ? Exceptions there are, in thousands, doubtless ; and the families of the great city tradesmen stand, of course, on far higher ground, and are TAKING ROOT. 123 i.ften far better educated, and more liigh-minded, than the Ene ladies, their parents' customers. But, till soac better! plan of education than the boarding-school is devised for, them ; till our towns shall see something like in kind to,, though sounder and soberer in quality than, the high schools of America ; till in country villages the ladies who interest themselves about the poor will recollect that the farmers' and tradesmen's daughters are just as much in want of their influence as the charity children, and will yield a far richer return for their labor, though the one need not interfere with the other ; so long will England be full of Miss Heales ; \ fated, when they marry, to bring up sons and daughters as sordid and unvrholesome as their mothers. Tom woi-ked all that day in and out of the Pentremochyn cottages, noting down nuisances and dilapidations But his head was full of other thoughts ; for he had received, the evening before, news which was to him very important, for more reasons than one. The longer he stayed at Abo;.. ralva^the longer he felt inclined to stay. The strange attraction of Grace had, as we have seen, something to do with his purpose ; but he saw, too, a good opening for one of those country practices, in which he seemed more and more likely to end. At his native Whitbury, he knew, there was no room for a fresh medical man ; and gradually he was making up his mind to settle at Aberalva ; to buy out Heale, either with his own money (if he recovered it), or with money borrowed from Mark ; to bring his father down to live with him, and, in that pleasant wild western place, fold his wings after all his wanderings. And there- fore certain news, which he had obtained the night before, was very valuable to him, in that it put a fresh person into his power, and might, if cunningly used, give him a hold upon the ruling family of the place, and on Lord Scoutbush himself. He had found out that Lucia and Elsley were unhappy together ; and found out, too, a little more than was there to find. He could not, of course, be a. month among the gossips of Aberalva without hearing hints that the great folks at the court did not always keep their tem- pers ; for, of family jars, as of everything else on earth, the great and just law stands true : " What you do in the closet shall be proclaimed on the housetop." But the gossips of Aberalva, as women are too oftei wont to do, had altogether taken the man's side in the rjuairel. The reason was, I suppose, that l/ucia, conscious )f having fallen somewhat in rank, " held up her head " to 124 TAKING HOOT, Mrs. Trebooze and Mrs. Heale (as tl.ey themselves es. pressed it), and to various other little notabilities of tb.« neighborhood, rather more than she would have done had she married a man of her own class. She was afraid that they might boast of being intimate with her ; that they might take to advising and patronizing her as an inexpe- rienced young creature ; afraid, even, that she might be tempted, in some unguarded moment, to gossip with them, confide her unhappiness to them, in the blind longing to open her heart to some human being ; for there were no resident gentry of her own rank in the neighborhood. She was too high-minded to complain much to Clara ; and her sister Valencia was the very last person to whom she would confess that her runaway-match had not been altogether successful. So she lived alone and friendless, shrinking into herself more and more, while the vulgar women round mistook her honor for pride, and revenged themselves ac- cordingly. She was an uninteresting fine lady, proud and cross, and Elsley was a martyr. " So handsome and agree- able as he Was (and, to do him justice, he was the former, and he could be the latter when he chose), to be tied to that unsociable, stuck-up woman ; " and so forth. All which Tom had heard, and formed his own opinion thereof ; which was : " All very fine ; but I flatter myself I know a little what women are made of; and this I know, that where man and wife quarrel, even if she ends the battle, it is he who has ^ begun it. I never saw a case yet where the man was not the most in fault ; and I'll lay my life that John Briggs has led her a pretty life ; — what else could one expect of him ? " However, he held his tongue, and kept his eyes open withal whenever he went up to Penalva Court, which he liad to do very often ; for, though he had cured the children of their ailments, yet Mrs. Vavasour was perpetually more or less unwell, and he could not cure her. Her low spirits, headaches, general want of tone and vitality, puzzled hira at first ; and would have puzzled him longer, had he not settled with himself that their cause was to be sought in the mind, and not in the body ; and, at last, gaining courage from certainty, he had hinted as much to Miss Clara, the night before, when she came down (as she was very fond of doing) to have a gossip with him in his shop, under pre- tence of fetching medicine. " I don't think I shall send Mrs. Vavasour any more, Miss Clara. There is no use running up a long bill while TAKING ROOT. ' 1 21 I do no good ; and, what is more, suspect that, I can do uone, poor lady." And he gave the girl a look which seemed to say, " You had better tell me the truth, for I know everything already." To which Clara answered by trying to find out how much he did know. But Tom was a cunninger diplomatist than she ; and in ten minutes, after having given solemn prom- ises of secrecy, and having, by strong expressions of con- tempt for Mrs. Heale and the village gossips, made Clara understand that he did not at all take their view of the case, he had poured out to him, across the counter, all Clara's long-pent indignation and contempt. " I never said a word of this to a living soul, sir ; I was too proud, for my mistress' sake, to let vulgar people know what we suffered. We don't want any of their pity indeed ; but you, sir, who have the feelings of a gentleman, and know what the world is, like ourselves — " " Take care," whispered Tom ; " that daughter of Ueale's may be listening." " I 'd pull her hair about her ears if I caught her I " quoth Clara; and then ran on to tell how Elsley " never kept no hours, nor no accounts either ; so that she has to do every- thing, poor thing ; and no thanks, either. And never knows when he '11 dine, or when lie '11 breakfast, or when he '11 be in, wandering in and out like a madman ; and sits up all night, writing his nonsense. And she '11 go down twice and three times a night, in the cold, poor dear, to see if he 's fallen asleep ; and gets abused like a pickpocket for her pains " (which was an exaggeration) ; " and lies in bed all the morning, looking at the flies, and calls after her if his shoes want tying, or his finger aches ; as helpless as the babe unborn ; and will never do nothing useful himself, not even to hang a picture or move a chair, and grumbles at her if he sees her doing anything, because she an't listen- ing to his prosodies, and snaps, and worrits, and won't speak to her sometimes for a whole morning, the brute 1 " " But is he not fond of his children ? " " Fond ? yes, his way, and small thanks to him, the little angels ! To play with 'em when they 're good, and tell them cock-and-a-bull fairy tales — wonder why he likes to put such stuff into their heads — and then send 'em out of the room if they make a noise, because it splits his poor nead, and his nerves are so delicate. Wish he had hers, or mine cither. Doctor Thurnall ; then he 'd know what nerves was in a frail woman, which ho uses ue both as his negra 11* 126 TAKING ROOT. slaves, or would if I did n't stand up to him pretty sharp now and then, and give him a piece of my mind ; which I will do, like the faithful servant in the parable, if he kills me for it. Doctor Thurnall 1 " " Does he drink ? " asked Tom, bluntly. ■'He!" she answered, in a tone that semed to ia.ply that even one masculine vice would have raised him in her eyes. " He 's not man enough, 1 think ; and lives ou his slops, and his coffee, and his tapioca ; and how 's he ever to have any appetite, always a sitting about, heaped up togetlier over his books, with his ribs growing into his backbone ? If he 'd only go and take his walk, or get a spade and dig in the garden, or anything but them ever- lasting papers, which 1 hates the sight of; " and so forth. From all which Tom gathered a tolerably clear notion of the poor poet's state of body and mind ; as a self-indulgent, unmethodical person, whose ill-temper was owing partly to perpetual brooding over his own thoughts, and partly to dyspepsia, brought oh by his own effeminacy, — in both cases not a thing to be pitied or excused by the hearty and valiant doctor. And Tom's original contempt for Vavasour took a darker form, perhaps one too dark to be altogether just. " I '11 tackle him, Miss Clara." " I wish you would ; I 'm sure he wants some one to look after him just now. He 's half wild about some review that somebody 's been and done of him in the Times, and has been flinging the paper abnut the room, and calling all mankind vipers, and adders, and hooting herds, — it 's as bad as swearing, I say, — and ^running to my mistress, to make her read it, and see how the whole world 's against him, and then forbidding her to defile her eyes with a word of it ; and so on, till she 's been crying all the morning, poor dear ! " "Why not laughing at him ? " " Poor thing ; that 's where it all is, — she 's just as anxious about his poetry as he is, and would write it just as well aa he, I 'U warrant, if she had n't better things to do ; and all her fuss is that people should ' appreciate ' him. He 's alwajs talking about appreciating, till 1 hate the sound of the word. How any woman can go on so after a man that behaves as he does! But we 're all soft fools, I'm afraid, Doctor Thurnall." And Clara began a languishing look oi two across the counter, which made Tom answer to an imaginarj' Doctor Heale, whom be heard calling from within TAKING ROOT. 12? _" Yes, doctor 1 coming this moment, doctor I Good-by, Miss Clara. I must hear more next time ; you may trust me, you know ; secret as the grave, and always your friend, and your lady's too, if you will allow me to do myself such nn honor. Coming, doctor I " And Tom bolted through the glass door, till Miss Clara was safe on her way up the street. " Very well," said Tom to himself " Knowledge is power; but how to use it? To get into Mrs. Vavasour' confidence, and show an inclination to take her part against her husband ? If she be a true woman, she would order me out of the house on the spot, as surely as a fish-wife would fall tooth and nail on me as a base intruder, if I dared to interfere with her sacred right of being beaten by her hus- band when she chooses. No ; I must go straight to John Briggs himself, and bind him over to keep the peace ; and I think I know the way to do it." So Tom pondered over many plans in his head that day ; and then went to Trebooze, and saw the sick child, and sat down to dinner, where his host talked loud about the Tre- boozes of Trebooze, who fought in the Spanish Armada — or against it ; and showed an unbounded belief in the great- ness and antiquity of his family, combined with a historic accuracy about equal to that of a good old dame of those parts, who used to say that "her family comed over the water, that she knew ; but whether it were with the Con- queror, or whether it were wi' Oliver, she could n't exactly say I " Then he became great on the subject of old county fami- lies in general, and poured out all the vials of his wrath on " that confounded upstart of a Ne.wbroomj Lord Minchamp- stead, supplanting all the fine oTd blood in the country — Why, sir, that Pentremochyn and Carcarrow moors too ( good shooting there, there used to be), they ought to be mine, sir, if every man had his rights I " And then followed a long story ; and a confused one withal, for by this time Mr. Trebooze had drunk a great deal too much wine, and, as he became aware of the fact, became propor- tionally anxious that Tom should drink too much also ; out of which story Tom picked the plain facts, that Trebooze's father had mortgaged Pentremochyn estate for more than its value, and that Lord Minchampstead had foreclosed ; while some equally respectable uncle, or cousin, just deceased, had sold the reversion of Carcarrow to the same mighty cofr ten lord twenty years before. " And this is the way, sir. 128 TAKING ROOT. the land gets eaten up by a set of tinkers, aud cobbleis, and money-lending jobbers, who suck the blood of the aristoc- racy ! " The oaths we omit, leaving the reader to peppet Mr. Trebooze's conversation therewith up to any degree of heat which may suit his palate. Tom sympathized with him deeply, of course ; and did not tell him, as he might have done, that he thought the sooner such cum here rs of the ground were cleared off, whether by an encumbered estates' act, such as we may see yet in England, or by their own suicidal folly, the bet- ter it would be for the universe in general, and perhaps for themselves in particular. But he only answered with pleas- ant effronteiy — " Ah, my dear sir, I am sure there are hundreds of good sportsmen who can sympathize with you deeply. The wonder is, that you do not unite and defend yourselves. For not only in the west of England, but in Ireland, and in Wales, and in the north, too, if one is to believe those novels of Gurrer Bell's and her sister, there is a large and important class of landed proprietors of the same stamp as yourself, and exposed to the very same dangers. I wonder at times that you do not all join, and use your combined influence on the government." " The government ? All a set of Whig traitors 1 Call themselves conservative, or what they like. Traitors, sir ! from that fellow Peel upwards — all combined to crush the landed gentry — ruin the Church — betray the country party — D'Israeli — Derby — Free-trade — ruined, sir ! — May- nooth — Protection — treason — help yourself, and pass the — you know, old fellow — " And Mr. Trebooze's voice died away, and he slumbered, but not softly. The door opened, and in marched Mrs. Trebooze, tall, tawdry, and terrible. " Mr. Trebooze ! it 's past eleven o'clock I " " Hush, my dear madam ! He is sleeping so sweetly," said Tom, rising, and gulping down a glass, not of wine, but of strong ammonia and water. The rogue had put a vial thereof in his pocket that morning, expecting that, as Trebooze had said, he would be required to make a night of it. She was silent ; for to rouse her tyrant was more than she dare do. If awakened, he would crave for brandy and water; and if he got that sweet poison, he would probably TAKING ROOT. 129 become furioi.s. Shb stood for half a minute ; and Tom, who knew her story well, watched her curiously. "She is a fine woman ; and with a far finer heart in her than that brute. Her eyebrow and eye, now, have the true Siddons' stamp; the great white forehead, and sharp-cut little nostril, breathing scorn — and what a Siddons-like attitude I — I should like, madam, to see the child again before I go." "If you are fit, sir," answered she. "Brave woman; comes to the point at once. I am a poor doctor, madam, and not a country gentleman ; and have neither money nor health to spend in drinking too much wine." " Then why do you encourage him in it, sir ? I had expected a very different sort of conduct from you, sir." Tom did not tell her, what she would not (no woman will) understand, that it is morally and socially impossible to escape from the table of a fool, till either he or you are con- quered ; and she was too shrewd to be taken in by common- place excuses ; so he looked her very full in the face, and replied a little haughtily, with a slow anu delicate articu lation, using his lips more than usual, and yet compressing them — " I beg your pardon, madam, if I have unintentionally displeased you ; but if you ever do me the honor of know- ing more of me, you will be the first to confess that youi words are unjust. Do you wish me to see your son, or dc you not ? " Poor Mrs. Trebooze looked at him, with an eye which showed that she had been accustomed to study character keenly, perhaps in self-defence. She saw that Tom was sober ; he had taken care to prove that, by the way in which he spoke ; and she saw, too, that he was a better lared man than her husband, as well as a cleverer. She dropped her eye before his ; heaved something very like a sigh . and then said, in her curt, fierce tone, which yet implied 8 sort of sullen resignation — " Yes ; come up stairs." Tom went up, and looked at the boy again, as he lay sleeping. A beautiful child of four years old, as large and fair a child as man need see ; and yet there was on him thej curse of his father's sins ; and Tom knew it, and knew thatj his mjtherknew it also. " What a noble boy ! " said he, after looking, not without honest admiration, upon the sleeping child, who had kicked 130 TAKING ROOT. off his bed-clothes, and lay in a wild, graceful attitude, as children are wont to lie ; just like an old Greek statue of Cupid. " It all depends upon you, madam, now." " On me ? " she asked, in a startled, suspicious tone. " Yes. He is a magnificent boy ; but — I can only give palliatives. It depends upon your care, now." "He will have that, at least, I should hope," said blEj aottled. " And on your influence ten years hence," went on Tom. " My influence ? " " Yes ; only keep him steady, and he may grow up a magnificent man. If not — you will excuse me — but you must not let him live as freely as his father ; the constitu- tions of the two are very different." " Don't talk so, sir. Steady ? His father makes him drunk now, if he can ; teaches him to swear, because it is manly — Grod help him and me 1 " Tom's cunning and yet kind shaft had sped. He guessed that with a coarse woman like Mrs. Trebooze his best plan was to come as straight to the point as he could ; and he was right. Ere half an hour was over, that woman had few secrets on earth which Tom did not know. " Let me give you one hint before I go," said he, at last. " Persuade your husband to go into a militia regiment." " Why ? He would see so much company ; and it would be so expensive." " The expense would repay itself ten times over. The company which he would see would be sober company, in which he would be forced to keep in order. He would have something to do in the world ; and he 'd do it well He is just cut out for a soldier, and might have made a gallant one by now, if he had had other men's chances. He will find he does his militia work well ; and it will be a new interest, and a new pride, and a new life to him. And meanwhile, madam, what you have said to me is sacred. I do not pretend to advise or interfere. Only tell me if 1 can be of use — how, when, and where — and command me as your servant." And Tom departed, having struck another root ; and was up at four the next momingnjhe neveFlTorked- at night, for, he said, he never could trust after-dinner brains), draw Ing out a detailed report of the Pentremochyn cottages « hirh he sent to Lord Minchampstead, with — TAKING BOOT. 131 "And your lordship will excuse my saying, that to put' the cottages into the state in which your lordship, with jrour known wish for progress of all kinds, would wish to see them, is a responsibility which I dare not take on my- self, as it would involve a present outlay of not less than 4.50J. This sum would be certainly repaid to your lordship and yc/ur tenants, in the course of the next three years, by the saving in poor-rates ; an opinion for which I subjoin my grounds drawn from the books of the medical officer, Mr. Heale ; but the responsibility, and possible unpopular- ity, which employing so great a sum would involve, is more than I can, in the present dependent condition of poor-law medical officers, dare to undertake, in justice to Mr. Heale, my employer, save at your special command. I am bound, however, to inform your lordship, that this outlay would, I think, perfectly defend the hamlets, not only from that visit of the cholera which we Lave every reason to expect next summer, but also from those zymotic diseases which (as your lordship will see by my returns) make up more than sixty-five per cent, of the aggregate sickness of the estate." Which letter the old cotton lord put in his pocket, rode into Whitbury therewith, and showed it to Mark Arms- worth. " Well, Mr. Armsworth, what am I to do ? " " Well, my lord ; I told you what sort of man you 'd have to do with ; one that does his work thoroughly, and, I think, pays you a compliment by thinking that you want it done thoroughly." Lord Minchampstead was of the same opinion ; but he did not say so. Few, indeed, have ever heard Lord Min- champstead give his opinion ; though many a man has seen him act on it. " I '11 send down orders to my agent." "Don't." " Why, then, my good friend ? " " Agents are always in league with farmers, or guard- ians, or builders, or drain-tile makers, or attorneys, or bankers, or somebody ; and either you '11 be told that the work don't need doing ; or have a job brewed out of it, to get off a lot of unsalable drain-tile, or cracked soil-pans ; or to get farm ditches dug, and perhaps the highway rates saved building culverts, and fifty dodges beside. I know theii game ; and you ought, too, by now, my lord, begging youi pardon." 132 TAKING ROOT. " Perhaps I do, Mark," said his lordship, with a chuckle. " So, I say, let the man that found the fox run the foi", and kill the fox, and take the brush home." "And so it shall be," quoth my Lord Minchamp' stead. CHAPTER IX. AM I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTER?" But what was the mysterious bond between La Cordifi- Bmma and the American, which had prevented Sc'outbusU from following the example of his illustrious progenitor, and taking a viscoujitess from off the stage ? Certainly, any one who had seen her with him on the morning after Scoutbush's visit to the Mellots, would have paid that, if the cause was love, the love was all on one side. She was standing by the fireplace in a splendid pose, her arm resting on the chimney-piece, the book from which she had been reciting in one hand, the other playing in her black curls, as her eyes glanced back ever and anon at her own profile in the mirror. Stangrave was half sitting in a low chair by her side, half kneeling on the footstool before her, looking up beseechingly, as she looked down tyran- nically. " Stupid, this reciting ? Of course it is ! I want reali- ties, not shams ; life, not the stage ; nature, not art." " Throw away the book, then, and words, and art, and live ! " She knew well what he meant ; but she answered as if she had misunderstood him. " Thanks, I live already, and in good company enough. My ghost-husbands are as noble as they are obedient ; do all which I demand of them, and vanish on my errands when I tell them. Can you guess who my last is ? Since I tired of Egmont, I have taken Sir Galahad, the spotless knight. Did you ever read the Mort d' Arthur ? " " A hundred times." " Of course ! " and she spoke in a tone of contempt so strong that it must have been affected. " What have yon not read ? And what have you copied ? No wonder that these English have been what they have been for centuries, while their heroes have been the Galahads, and their Horaei the Mort d' Arthur." 12 fi33^ 134 " AM " Enjoy your Utopia ! " said he, bitterly. " Do you fancy they acted up to their ideals ? They dreamed of the Quest of the Sangreal ; but which of them ever went upon it ? " " And does it count for nothing that they felt it the finest thing in the world to have gone on it, had it been possible ? Be sure, if their ideal was so self-sacrificing, so lofty, their practice was ruled by something higher than the almighty dollar." " And so are some other men's, Marie," answered he, reproachfully. "Yes, forsooth; — when the almighty dollar is there already, and a man has ten times as much to spend every day as he can possibly invest in French cookery, and wines, and fine clothes, then he begins to lay o.ut his surplus nobly on self-education, and the patronage of art, and the theatre — for merely assthetic purposes, of course ; and, when the lust of the flesh has been satisfied, thinks himself an arch- angel, because he goes on to satisfy the lust of the eye and the pride of life. Christ was of old the model, and Sir Galahad was the hero. Now the one is exchanged for Gothe, and the other for Wilhelm Meister." " Cruel I You know that my Gothe fever is long past. How would you have known of its existence if I had not confessed it to you as a sin of old years ? Have I not said to you, again and again, show me the thing which you would have me do for your sake, and see if I will not do it ? " " For my sake ? A noble reason ! Show yourself th« thing which you will do for its own sake ; because it ought to be 'done. Show it yourself, I say ; I cannot show you. If your own eyes cannot see the Sangreal, and the angela who are bearing it before you, it is because they are dull and gross ; and am I Milton's archangel, to purge them with euphrasy and rue ? If you have a noble heart, you will find for yourself the noble Quest. If not, who can prove to you that it is noble ? " And, tapping impatiently with her foot, she went on to herself — " A gentle sound, an awful light ! Three angels bear the holy Grail : With folded feet, in stoles of white. On sleeping wings they sail. Ah ! blessed -vision ! blood of God ! The spirit beats her mortal bars, Ab down dark tides the glory slides. And star-like mingles with the stall." 'AM I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTER?" 136 " WTiy, there was not a knight of the round table, was there, who did not give up all to go upon that Quest, though only one was found worthy to fulfil it ? But, now-a-days, the i nights sit drinking hock and champagne, or drive sulky- wagons, and never fancy that there is a Quest at all.'' ■' ^Vhy talk in these parables ? " " So the Jews asked of their prophets. They are no parables to my ghost-husband Sir Galahad. Now go, if you please ; I must be busy, and write letters." He rose with a look, half of disappoiutment, half amused, and yet his face bore a firmness which seemed to say, " You will be mine yet." As he rose, he cast his eye upon the writing-table, and upon a letter which lay there ; and, as he did so, his cheek grew pale, and his brows knitted. The letter was addressed to "Thomas Thurnall, Esq., Aberalva." " Is this, then, your Sir Galahad ? " asked he, after a pause, during which he had choked down his rising jeal- ousy, while she looked first at herself in the glass, and then at him, and then at herself again, with a determined and triumphant air. " And what if it be ? " " So he, then, has achieved the Quest of the Sangreal ? " Stangrave spoke bitterly, and with an emphasis upon the "he;" and — " What if he have ? Do you know him ? " answered she, while her face lighted up with eager interest, which she did not care to conceal, perhaps chose, in her woman's love of tormenting, to parade. " I knew a man of that name once," he replied, in a care- fully careless tone, which did not deceive her ; " an adven- turer — a doctor, if I recollect — who had been in Texas and Mexico, and I know not where besides. Agreeable enough he was ; but, as for your Quest of the Sangreal, whatever it may be, he seemed to have as little notion of anything beyond his own interest as any Greek I ever met." " Unjust I Your words only show how little you can see ! That man, of all men I ever met, saw the Quest at once, and followed it, at the risk of his own life, as far at least aa he was concerned with it ; — ay, even when he pretended to see nothir.g. 0, there is more generosity in that man's affected selfishness, than in all the noisy good nature which I have met with in the world ! Thurnall ? 0, you know his nobleness as little as he knows it himself 1 " 136 "am I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTER?" " Then he, I am to suppose, is your phantom-husband, for as long, at least, as your present dream lasts ? " asked he, with white, compressed lips. " He might have been, I believe," she answered, care- lessly, "if he had even taken the trouble to ask me." " Marie, this is too much I Do you not know to whom you speak ? To one who deserves, if not common courtesy, at least common mercy." " Because he adores me, and so forth? So has many a man done ; or told me that he had done so. Do you know that I might be a viscountess to-morrow, so Sabina informs me, if I but chose ? " " A viscountess ? Pray accept your effete English aris- tocrat, and, as far as I am concerned, accept my best wishes for your happiness." " My effete English aristocrat, did I show him that pedi- gree of mine which I have ere now threatened to show you, would perhaps be less horrified at it than you are." " Marie, 1 cannot bear this ! Tell me only what you mean. What care I for pedigree ? I want you — worship you — and that is enough, Marie ! " " You admire me because I am beautiful. What thanks do I owe you for finding out so patent a fact ? What do you do more to me than I do to myself? " and she glanced back once more at the mirror. " Marie, you know that your words are false ; I do more — " " You admire me," interrupted she, " because I am clever. What thanks to you for that, again ? What do _,ou do more to me than you do to yourself? " " And this, after all — ". "After what? After you found me, or rather I found you — you the critic, the arbiter of the green-room, the highly-organized do-nothing, teaching others how to do nothing most gracefully ; the would-be Gbthe, who must, for the sake of his own self-development, try experiments on every weak woman whom he met. And I, the new phenomenon, whom you must appreciate to show your own taste, patronize to show your own liberality, develop to show your own insight into character. You found yourself mistaken I You had attempted to play with the tigress — and behold she had talons ; to angle for the silly fish — and behold the fish was the better angler, and caught you." " Marie, have mercy I Is your heart iron ? " "am I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTER?" IB't '' No ; but fire, as my name shows ; " and she stood look- ing down upon him with a glare of dreadful beauty. "Fire, indeed!" " Yes, fire, that I may scorch you, kindle you, madden you, to do my work, and wear the heart of fire which I wear day and night ! " Stangrave looked at her startled. Was she mad ? Ilei face did not say so ; her brow was white, her features calm, her eye fierce and contemptuous, but clear, steady, full of meaning. " So 3'ou know Mr. Thurnall ? " said she, after a while. " Yes ; why do you ask ? " " Because he is the only friend I have on earth." " The only friend, Marie ? " "The only one," answered she, calmly, "who, seeing the right, has gone and done it forthwith. When did you see him last ? " "I have not been acquainted with Mr. Thurnall for some years," said Stangrave, haughtily. " In plain words, you have quarrelled with him ? " Stangrave bit his lip. " He and I had a difference. lie insulted my nation, and we parted." She laughed a long, loud, bitter laugh, which rang through Stangrave's ears. " Insulted your nation ? And on what grounds, pray ? " " About that accursed slavery question ! " La Cordifiamma looked at him with firm-closed lips a while. " So, then 1 I was not aware of this I Even so long ago you saw the Sangreal, and did not know it when you saw it! No wonder that since then you have been staring at it for months, in your very hands ; played with it, admired it, made verses about it, to show ofi' your own taste ; and yet were blind to it the whole time ! Farewell, then ! " " Marie, what do you mean ? " and Stangrave caught both her hands. " Hush, if you please. I know you are eloquent enough, when you choose, though you have been somewhat dumb and monosyllabic to-night in the presence of the actress whom you undertook to educate. But I know that you can be oloquent, so spare me any brilliant appeals, which can only go to prove that already settled fact. Between you and me lie two great gulfs. The one I have told you 12* 138 "am I XOT A WOMAN AND A SISTER?" of; and from it I shrink. The other I have not told you of ^ from it you would shrink." "The first is your Quest of the Sangreal." She smiled assent, bitterly enough. "And the second ? " She did not answer. She was looking at herself in the mirror ; and Stangrave, in spite of his almost doting affec- tion, flushed with anger, almost contempt, at her vanity. And yet, was it vanity which was expressed in that face ? No ; but dread, horror, almost disgust, as she gazed with sidelong, startled eyes, struggling, and yet struggling in vain, to turn her face from some horrible sight, as if her own image had been the Gorgon's head. " What is it ? Marie, speak 1 " But she answered nothing.' For that last question she had no heart to answer ; no heart to tell him that in her veins were some drops, at least, of the blood of slaves. Instinctively she had looked round at the mirror — for might he not, if he had eyes, discover that secret for him-, self ? Were there not in her features traces of that taint ? And as she looked, — was it the mere play of her excited fancy, — or did her eyelid slope more and more, her nostrils shorten and curl, her lips enlarge, her mouth itself protrude ? It was more than the play of fancy ; for Stangrave saw it as well as she. Her actress's imagination, fixed on the African type with an intensity proportioned to her dread of seeing it in herself, had moulded her features, for the moment, into the very shape which it dreaded. And Stan- grave saw it, and shuddered as he saw. Another half minute, and that face also had melted out of the mirror, at least for Marie's eyes ; and in its place an ancient negress, white-haired, withered as the wrinkled ape, but with eyes closed — in death. Marie knew that face well ; a face which haunted many a dream of hers ; once seen, but never forgotten since ; f6r to that old dame's coffin had her mother, the 'gay quadroon woman, flaunting in finery which was the price of shame, led Marie when she was but a three years' child ; and Marie had seen her bend over the corpse, and call it her dear old granny, and weep bitter tears. Suddenly she shook off the spell, and looked round and down, terrified, self-conscious. Her eye caught Stan- grave's ; she saw, or thought she saw, by the expression of his face, that he knew all, and burst away with a shriek. lie sprang up and caught her in his arms. "Marie J "am I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTER?" 139 Beloved Marie 1 " She looked up at him, struggling ; the dark expression had vanished, and Stangrave's love-blinded eyes could see nothing in that face but the refined and yet rich beauty of the Italian. "Marie, this is mere madness; you excite yourself tilj you know not what you say, or what you are — " ••■ I know what I am," murmured she ; but he hurried on unheeding. " You love me, you know you love me ; and you madden yourself by refusing to confess it 1 " He felt her heart throb as he spoke, and knew that he spoke truth. " What gulfs are these you dream of ? No ; I will not ask. There is no gulf between me and one whom I adore, who has tlirown a spell over me which I cannot resist, which I glory in not resisting ; for you have been my guide, my morning star, which has awakened me to new life. If I have a noble purpose upon earth, if I have roused myself from that con- ceited dream of self-culture which now looks to me so cold, and barren, and tawdry, into the hope of becoming useful, beneficent — to whom do I owe it but to you, Marie ? No ; there is no gulf, Marie 1 You are my wife, and you alone ! " And he held her so firmly, and gazed down upon her with such strong manhood, that her woman's heart quailed ; and he might, perhaps, have conquered then and there, had not Sabina, summoned by her shriek, entered hastily. " Good heavens ! what is the matter ? " "Wait but one minute, Mrs. Mellot," said he; "the next, I shall introduce you to my bride." " Never ! never I never I " cried she, and, breaking from him, flew into Sabina's arms. " Leave me, leave me to bear my curse alone ! " And she broke out into such wild weeping, and refused so wildly to hear another word from Stangrave, that he went away in despair, the prize snatched from his grasp in the very moment of seeming victory. He went in search of Claude, who had agreed to mee; him at the exhibition in Trafalgar Square. Thither Stan- grave rolled away in his cab, his heart full of many thoughts. Marie's words about him, though harsh and exaggerated, were on the whole true. She had fascinated him utterly. To marry her was now the one object of hia life ; she had awakened in him, as he had confessed, noble desires to be useful ; but the discovery that he v^as to ba useful to the negro, that abolition was the Sangreal in the 140 "am I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTKE ? " quest of which he was to go forth, was as disagreeable a discovery as he could well have made. From public life in any shape, with all its vulgar noise, its petty chicanery, its pandering to the mob whom he despised, he had always shrunk, aa so many Americans ( f his stamp have done. He had no wish to struggle, unre- warded and disappointed, in the ranks of the minority ; while to gain place and power on the side of the majority, was to lend himself to that fatal policy which, ever since the Missouri Compromise of 1820, has been gradually mak- ing the northern states more and more the tools of the southern ones. He had no wish to be threatened in Con- gress with " being nailed to the counter like base coin," nor to be told that he and the millions of the north were the "white slaves" of a southern oligarchy. He had enough comprehension of, enough admiration for, the noble prin- ciples of the American Constitution to see that the demo- cratic mobs of Irish and Germans, who were stupidly play- ing into the hands of the Southerners, were not exactly carrying them out ; but he had no mind to face either Irish or Southerners. The former were too vulgar for his- deli- cacy ; the latter too aristocratic for his pride. Sprung, as he held (and rightly), from as fine old English blood as any Virginian (though it did happen to be Puritan, and not Cavalier), he had no lust to come in^o contact with men who looked upon him as the English nobleman of yesterday looks upon the English merchant of to-day. So he com- pounded with his conscience by ignoring the whole matter, and by looking on the state of public affairs on his side of the Atlantic with a cynicism which very soon (as is usual with rich men) passed into Epicureanism. Poetry and music, pictures and statues, amusement and travel, became his idols, and cultivation his substitute for the plain duty of patriotism ; and, wandering luxuriously over the world, he learnt to sentimentalize over cathedrals and monas- teries, pictures and statues, saints and kaisers, with a lazy regret that " such forms of beauty and nobleness " were no longer possible in a world of scrip and railroads ; but without any notion that it was his duty to reproduce, in his own life, or that of his country, as much as he could of the said beauty and nobleness. And now he was sorely tried. It was interesting enough to "develop" the pecu- liar turn of Marie's genius by writing for her plays about liberty, just as he would have writter plays about jealousy •AM I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTER?" 141 or anything' else for representing which she had "capa- bilities." But to be called on to act in that Slavery ques* tion, — the one on which he knew (as all sensible Amer- icans do) that the life and death of his country depended, and which for that very reason he had carefully ignored till a more convenient season, finding in its very difficuirj and danger an excuse for leaving it to solve itself; — to have this thrust on him, and by her, as the price of the thing which he must have, or die ! If she had asked for hia right hand, he would have given it sooner ; and he entered the Royal Academy that day in much the same humor as that of a fine lady who should find herself suddenly dragged from the ball-room into the dust-hole, in her tenderest array of gauze and jewels, and there peremptorily compelled to sift the cinders, under the superintendence of the sweep and the pot-boy. Glad to escape from questions which he had rather not answer too soon, he went in search of Claude, and found him before one of those pre-Raphaelite pictures, which Claude does not appreciate as he ought. "Desinit in Culicem mulier formosa superne," said Slau- grave, as he looked over Claude's shoulder ; " but I suppose he followed nature, and copied his model." "That he didn't," said Claude; "for I know who his model was ; but, if he did, he had no business to do so. I object on principle to these men's notion of what copying nature means. I don't deny him talent. I am ready to confess that there is more imagination and more honest work in that picture than in any one in the room. The hys- terical, all but grinning joy, upon the mother's face, is a miracle of truth. I have seen the expression more than once ; doctors see it often, in the sudden revulsion from terror and agony to certainty and peace ; I only marvel where he ever met it. But the general effect is unpleasing, marred by patches of sheer ugliness, like that child's foot. There is the same mistake in all his pictures. Whatever they are, they are not beautiful ; and no magnificence of surface coloring will make up, in my eyes, for wilful ugliness of form. I say that nature is beautiful; and therefore nature cannot have been truly copied, or the general effect would have been beautiful also. I never found out the fal- lacy till the other day, when looking at a portrait by one of them. The woman for whom it was meant was standing by my side, young and lovely ; tae portrait hung there neithei 142 "am I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTER?" young nor lovely, but a wrinkled caricature twenty years older than the model." " I surely know the portrait you mean ; — Lady D 's." "Yes. He had simply, under pretence of following nature, caricatured her into a woman twenty years older than she is." " But did you ever see a modern portrait which more perfectly expressed character ; which more completely ful- 61Ied the requirements which you laid down a few evenings since ? " " Never ; and that makes me all the more cross with the wilful mistake of it. He had painted every wrinkle." " Why not, if they were there ? " " Because he had painted a face not one twentieth of the size of life. What right had he to cram into that small space all the marks which nature had spread over a far larger one ? " " Why not, again, if he diminished the marks in propor- tion ? " "Just what neither he nor any man could do, without making them so small as to be invisible, save under a micro- scope ; and the result was, that he had caricatured every wrinkle, as his friend has in those horrible knuckles of Shem's wife. Besides, I deny utterly your assertion that one is bound to paint what is there. On that very fallacy are they all making shipwreck." " Not paint what is there ? And you are the man who talks of art being highest when it copies nature." " Exactly. And therefore you must paint, not what is there, but what you see there. They forget that human beings are men with two eyes, and not daguerreotype lenses with one eye, and so are contriving and striving to intro- duce into their pictures the very defect of the daguerreo- type which the stereoscope is required to correct." " I comprehend. They forget that the double vision of our two eyes gives a softness, and indistinctness, and roundness, to every outline." " Exactly so ; and therefore, while for distant landscapes, motionless, and already softened by atmosphere, the daguerreotype is invaluable (I shall do nothing else this summer but work at it), yet for taking portraits, in any true sense, H will be always useless, not only for the reason 1 just gave, but for another one which the pre- Raphaelites have forgotten." " Because all the features cannot be in focus at once f " "AM I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTER?" 143 " no, I am not speaking of that. Art, for aught I know, may overcome that ; for it is a mere defect in the instru- ment. What I mean is this : it tries to represent as still what never yet was still for the thousandth part of a sec ond ; that is, a human face ; and as seen by a spectator who is perfectly still, which no man ever yet was. My dear fellow, don't you see that what some painters call idealiz- ing a portrait is, if it be wisely done, really painting for you the face which you see, and know, and love ; her ever- shifting features, with expression varying more rapidly than the gleam of the diamond on her finger ; features which you, in your turn, are looking at with ever-shifting eyes ; while, perhaps, if it is a face which you love and have lin- gered over, a dozen other expressions equally belonging to it are hanging in your memory, and blending themselves with the actual picture on your retina ; till every little angle is somewhat rounded, every little wrinkle somewhat soft- ened, every little shade somewhat blended with the sur- rounding light, 80 that the sum total of what you see, and are intended by Heaven to see, is something far softer, lovelier — younger, perhaps, thank Heaven ! — than it would look if your head was screwed down in a vice, to look with one eye at her head screwed down in a vice also ; though even that, thanks to the muscles of the eye, would not pro- duce the required ugliness ; and the only possible method of fulfilling the pre-Raphaelite ideal would be, to set a petri- fied Cyclops to paint his petrified brother." " You are spiteful." "Not at all. I am standing up for art, and for nature, too. For instance : Sabina has wrinkles. She says, too, that she has gray hairs coming. The former I won't see, and therefore don't. The latter I can't see, because I am not looking for them." " Nor I either," said Stangrave, smiling. " I assure you the announcement is new to me." " Of course. Who can see wrinkles in the light of these eyes, that smile, that complexion ? " " Certainly," said Stangrave, "if I asked for her portrait, as I shall do some day, and the artist sat down and painted the said ' wastes of time,' on pretence of their being there, I should consider it an impertinence on his part. What business has he to spy out what nature is taking such charming trouble to conceal?" "Again," said Claude, "such a face as Cordifiamma's When it is at rest, in deep thought, there are lines in it 144 "AM I which utterly puzzle one, — touches which are Easteni Kabyle, almost Quadroon." Stangrave started. Claude went on, unconscious : " But who sees them in the light of that beauty ? They are defects, no doubt, but defects which no one would observe without deep study of the face. They express her character no more than a scar would ; and therefore whea I paint her, as I must and will, I shall utterly ignore them. If, on the other hand, I met the same lines in a face which I knew to have Quadroon blood in it, I should religiously copy them ; because then they would be integral elements of the face. You understand ? " "Understand? — yes," answered Stangrave, in a tone which made Claude look up. That strange scene of half an hour before flashed across him. What if it were no fancy ? What if Marie had Afri- can blood in her veins ? And Stangrave shuddered, and felt for the moment that thousands of pounds would be a cheap price to pay for the discovery that his fancy was a false one. "Yes — — I beg your pardon !" said he, recovering himself " I was thinking of something else. But, as you say, what if she had Quadroon blood ? " " I ? I never said so, or dreamt of it." " ! I mistook. Do you know, though, where she came from ? " " I ? You forget, my dear fellow, that you yourself intro- duced her to us." " Of course ; but I thought Mrs. Mellot might — women alwaj'S make confidences." " All we know is, what I suppose you knew long ago, that her most intimate friend, next to you, seems to be an old friend of ours, named Thurnall." " An old friend of yours ? " " 0, yes ; we have known him these fifteen y ears. Met him first at JEans ; and afteFthat went round the world with him, and saw infinite adventures. Sabina and I spent three months with him once, among the savages in a South-sea island, and a very pretty romance our stay and escape would make. We were all three, I believe, to have been cooked and eaten, if Tom had not got us off by that wonderful address which, if you know him, you must know well enough." "Yes," answered Stangrave, coldly, as in a dream, "I have known Mr. Thurnall 'u past years, but not in conneo "AM I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTER?" 145 lion with La Signora Cordifiamma. I was not aware till this moment — this morning, 1 mean — that they knew each other." " You astound me ; why, she talks of him to us all day long, as of one to whom she has the deepest obligations ; elie was ready to rush into our arms when she first found that we knew him. He is a greater hero in her eyes, I sometimes fancy, than even you are. She does nothing (or fancies that she does nothing, for you know her pretty wil- fulness) without writing for his advice." "la hero in her ej'es ? I was really not aware of that fact," said Stangrave, more coldly than ever; for bitter jealousy had taken possession of his heart. " Do you know, then, what this same obligation may be ? " " I never asked. I hate gossiping, and I make a rule to inquire into no secrets but such as are voluntarily confided to me ; and I know that she has never told Sabina.'- " I suppose she is married to him. That is the simplest explanation of the mystery." "Impossible! What can you mean? If she ever mar ries living man, she will marry you." "Then she will never marry living man," said Stangrave, to himself " Good-by, my dear fellow ; I have an engage- ment at the Traveller's." And away went Stangrave, leav- ing Claude sorely puzzled, but little dreaming of the powder-magazine into which he had put a match. But he was puzzled still more that night, when by the latest post a note came — " From Stangrave ! " said Claude. " Why, in the name of all wonders ! " and he read : " Good-by. I am just starting for the Continent, on sudden and urgent business. What my destination is I can hardly tell you yet. You will hear from me in the course of the summer." Claude's countenance fell, and the note fell likewise. Sabina snatched it up, read it, and gave La Cordifiamma a Ic'ok which made her spring from the sofa, and snatch it in turn. She read it through with trembling hands and blanching cheeks, and then dropped fainting upon the floor. They laid her on the sofa, and while they were recovering her, Claude told Sabina the only clue which he had to the American's conduct, namely, that afternoon's conversation Sabina shook her head over it ; for to her, also, the Amer loan's explanation had suggested itself. Was Marie Thum' 1.S 146 "am I NOT all's wife? Or did she — it was possible, however piiinfiil — stand to him in some less honorable relation, which she would fain forget now, in a new passion for Stangrave ? For that Marie loved Stangrave, Sabina knew well enough. The doubt was so ugly that it must be solved ; and when 6113 had got the poor thing safe into her bed-room, she alluded to it as gently as she could. Marie sprang up in indignant innocence. " He ? Whatever he may be to others, I know not ; bat to rae he has been purity and nobleness itself — a brother, a father I Yes ; if I had no other reason for trusting him, I should love him for that alone, that however tempted he may have been — and Heaven knows he was tempted — he could respect the honor of his friend, though that frien I lay sleeping in a soldier's grave ten thousand miles away." And Marie threw herself upon Sabina's neck, and under the pressure of her misery sobbed out to her the story of her life. What it was need not be told. A little common sense, and a little knowledge of human nature, will enable the reader to fill up for himself the story of a beautiful slave. Sabina soothed her and cheered her ; and soothed and cheered her most of all by telling her in return the story of her own life — not so dark a one, but almost as sad and strange. And poor Marie took heart, when she found in her great need a sister in the communion of sorrows. " And you have been through all this, so beautiful and bright as you are ! You whom I should have fancied always . living the life of the humming-bird ; and yet not a scar or a wrinkle has it left behind." " They were there once, Marie ; but God and Claude smoothed them away." " 1 have no Claude, — and no God, I think at times." " No God, Marie 1 Then how did you come hither ? " Marie was silent, reproved ; and then said, passionately — " Why does he not right my people ? " That question was one to which Sabina's little scheme of the universe had no answer ; why should it, while many a scheme which pretends to be far vaster and more infallible lias none as yet ? So she was silent, and sat with Marie's head upon her bosom, caressing the black curls, till she had soothed her into sobbing exhaustion. "There, lie there and rest; you shall be my child, my poor Marie. I have a fresh child every week ; but I shall " AM I NOT A WOMAN AND A SISTEE 7 '' 147 fiud plenty of room in my heart for you, my poor hunteil deer." "You will keep my secret ? " " Why keep it ? IVo one need be ashamed of it here in free England." , "But he — he — you do not know, Sabina ! Those North-/ emers, with all their boasts of freedom, shrink from i-s just ^ as much as our own masters." " 0, Marie, do not be so unjust to him ! He is too noble, and you must know it yourself." " Ay, if he stood alone ; if he were even going to live in England ; if he would let himself be himself. But public opinion," sobbed the poor self-tormentor, — " It has been his God, Sabina, to be a leader of taste and fashion — ad- mired and complete — the Crichton of Newport and Sarato- ga. And he could not bear scorn, the loss of society. Why should he bear it for me ? If he had been one of the aboli- tionist party, it would have been different ; but he has no sympathy with them, — good, narrow, pious people, — or they with him ; he could not be satisfied in their society, or I either, for I crave after it all as much as he — wealth, lux- ury, art, brilliant company, admiration, — 0, inconsistent wretch that I am ! And that makes me love him all the more, and yet makes me so harsh to him, wickedly cruel, as I was to-day ; because, when I am reproving his weak- ness, I am reproving my own, and because I am angry with myself, I grow angry with him too — envious of him, I do believe at moments, and all his success and luxury ! " And so poor Marie sobbed out her confused confession of that strange double nature which so many Quadroons seem to owe to their mixed blood ; a strong side of deep feeling, ambition, energy, an intellect rather Greek in its rapidity than English in sturdiness ; and withal a weak side, of instability, inconsistency, hasty passion, love of present enjoyment, sometimes, too, a tendency to untruth, which is the mark, not perhaps of the African specially, but of every ; enslaved race. Consolation was all that Sabina could give. It was too late to act. Stangrave was gone, and week after we«k rolled by without a line from the wanderer. CHAPTER X. THE RECOGNITION. Elslet TiVASouK is sitting one morning in his study, every comfoit of which is of Lucia's arrangement and in- vention, beating the home-preserve of his brains for pretty thoughts. On he struggles through that wild, and too luxu- riant cover ; now brought up by a " lawyer," now stumbling over a root, now bogged in a green spring, now flushing a stray covey of birds of Paradise, now a sphinx, chimera, strix, lamia, fire-drake, flying-donkey, two-headed eagle (Austrian, as will appear shortly), or other portent only to be seen now-a-days in the recesses of that enchanted forest, the convolutions of a poet's brain. Up they whir and rat- tle, making, like most game, more noise than they are worth. Some get back, some dodge among the trees ; the fair shots are few and far between ; but Elsley blazes away right and left with trusty quill, and, to do him justice, sel- dom misses his aim, for practice has made him a sure and quick marksman in his own line. Moreover, all is game which gets up to-day ; for he is shooting for the kitchen, or rather for the London market, as many a noble sportsman does now-a-days, and thinks no shame. His new volume of poems ("The Wreck" included) is in the press; but, behold, it is not as long as the publisher thinks fit, and Messrs. Brown and Younger have written down to entreat in haste for some four hundred lines more, on any subject which Mr. Vavasour may choose. And, therefore, is Elsley beating his home covers, heavily shot over though they have been already this season, in hopes that a few head of his own game may still be left ; or, in default (for human nature is the same, in poets and in sportsmen), that a few head may have strayed in out of his neighbors' manors. At last the sport slackens ; for the sportsman is getting tired, and hungry also, to carry on the metaphor ; for he has seen the postman come up the front walk a quarter of an hour since, and the letters have not been brought in yet, At last there is a knock at the door, which he answers bj (148) THE RECOGNITION. 149 a somewhat testy •' come in." But he checks the coming grumble, when not the maid, but Lucia, enters. Why not grumble at Lucia ? He has done so many a time. Because she looks this morning so charming ; really quite pretty again, so radiant is her face with smiles. And because, also, she holds triumphant above her head a news- paper. She dances up to him — " I have something for you." " For me ? Why, the post has been in this half-hour." " Yes, for you, and that's just the reason why I kept i1 myself. D' ye understand my Irish reasoning ? " " No, you pretty creature," said Elsley, who saw that whatever the news was, it was good news. " Pretty creature, am I ? 1 was once, I know ; but I thought you had forgotten all about that. But I was not going to let you have the paper till I had devoured every word of it myself first." " Iv'ury word of what ? " " 01 what you shan't have unless you promise to be good for a week. Such a Review ; and from America ! What a dear man he must be who wrote it I I reallj^ think I should kiss him if I met him." " And I really think he would not say no. But, as he 's not here, I shall act as his proxy." " Be quiet, and read that, if you can, for blushes ; " and she spread out the paper before him, and then covered his eyes with her hands. " No, you Shan't see it ; it will make you vain." Elsley had looked eagerly at the honeyed columns (aa who would not have done ?)'; but the last word smote him. What was he thinking of? his own praise, or his wife's love ? " Too true," he cried, looking up at her. " You dear creature — vain I am, God forgive me ; but before I look at a word of this I must have a talk with you." "I can't stop; I must run back to the children. No; now don't look cross," as his brow clouded ; " I only said that to tease you. I '11 stop with you ten whole minutes, if you won't look so very solemn and important. I hate tragedy faces. Now, what is it ? " As all this was spoken while both her hands were clasped round Elsley's neck, and with looks and tones of the very sweetest as well as the very sauciest, no offence was 13* 150 THE RECOGNITION. given, and none taken ; but Elsley's voice was sad as Le asked, — " So you really do care for my poems ? " " You great silly creature ! Why else did 1 marry you at all ? As if I cared for anything in the world but your poems ; as if I did not love everybody who praises them ; and, if any stupid reviewer dares to say a word against them, I could kill him on the spot. I care for nothing in the world but what people say of you. And yet I don't care one pin ! I know what your poems are, if nobody else does ; and they belong to me, because you belong to me, and I must be the best judge, and care for nobody, no, not I!" — And she began singing, and then hung over him, tormenting him lovingly while he read. It was a true American review, utterly extravagant in its laudations, whether fi'om over-kindness, or from a certain love of exaggeration and magniloquence, which makes one suspect that a large proportion of the Transatlantic'gentle- men of the press must he natives of the sister isle ; but it was all the more pleasant to the soul of Elsley. " There," said Lucia, as she clung croodling to him ; " there is a pretty character of you, sir ! Make the most of it, for it is all those Yankees will ever send you." "Yes," said Elsley, "if they would send one a little money, instead of making endless dollars by printing one's books, and then a few more by praising one at a penny a line." " That 's talking like a man of business ; if, instead of the review, now, a check for fifty pounds had come, how I would have rushed out and paid the bills ! " " And liked it a great deal better than the review ? " " You jealous creature ! No. If I could always have you praised, I 'd live in a cabin, and go about the world barefoot, like a wild Irish gii'l." " You would make a very charming one." " I used to once, I can tell you. Valencia and I used to run about without shoes and stockings at Kilanbaggan, ai)il you can't think how pretty and white this little foot used to look on a nice soft carpet of green moss.'' " I shall write a sonnet to it." " You may, if you choose, provided you don't pub- lish it;'* " You may trust me for that. I am not one of those who anatomize their own married happiness for the edification Till. EECOUXITION. 151 of the ■whole public, and make fame, if not money, out of their own wives' heart." " How I should hate you, if you did I Not that I believe their fine stories about themselves. At least, I am cert-ain it 's only half the story. They have their quarrels, my dear, just as you and 1 have ; but they take care not to put them into poetry." " Well, but who could ? Whether they have a right or not to publish the poetical side of their married life, it is too much to ask them to give you the unpoetical also." " Then they are all humbugs ; and 1 believe, if they really love their wives so very much, they would not be at all that pains to persuade the world of it»" "You are very satirical and spiteful, ma'am." "I always am when I am pleased. If I am particularly happy, I always long to pinch somebody. I suppose it 'a Irish — 'Comes out, meets a friend, and for love knocks him down.*" " But you know, you rogue, that you care to read no poetry but love poetry." " Of course not ; every woman does ; but let me find you publishing any such about me, and see what I will do to you I There, now I must go to my work, and you go and write something extra- superfinely grand, because I have been so good to you. No. Let me go ; what a bother you are ! Good-by." And away she tripped, and he returned to his work, hap- pier than he had been for a week past. His happiness, truly, was only on the surface. The old wound had been salved — as what wound cannot be ? — by woman's love and woman's wit ; but it was not healed. The cause of his wrong-doing, the vain, self-indulgent spirit, was there still unchastened ; and he was destined, that very day, to find that he had still to bear the punishment of it. Now the reader must understand, that though one may laugh at Elsley Vavasour, because it is more pleasant than scolding at him, yet have Philistia and Fogeydom neither right nor reason to consider him a despicable or merely ludicrous person, or to cry, " Ah, if he had been as we are ! " Had he been merely ludicrous, Lucia would never have married him ; and he could only have been spoken of with indignation, or left utterly out of the story, as a simply unpleasant figure, beyond the purposes of a novel, though admissible now and then into tragedy. One cannot heartily 152 THE RECOGNITION. hxigh at a man if one has not a lurking love for him, as one really ought to have for Elsley. How much value is to be attached to his mere power of imagination, and fancy, and BO forth, is a question ; but there was in him more than mere talent. There was, in thought at least, virtue and magnanimity. True, the best part of him, perhaps almost all the good partof him, spent itself in words, and must be looked for, not in his life, but in his books. But in those books it can be found ; and if you look through them you will see that he has not touched upon a subject without taking, on the whole, the right, and pure, and lofty view of it. Howso- ever extravagant he may be in his notions of poetic license, that license is never with him a synonyme for licentious- ness. Wiiatever is tender and true, whatever is chivalrous and high-minded, he loves at first sight, and reproduces it lovingly. And it may be possible that his own estimate of his poems was not altogether wrong ; that his words may have awakened here and there in others a love for that which is morally as well as physically beautiful, and may have kept alive in their hearts the recollection that, both for the bodies and the souls of men, forms of life far nobler and fairer than those which we see now are possible ; that they have appeared, in fragments at least, already on the earth ; that they are destined, perhaps, to reappear and rombine themselves in some ideal state, and in " One far-off divine event, " Toward which the whole creation moves." This is the special and proper function of the poet ; that he may do this, does God touch his lips with that which, how- ever it may be misused, is still fire from ofi" the altar beneath which the spirits of his saints cry, " Lord, how long ? " If he " reproduce the beautiful " with this intent, however sc little, then is he of the sacred guild. And because Vavasour had this gift therefore he was a poet. But in this he was weak : that he did not feel, or at least was forgetting fast, that this gift had been bestowed on him for any practical purpose. No one would demand that he should have gone forth, with some grand social scheme, *o reform a world which looked to him so mean and evil.. He was not a man of business, and was not meant to be one. But it was ill for him that in his fastidiousness and touchiness he had shut himself out from that world, until he had quite forgotten how much good there was in it as THE EECOGXITIOJV. 153 well as evil ; how many people — common-place and unpo- etical t may be, but still heroical in God's sight — were working harder than he ever worked, at the divine drudgerj of doing good, and that in dens of darkness and sloughs of filth from which he would have turned with disgust ; so thai the sympathy with the sinful and fallen which marks his earlier poems, and which perhaps verges on sentinientalism, gradually gives place to a pharisaic and contemptuous tone ; a tone more lofty and manful in seeming, but far less divine in fact. Perhaps comparative success had injured him. Whilst struggling himself against circumstances, poor, untaught, unhappy, he had more fellow-feeling with those whom circumstance oppressed. At least, the pity which he could once bestow upon the misery which he met in his daily walks, he now kept for the more picturesque woes of Italy and Greece. In this, too, he was weak : that he had altogether forgot- ten that the fire from otf the altar could only be kept alight by continual selfrestraint and self-sacrifice, by continual gentleness and humility, shown in the petty matters of every-day home-life ; and that he who cannot rule his own household can never rule the church of God. And so it befell, that amid the little cross-blasts of home squabbles the sacred spark was fast going out. The poems written after he settled at Penalva are marked by a less' definite purpose, by a lower tone of feeling ; not, perhaps, by a lower moral tone, but simply by less of any moral tone at all^ They are more and more full of merely sensuous beauty, mere word- painting, mere word-hunting. The desire of finding some- thing worth saying gives place more and more to that of Baying something in a new fashion. As the originality of thought (which accompanies only vigorous moral purpose) decreases, the attempt at originality of language increases Manner, in short, has taken the place of matter. The art, it may be, of his latest poems is greatest ; but it has been expended on the most unworthy themes. The later are mannered caricatures of the earlier, without their soul ; and the same change seems to have passed over him which (with Mr. Ruskin's pardon) transformed the Turner of 1820 into the Turner of 1850. Thus had Elsley transferred what sympathy he had left from needle-women and ragged schools, dwellers in Jacob's Island and sleepers in the dry arches of Waterloo Bridge, to sufferers of a more poetic class. Whether his sympa- thies showed thereby that he had risen or fallen, let my 154 THE RECOGNlTIOlf. readers decide each for himself. It is a credit to any man to feel for any human being ; and Italy, as she is at thia moment, is certainly one of the most tragic spectacles which the world has ever seen. Elsley need not be blamed for pitying her ; only for holding, with most of our poets, a vague notion that her woes were to be cured by a hair of the dog who bit her : namely, by homcBopathic doses of that same " art " which has been all along her morbid and self- deceiving substitute for virtue and industry. So, as she had sung herself down to the nether pit, Elsley would help to sing her up again ; and had already been throwing off, ever since 1848, a series of sonnets which he entitled Eury- dice, intimating, of course, that he acted as the Orpheus. Whether he had hopes of drawing iron tears down Pluto Radetzky's cheek, does not appear : but certainly the longer poem which had sprung from his fancy, at the urgent call of Messrs. Brown and Younger, would have been likely to draw nothing but iron balls from Radetzky's cannon ; or failing so vast an eifect, an immediate external application to the poet himself of that famous herb Panta- gruelion, cure for all public ills and private woes, which men call hemp. Nevertheless, it was a noble subject ; one which ought surely to have been taken up by some of our poets, for if they do not make a noble poem of it, it will be their own fault. I mean that sad and fanlastic tragedy of Fra Dolcino and Margaret, which Signer Mariotti has lately given to the English public, in a book which, both for its matter and its manner, should be better known than it is. Elsley's soul had been filled (it would have been a dull one else) with the conception of the handsome and gifted patriot- monk, his soul delirious with the dream of realizing a per- fect church on earth ; battling with tongue and pen, and at last with sword, against the villanies of pope and Kaiser, and all the old devourers of the earth, cheered only by the wild love of her who had given up wealth, fame, friends, all which render life worth having, to die with him a death too horrible for words. And he had conceived (and not alto- gether ill) a vision, in which, wandering along some bright Italian bay, he met Dolcino sitting, a spirit at rest but not yet glorified, waiting for the revival of that dead land for which he had died ; and Margaret by him, dipping her scorched feet forever in the cooling wave, and looking up to the hero for whom she had given up all, with eyes of everlasting love. There they were to prophesy to him such things as seemed lit to him, of the future of Ita'.y and of THE RECOGNITION. 155 Europe, of the doom of priests and tyrants, of the sorrows find rewards of genius unappreciated and before its age ; for Elsley's secret vanity could see in himself a far greater like- ness to Dolcino, than Dolcino — the preacher, confessor, bender of all hearts, man of the world, and man of action, at last crafty and all but unconquerable guerilla warrior — would ever have acknowledged in the self-indulgent dreamer However, it was a fair conception enough ; though perhaps it never would have entered Elsley's head, had Shelley never written the opening canto of the Kevolt of Islam So Elsley, on a burning July forenoon, strolled up the lane and over the down to King Arthur's Nose, that he might find materials for his sea-shore scene, For he was not one of those men who live in such quiet, every-day communication with nature, that they drink in her various aspects as unconsciously as the air they breathe, and so can reproduce them, out of an inexhaustible stock of details, simply and accurately, and yet freshly too, tinged by the peculiar hue of the mind in which they have been long sleeping. He walked the world, either blind to the beauty round him, and trying to compose instead some little scrap of beauty in his own self-imprisoned thoughts, or else he was looking out consciously and spasmodically for views, effects, emotions, images ; something striking and uncom- mon which would suggest a poetic figure, or help out a description, or in some way re-furnish his mind with thought. Prom which method it befell that his lamp of truth was too often burnt out just when it was needed ; and that, like the foolish virgins, he had to go and buy oil when it was too late ; or, failing that, to supply its place with some baser artificial material. That day, however, he was fortunate enough ; for, wan- dering and scrambling among the rocks, at a dead low spring tide, he came upon a spot which would have made a poem of itself better than all Elsley ever wrote, had he, forget- ting all about Fra Dolcino, Italy, priests, and tyrants, set down in black and white just what he saw ; provided, of course, that he had patience first to see the same. It was none other than that ghastly chasm across which Thurnall had been so miraculously swept, on the night of bis shipwreck. The same ghastly chasm ; but ghastly now no longer ; and as Elsley looked down, the beauty below invited him, and the coolness also ; -for the sun beat on the flat rock above till it scorched the feet, and dazzled the eye^ and crisped up the blackening sea-weeds ; while every sea- 156 THE RECOGNITION, snail crept to hide itself under the bladder-tangle, and noth ing dared to peep or stir save certain grains of gunpowder, which seemed to have gone mad, so merrily did they hop about upon the surface of the fast evaporating salt-pools. That wonder, indeed, Elsley stooped to examine, and drew back his hand with an " ugh ! " and a gesture of disgust, when he found that they were^^nasty^littlejjis-ects." For Elsley held fully the poet's right'tobelieve that all things are not very good ; none, indeed, save such as suited his eclectic and fastidious taste ; and to hold (on high sesthetio grounds, of course) toads and spiders in as much abhor- rence as does any boarding-school girl. However, finding some rock ledges which formed a natural ladder, down he scrambled, gingerly enough, for he was neither an active nor a courageous man. But, once down, I will do him the justice to say that for five whole minutes he forgot all about Fra Dolcino, and, what was better, about himself also. The chasm may have been fifteen feet deep, and, above, about half that breadth ; but below the waves had hol- lowed it into dark overhanging caverns. Just in front of him a huge boulder spanned the crack, and formed a natu- ral doorway, through which he saw, like a picture set in a frame, the far-off blue sea softening into the blue sky among brown Eastern haze. Amid the haze a single ship hung motionless, like a white cloud. Nearer, a black cormorant floated sleepily along, and dived, and rose again. Nearer again, long lines of flat tide-rock, glittering and quivering in the heat, sloped gradually under the waves, till they ended in half-sunken beds of olive oar-weed, which bent their tangled stems into a hundred graceful curves, and swayed to and fro slowly and sleepily. The low swell slid whispering among their floating palms, and slipped on toward the cavern's mouth, as if asking wistfully (so Els- ley fancied) when it would be time for it to return to that cool shade, and hide from all the blinding blaze outside. But when his eye was enough accustomed to the shade within, it withdrew gladly from the glaring sea and glaring tide-rocks to the walls of the chasm itself; to curved and polished sheets of stone, rich brown, with snow-white veins, on which danced forever a dappled network of pale yellow light ; to crusted beds of pink coralline ; to caverns, in the dark crannies of which hung branching sponges and tufts of purple sea-moss ; to strips of clear white sand bestrewn with shells ; to pools, each a gay flower-garden of all hues, THE RECOGNITION. 157 where branching sea-weeds reflected blue light from every point, like a thousand damasked sword-blades ; while among them dahlias and chrysanthemums, and many another mimic of our earth-born flowers, spread blooms of crimson and purple, and HJac, and creamy gray, half-buried among feath- ered weeds as brightly colored as they ; and strange and gaudy fishes shot across from side to side, and chased each other in and out of hidden cells. Within and without all was at rest. The silence was broken only by the timid whisper of the swell, and by the chime of dropping water within some unseen cave. But what a difierent rest I Without, all lying breathless, stupefied, sun-stricken, in blinding glare ; within, all coolness and refreshing sleep. Without, all simple, broad, and vast ; within, all various, with infinite richness of form and color. An Hairoun Alraschid's bower, looking out upon the — Bother the fellow I Why will he go on analyzing and figuring in this way ? Why not let the blessed place tell him what it means, instead of telling it what he thinks ? And — why, he is actually writing verses, though not about Fra Dolcino 1 " How rests yon rock, whose half-day's bath is done. With broad, bright side beneath the broad, bright sun, Lilte sea^nymph tired, on cushioned mosses sleeping. Yet, nearer drawn, beneath her purple tresses. From down -bent brows we find her slowly weeping ; So many a heart for cruel man's caresses Must only pine and pine, and yet must bear A gallant front beneath life's gaudy glare." Silly fellow 1 Do you think that Nature had time to think of such a far-fetched conceit as that while it was making that rock and peopling it with a million tiny living things, of which not one falleth to the ground without your Father's knowledge, and each more beautiful than any sea-nymph whom you ever fancied ? For, after all, you cannot fancy a whole sea-nymph (perhaps in that case you could make one), but only a very little scrap of her outside. Or if, as you boast, you are inspired by the Creative Spirit, tell us what the Creative Spirit says about that rock, and not such rerse as that, the lesson of which you don't yourself really leel , Pretty enough it is, perhaps ; but in your haste to say a pretty thing, just because it was pretty, you have not cared to condemn yourself out of youi' own mouth. Why were you sulky, sir, with Mrs. Vavasoui this very morning; after all that passed, because she would look over the wash 158 THE RECOGNITION. ing-booKS, while you wanted her to hear about Pra DoJcino I And why, though she was up to her knees among your dirty shirts when you went out, did you not give her one parting kiss, which would have transfigured her virtuous drudgery for her into a sacred pleasure ? One is heartily glad to see you disturbed, cross though you may look at it, by that sturdy step and jolly whistle which burst in on you from the other end of the chasm, as Tom Thurnall, with au old^mpck frock over his coat, and "'ar-lgr^e baskei'mThis arm, comes stumbling and hopping towards you, dropping every now and then on hands and knees, and turning over on his back, to squeeze his head into some muddy crack, and then with- draw it with the salt water dripping down his nose. Elsley closed his eyes, and rested his head on his hand in a somewhat studied " pose." But, as he wished not to be interrupted, it may have not been altogether unpardonable to pretend sleep. However, the sleeping posture had exactly the opposite effect to that which he designed. "Ah, Mr. Vavasour I " " Humph ! " quoth he, slowly, if not sulkily. " I admire your taste, sir ; a charming summer-house old Triton has vacated for your use ; but let me advise you not to go to sleep in it." "Why then, sir?" "Because — it's no business of mine, of course ; but the tide has turned already ; and, if a breeze springs up, old Triton will be back again in a hurry, and in a rage, also ; and — I may possibly lose a good patient." Elsley, who knew nothing about the tides, save that " the moon wooed the ocean," or some such important fact, thanked him coolly enough, and returned to a meditative attitude. Tom saw that he was in the seventh heaven, and went on. But he had not gone three steps before he pulled up short, slapping his hands together once, as a man does who has found what he wants ; and then plunged up to his knees in a rock pool, and began working very gently^ at Bomething under water. Elsley watched him for full five minutes with so much curiosity, that, despite of himself, he asked him what he was doing. Tom had his whole face under water, and did not hear till Elsley had repeated the question. " Only a rare zoophyte," said he, at last, lifting his drip- ping visage,- and gasping for breath ; and then he riived again. THE RECOGNITION. 159 " Inexplicable pedantry of science ! " thought Elsley tc aimself, while Tom worked on steadfastly, and at last rose and, taking out a vial from his basket, was about to deposit in it something invisible. " Stay a moment ; you really have roused my euriofiity by your earnestness. May I see what it is for which yoa have taken so much trouble ? " Tom held out on his finger tip a piece of slimy crust, the size of a halfpenny. Elsley could only shrug his shoulders "Nothing to you, sir, I doubt not; but worth a guinea t-o me, even if it be only to mount bits- of it as microscope objects." "So you mingle business with science?" said Elsley, rather in a contemptuous tone. " Why not ? I must live, and my father too ; and it is as honest a way of making money as any other ; I poach in no man's manor for my game." "But what is your game? What possible attraction In that bit of dirt can make men spend their money on it ? " " You shall see," said Tom, dropping it into the vial of salt water, and offering it to Elsley, with his pocket mag- nifier. " Judge for yourself" Elsley did so, and beheld a new wonder — a living plant of crystal, studded with crystal bells, from each of which waved a crown of delicate arms. It was the first time that Elsley had ever seen one of those exquisite zoophytes which stud every rock and every tuft of weed. "This is most beautiful," said he at length. "Humph! why should not Mr. Vavasour write a poem about it ? " Why not, indeed ? thought Elsley. " It 's no business of mine, — no man's less ; but I often wonder why you poets don't take to the microscope, and tell us a little more about the wonderful things which are here already, and not about those which are not, and which, perhaps, never will be." " Well," said Elsley, after another look ; " but, after all, these things have no human interest in them." " I don't know that ; they have to me, for instance. These are the things which I would write about if I had any turn for verse, not about human nature, of which I know, I 'm afraid, a little too much already. I always like to read old ' Darwin's Loves of the Plants ; ' bosh as it is in a eciontific point of view, it amuses one s fancy withonl ICO TH£ RECOGNITION. makinjr one lose one's temper, as one must when one begl.ia to analyze that microscopic ape called self and friends." " You would like, then, the old Cosmogonies, the Eddaa and the Vedas," said Elsley, getting interested, as most people did after five minutes' talk with the cynical doctor. " I suppose you would not say much for their science ; but, as poetry, they are just what you ask for — the expression of thoughtful spirits, who looked round upon nature with awe-struck, child-like eyes, and asked of all heaven and earth the question, ' What are you ? How came you to be ? ' Yet — it may be my fault — while I admire them, I cannot sympathize with them. To me, this zoophyte is as a being of another sphere ; and till I can create some link in my own mind between it and humanity it is as nothing in my eyes." " There is link enough, sir, don't doubt, and chains of iron and brass too." "You believe, then, in the development theory of the ' Vestiges ' ? " " Doctors who have their bread to earn never commit themselves to theories. No ; all I meant was, that this little zoophyte lives by the same laws as you and I ; and that be, and the sea-weeds, and so forth, teaqh us doctors certain little ' rules concerning life and death, which you will have a chance soon of seeing at work on the most grand and poetical, and indeed altogether tragic scale." " What do you mean ? " " When the cholera comes here, as it will, at its present pace, before the end of the summer, then I shall have the zoophytes rising up in judgment against me, if I have not profited by a leaf out of their book." " The cholera ? " said Elsley, in a startled voice, forget- ting Tom's parables in the new thought. For Elsley had a dread more nervous than really coward of infectious dis- eases ; and he had also (and prided himself, too, on having) all Gothe's dislike of anything terrible or horrible, of sick- ness, disease, wounds, death, anything which jarred with that " beautiful " which was his idol. " The cholera ? " repeated he. " I hope not ; I wish you had not mentioned it, Mr. Thurnall." " I am very sorry that I did so, if it offends you. I had thought that forewarned was forearmed. After all, it is no business of mine ; if I have extra labor, as I shall have, ] shall have extra experience ; and that will be a fair set-off, THE RECOGNITION. 161 even if the beard of guardians don't vote me an extra remu- neration, as they ought to do." Elsley was struck dumb ; first by the certainty which Tom's words expressed, and next by the coolness of their temper. At last he stammered out, " Good heavens, Mr. Thurnall ! you do not talk of that frightful scourge — so disgusting, too, in its character — as a matter of profit and loss ? It is sordid, cold-hearted ! " " My dear sir, if I let myself think, much more talk, about the matter in any other tone, I should face the thing poorly enough when it came. I shall have work enough to keep my head about the end of August or beginning of September, and I must not lose it beforehand, by indulging in any horror, disgust, or other emotion perfectly justifiable in a layman." " But are not doctors men ? " " That depends very much on what ' a man ' means." "Men with human sympathy and compassion." " 0, I mean by a man, a man with human strength. My dear sir, one may be too busj', and at doing good too (though that is not my line, save professionally, because it is my only way of earning money) ; but one may be too busy at doing good to have time for compassion. If, while I was cutting a man's leg ofT, I thought of the pain which he was suffering — " "Thank Heaven," said Elsley, " that it was not my lot to become a medical man ! " Tom looked at him with the quaintest smile ; a flush of mingled anger and contempt had been rising in him as he heard the ex-bottle boy talking sentiment ; but he only went on quietly. "No, sir ; with your more delicate sensibilities, you may tliank Heaven that you did not become a medical man ; your life would have been one of torture, disgust, and agonizing sense of responsibility. But do you not see that you must" thapk Heaven for the sufferer's sake also ? I will not shock yoi again by talking of amputation ; but even in the small- est matter — even if you were merely sending medicine to m old maid — suppose that your imagination were pre- occupied by the thought of her old age, her sufferings, her Jisappointed hopes, her regretful dream of bygone youth, and beauty, and love, and all the tender fancies which might well spring out of such a mournful spectacle, would you not be but too likely (pardon the bathos) to end by sending her an elderly gentleman's medicine after all, and bo eithet 14* 162 THE EECOGNITION. frightfully increasing her sufferings, or ending them once for all ? " Tom said this in the most quiet and natural tone, without even a twiniile of his wicked eye ; but Elsley heard him begin with reddening face ; and, as he went on, the red had turned to purple, and then to deadly yellow ; till, making a half- etcp forward, he cried fiercely : " Sir ! " and then stopped suddenly ; for his feet slipped opon the polished stone, and on his face he fell into the pool at Thurnall's feet. " Well for both of us geese ! " said Tom, inwardly, as he went to pick him up. " I verily believe he was going to strike me, and that would have done for neither of us. I was a fool to say it ; but the temptation was so exquisite ; and it must have come some day." / But Vavasour staggered up of his own accord, and dash- ing away Tom's proffered hand, was rushing off without a word. " Not so, Mr. John Briggs ! " said Tom, making up his mind in a moment that he must have it out now, or never ; and that he might have everything to fear frbm Vavasour if he let him go home furious. " We do not part thus, sir 1 " " We will meet again, if you will," foamed Vavasoui, " but it shall end in the death of one of us ! " "By each other's potions? 1 can doctor myself, sir, thank you. Listen to me, John Briggs ! You shall listen I " and Tom sprang past him, and planted himself at the foot of the rock steps, to prevent his escaping upward. " What, do you wish to quarrel with me, sir ? It is I who ought to quarrel with you. I am the aggrieved party, and not you, sir 1 I have not seen the son of the man who, when I was an apothecary's boy, petted me, lent me books, introduced me as a genius, turned my head for me — which was just what I was vain enough to enjoy — 1 have not seen that man's son cast ashore penniless and friendless, and yet never held out to him a helping hand, but tried to conceal my identity from him, from a dirty shame of my honest father's honest name." Vavasoui dropped his eyes, for was it not true ? but he raised them again, more fiercely than ever. " Curse you ! I owe you nothing. It was you who made me ashamed of it. You rhymed on it, and laughed about poetry coming out of such a name." " And what if I did ? Are poets to be made of nothing but tinder and gall ? Why could you not take an honest THE RECOGNTTION. 163 pke as it was meant, and go your way like other people, till you had shown yourself worth something, and won honor even, for the name of Briggs ? " " And I have ! 1 have my own station now, my own fame, sir, and it is nothing to you what I choose to call myself. I have won my place, I say, and your mean envy cannot rob me of it." " You have your station. Very good," said Tom, not caring to notice the imputation ; ' you owe the greater part of it to your having made a most fortunate marriage, for which I respect you, as a practical man. Let your poetry be what it may (and people tell me that it is really very beautiful), your match shows me that you are a clever, and therefore a successful person." " Do you take me for a sordid schemer, like yourself? I loved what was worthy of me, and won it because I deserved it." " Then, having won it, treat it as it deserves," said Tom, with a cool, searching look, before which Vavasour's eyea fell again. " Understand me, Mr. John Briggs ; it is of no consequence to me what you call yourself ; but it is of con- sequence to me that I should not have a patient in my parish whom I cannot cure ; for I cannot cure broken iiearts, though they will be simple enough to come to me for medicine." " You shall have no chance I You shall never enter my house I You shall not ruin me, sir, by your bills I " Tom made no answer to this fresh insult. He had another game to play. " Take care what you say, Briggs ; remember that, after all, you are in my power, and 1 had better remind you I plainly of the fact." | " And you mean to make me your tool 1 I will dia first ! " " I believe that," said Tom, who was very near adding. " that he should be sorry to work with such tools." " My tools are my lancet and my drugs," said he. quietly, " and all I have to say refers to them. It suits mv purpose to become the principal medical man in this neigh.' borhood — " " And I am to tout for introductions for you ? " " You are to be so very kind as to allow me to finish my sentence, just as you would allow any other gentleman ; — ■ and, because I wish for practice, and patients, and poT^-er, you will be so kind as to treat me henceforth as one high 164 THE EECOG>aTION. minded man would treat another, to whom he is obliged For, you know, John Briggs, as well as I," said Tom, draw ing himself up to his full height, — " look me in the face, if you can, ere you deny it, — that 1 was, while you knew me, as honorable a man and as kind-hearted a man as you evei were ; and that now — considering the circumstances under which we meet — you have more reason to trust me, than I have, prima facie, to trust you." Vavasour answered not a word. " Good-by, then," said Tom, drawing aside from the Btep ; " Mrs. Vavasour will be anxious about you. And mind I With regard to her first of all, sir, and then with regard to other matters — as long, and only as long, as you remember that you are John Briggs of Whitbury, 1 shall be the first to"~ibrget it.~~^Dhere is my hand,"fof old acquaint- ance' sake." Vavasour took the proffered hand coldly, paused a mo- ment, and ttien wrung it in silence, and hurried away home. "Have I played my ace ill after all ? " said Tom, sitting down to consider. " As for whether I should have played it at all, that 's no business of mine now. Madam Might- have-been may see to that. But did I play ill ? for, if I did, I may try a new lead yet. Ought 1 to have twitted him about his wife ? If he 's venomous, it may only make matters worse ; and still worse if he be suspicious. I don't think he was either in old times ; but vanity will make a man so, and it may have made him. Well, I must only ingratiate myself all the more with her ; and find out, too, whether she has his secret as well as I. What I am most afraid of is my having told him plainly that he was in my power ; it 's apt to make sprats of his size flounce desper- ately in the mere hope of proving themselves whales after all, if it 's only to their miserable selves. Never mind ; he can't break my tackle ; and, beside, that gripe of the hand seemed to indicate that the poor wretch was beat, and thought himself let off easily — as indeed he is. We '11 Lope so. Now, zoophytes, for another turn with you 1 " To tell the truth, however, Tom is looking for more than noophytes, and has been doing so at every dead low tide since he was wrecked. He has heard nothing yet of his beLt,^ The notes have not been presented at the London bank ; nobody in the village has been spending more money than usual ; for cunning Tom has contrived already to know how many pints of ale every man of whom he has the least doubt has drunk. Perhaps, after all, the belt may Jiave THE RECOGNniON. 166 been torn off in the liffe-etruggle ; it may have been for a moment in Grace's hands, and then have been swept back into the sea. What more likely ? And what more likely, in that case, that, sinking by its weight, it is wedged away in some cranny of the rocks ? So, spring-tide after spring- tide Tom searches, and all the more carefully because others are searching too, for waifs and strays from the wreck. Sad relics of mortality he finds at times, as others do ; once, even, a dressing-case, full of rings, and pins, and chains, which belonged, he fancied, to a gay young bride with whom he had waltzed many a time on deck, as they slipped along before the soft trade-wind ; but no belt. He sent the dressing-case to the Lloyd's underwriters, and searched on ; but in vain. Neither could he find that any one else had forestalled him ; and that very afternoon, sulky and dis- heartened, he determined to waste no more time about the matter ; and strode home, vowing signal vengeance against the thief, if he caught him. " And I will catch him I These west-country yokels, to fancy that they can do Tom Thurnall I It 's adding insult to injury, as Sam Weller's parrot has it." Now his shortest way home lay across the shore, and then along the beach, and up the steps by the little water- fall, past Mrs. Harvey's door ; and at that door sat Grace, sewing in the sun. She looked up and bowed as he passed, smiling modestly, and little dreaming of what was passing in his mind ; and when a very lovely girl smiled and bowed to Tom, he must needs do the same to her ; whereon she added, " I beg your pardon, sir ; have you heard anything of the money you lost ? I — we — have been so ashamed to think of such a thing happening here." Tom's evil spirit was roused. " Have you heard anything of it. Miss Harvey ? For you seem to me the only person in the place who knows any- thing about the matter." " I, sir ? " cried Grace, fixing her great startled eyes full on him. "Why, ma'am," said Tom, with a courtly smile, "you may possibly recollect, if you will so far tax your memory, that you had it in your hands at least a moment, when you lid me the kindness to save my life ; and, as you were kind enough to inform me that I should recover it when I was worthy of it, I suppose I have not yet risen in your eyes to the reauired state of conversion and regeneration." And 166 THE RECOGNITION. Bwinging impatiently away, he walked on, really afraid lest he should say something rude. Grace half called after him, and then, suddenly checking herself, rushed in to her mother with a wild and pale face. " What is this Mr. Thurnall has been saying to me about bis belt and money which he lost ? " " About what ? Has he been rude to you, the bad man ? " ciied Mrs. Harvey, dropping the pie-dish in some confusion, ai d taking a long while to pick up the pieces. " About the belt — the money which he lost I Why don't Y'. u speak, mother ? " " Belt — money ? Ah, I recollect now. He has lost Sbine money, he says." " Of course he has." "How should you know anything? 1 recollect ihere was some talk of it, though. But what- matter what he says 1 He was quite passed away, I '11 swear, wheii they carried him up." "But, mother! mother! he says that I know about it; that I had it in my hands ! " "You? 0, the wicked wretch, the false, ungrateful, slanderous child of wrath, with adder's poison under hia lips ! No, my child ! though we 're poor, we 're honest ! Let him slander us, rob us of our good name, sead us to prison, if he will — he cannot rob us of our souls. We ')! be silent ; we '11 turn the other cheek, and commit our cause to One above who pleads for the orphan and the widow We will not strive nor cry, niy child. 0, no ! " And Mrs. Harvey began fussing over the smashed pie-dish. " I shall not strive nor cry, mother," said Grace, who had recovered her usual calm ; " but he must have some cause for these strange words. Do you recollect seeing me with the belt ? " " Belt, what's a belt? I know nothing about belts. I tell you he 's a villain, and a slanderer. 0, that it should have come to this, to have my child's fair fame blasted by a wretch that comes nobody knows where from, and has bjen doing nobody knows what, for aught I know 1 " " Mother, mother ! we know no harm of him. If he is mistaken, God forgive him." " If he is mistaken ? " went on Mrs. Harvey, still over the pie-dish ; but Grace gave her no answer. She was deep in thought. She recollected now, that as she had gone up the path from the cove on that eventful morning, she had seen Willis and Thurnall whispering earnestly together; THE RECOGNTTTON. 161 and she recollected now, for the first time, that there had been a certain sadness and perplexity, almost reserve, about Will iSkjever since. Good heavens ! could he suspect her too ? She would find out that, at least ; and no sooner had her mother fussed away, talking angrily to herself, into the back kitchen, than Grace put on her bonnet and shawl, and went forth to find the captain. In an hour she returned. Her lips were firm set, her cheeks pale, her eyes red with weeping. She said nothing to her mother, who for her part did not seem inclined to allude again to the matter. " Where have you been, child ? You look quite poorly, and your eyes red." " The wind is very cold, mother," said she, and went into her room. Her mother looked sharply after her, and muttered to herself. Grace went in and sat down on the bed. " What a coldness this is at my heart ! " she said aloud to herself, trying to smile ; but she could not ; and she sat on the bedside, without taking off her bonnet and shawl, her hands hanging listlessly by her side, her head drooping on her bosom, till her mother called her to tea ; then she was forced to rouse herself, and went out, composed, but utterly wretched. Tom walked up homeward very ill at ease. He had played, to use his nomenclature, tyo trump cards running ; and was bynio" meaiTs~sartiBfied- that~he had played them well. He had no right, certainly, to be satisfied with either move ; for both had been made in a somewhat evil spirit, and certainly for no very disinterested end. That was a view of the matter, however, which never entered his mind ; there was only that general dissatisfac- tion with himself which is, though men try hard to deny the fact, none other than the supernatural sting of conscience. He tried " to lay to his soul the flattering unction " that he might, after all, be of use to Mrs. Vavasour, by using his power over her husband ; but he knew in his secret heart that any move of his in that direction was likely only to make, matters worse ; that to-day's explosion might only have| sent home the hapless Vavasour in a more irritable temper ', than ever. And thinking over many things, backward and forward, he saw his own way so little, that he actually con- descended to go and "pump" Prank Headley. So he termed it ; but, after all, it was only like asking advice of 168 THE EECOGNITJON. a good man, because he did not feel himself quite good enough to advise himself. The curate was preparing to sally forth, after liis frugal diniier. The morning he spent at the schools, or in parish seciilarities ; the afternoon, till dusk, was devoted to visit- ing the poor ; the night, not to sleep, but to reading and sermon-writing. Thus, by sitting up till two in the morn ing, and rising again at six for his private devotions, before walking a mile and a half up to church for the morning service. Prank Headley burnt the candle of life at both ends very effectually, and showed that he did so by his pale cheeks and red eyes. " Ah 1 " said Tom, as he entered, " as usual ; poor Na- ture is being robbed and murdered by rich Grace." " What do you mean now ? " asked Prank, smiling, for he had become accustomed enough to Tom's quaint para- bles, though he had to scold him often enough for their irreverence. " Nature says, ' After dinner sit a while ; ' and even the dumb animals hear her voice, and lie by for a siesta when their stomachs are full. Grace says, ' Jump up and rush out the moment you have swallowed your food ; ' and, if you get an indigestion, abuse poor Nature for it ; and lay the blame on Adam's fall." " You are irreverent, my good sir, as usual ; but you are unjust also this time." " How then ? " " Unjust to Grace, as you phrase it," answered Prank, with a quaint sad smile. " I assure you on my honor, that Grace has nothing whatsoever to do with my ' rushing out' just now, but simply the desire to do my good works that they may be seen of men. I hate going out. I should like to sit and read the whole afternoon ; but I am afraid lest the dissenters should say, ' He has not been to see so-and- 80 for the last three days ; ' so off I go, and no credit to mo." Why had Prank dared, upon a month's acquaintance, to lay bare his own heart thus to a man of no creed at all ? Because, I suppose, amid all differences, he had found one point of likeness between himself and Thurnall ; he had found that Tom was at heart a thoroughly genuine man, sincere and faithful to his own 'scheme of the universe. How that man, through all his eventful life, had been enabled to " Bate not a jot of heart or hope, But steer right onward," THE RECOGNITION. 169 was a problum which Frank longed curiously, and yet fear- fully withal, to solve. There were many qualities in him which Prank could not but admire, and long to imitate ; and, "Whence had they come ?" was another problem at which he looked, trembling as many a new thought crossed him. He longed, too, to learn from Tom somewhat at least of that savoir /aire, that power of " becoming all things to all men," which St. Paul had ; and for want of which Prank had failed. He saw, too, with surprise, that Tom had gained in one month more real insight into the characters of his parishioners than he had done in twelve ; and, besido all, there was the craving of the lonely heart for human con- fidence and friendship. So it befell that Prank spoke out his inmost thought that day, and thought no shame ; and it befell, also, that Thurnall, when he heard it, said in his heart, " What a noble, honest fellow you are, when you — " But he answered enigmatically. " 0, I quite agree with you that Grace has nothing to do with it. I only referred it to that source because I thought you would do so." " You ought to be ashamed of your dishonesty, then." " I know it ; but my view of the case is, that you rush out after dinner for the very same reason that the Yankee store-keeper does — from — you '11 forgive me if I say it? " " Of course. You cannot speak too plainly to me." " Conceit. The Yankee fancies himself such an impor- tant person, that the commercial world will stand still unless he flies back to its help after ten minutes' gobbling, with his mouth full of pork and pickled peaches. And you fancy yourself so important, in your line, that the spiritual world will stand still unless you bolt back to help it in like wise. Substitute a half-cooked mutton-chop for the pork, and the cases are exact parallels." " Your parallel does not hold good, doctor. The Yankee goes back to his store to earn money for himself, and not to keep commerce alive." " While you go for utterly disinterested motives. I see " " Do you ? " said Prank. " If you think that I fancy my- eelf a better man than the Yankee, you mistake me ; but at .'east you will confess that I am not working for money." " No ; you have your notions of reward, and he has his. He wants to be paid by material dollars, payable next month ; you by spiritual dollars, payable when you die. I don't see the great difference." 15 170 THE RECOGNITION. " Only the slight difference between what is material and what is spiritual." " They seem to me, from all I can hear in pulpits, to be only two different sorts of pleasant things, and to be sought after, both alike, simply because they are pleasant. Self- interest, if you will forgive me, seems to me the spring of both ; only, to do you justice, you are a further-sighted and more prudent man than the Yankee store-keeper ; and, hav- ing more exquisitely developed notions of what your true self-interest is, are content to wait a little longer than he." "You stab with a jest, Thurnall. You little know how your words hit home." " Well, then, to turn from a matter of which I know nothing, I must keep you in, and give you parish business to do at home. I am come to consult you as my spirit jal pastor and master." Frank looked a little astonished. " Don't be alarmed. I am not going to confess my own sins — only other people's." " Pray don't, then. I know far more of them already than I can cure. I am worn out with the daily discovery of fresh evil wherever I go." " Then why not comfort yourself by trying to find a little fresh good wherever you go ? " Frank sighed. " Perhaps, though, you don't care for any sort of good except your own sort of good. You are fastidious. Well, you have your excuses. But you can understand a poor fellow like me, who has been dragged through the slums and sewers of this wicked world for fifteen years and more, being very well content with any sort of good which I can light on, and not particular as to either quantity or quality." " Perhaps yours is the healthier, state of mind, if you can only find the said good. The vulturine nose, which smells nothing but corruption, is no credit to its possessor. And it would be pleasant, at least, to find good in every man." "One can't do that in one's study. Mixing with them -d the only plan. No doubt they 're inconsistent enough The more you see of them, the less you trust them ; and yet the more you see of them, the more you like them. C»n you solve that paradox from your books ? " " I will try," said Prank. " I generally have more than one to think over when you go. But, surely, there are men BO fallen that they are utterly insensible to good." " Very likely. There 's no saying in this world what maj THE EECOGNITION. 171 not be. Only 1 never saw one. I '11 tell you a story ; you may apply it as yon like. When I was on the Texan expe- dition, and raw to soldiering' and camping, we had to sleep in low ground, and suifered terribly from a miasma. Deadly cold it was when it came ; and the man who once got chilled through with it, just died. I was lying on the bare ground one night, and chilly enough I was, — for I was short of clothes, and had lost my buffalo robe, — but fell asleep ; and, on waking the next morning, I found myself covered up in my comrade's blankets, even to his coat, wh-'. i.'j was sitting shivering in his shirt-sleeves. The cold fog had come down in the night, and the man had stripped himself, and sat all night with death staring him in the face, to save my life. And all the reason he gave was, that if one of us must die, it was better the older should go first, and not a young- ster like me. And," said Tom, lowering his voice, "that man was a murderer 1 " "A murderer ? " " Yes ; a drunken, gambling, cut-throat rowdy as ever grew ripe for the gallows. Now, will you tell me that , there was nothing in that man but what the devil put I there ? " _ ^ Prank sat meditating a while on this strange story, which is, moreover, a true one ; and then looked up with some- thing like tears in his eyes. " And be did not die ? " " Not he ! I saw him die afterwards — shot through the heart, without time even to cry out. But I have not for- gotten what he did for me that night ; and I '11 tell you what, sir, I do not believe that God has forgotten it either." Frank was silent lor a few moments, and then Tom changed the subject. " I want to know what you can tell me about this Mr. j Vavasour." " Hardly anything, I am sorry to say. I was at his house at tea, two or three times, when I first came ; and I had very agreeable evenings, and talks on art and poetry ; but I believe I ofiended him by hinting that he ought to come to church, which he never does, and since then our acquaint- ance has all but ceased. I suppose you will say, as unual, that I played my cards badly there also." " Not at all ! " said Tom, who was disposed to take any one's part against Elsley. " If a clergyman has not a right to tell a man that, I don't see what right he has of any kind. Only," added he, with oi.e of his quainl smiles, 172 THE RECOGNITION. " the clergyman, if he compels a man to deal at his store is bound to furnish him with the articles which he wants." " Which he needs, or which he likes ? For ' wanting has both those meanings." " With something that he finds by experience does him good ; and so learns to like it, because he knows that he needs it, as my patients do my physic." " I wish my patients would do so by mine ; but, unfor- tunately, half of them seem to me not to know what their disease is, and the other half do not think they are diseased at all." " Well," said Tom, dryly, " perhaps some of them are more right than you fancy. Every man knows his own business best." "If it were so, they would go about it somewhat differ ently from what most of the poor creatures do." " Do you think so ? I fancy myself that not one of them does a wrong thing, but what he knows it to be wrong just as well as you do, and is much more ashamed and frightened about it already than you can ever make him by preaching at him." " Do you ? " " I do. I judge of others by myself." " Then would you have a clergyman never warn his people of their sins ? " " If I were he, I 'd much sooner take the sins for granted, and say to them, ' Now, my friends, I know you are all, ninety-nine out of the hundred of you, not such bad fellows at bottom, and would all like to be good, if you only knew how ; so I '11 tell you as far as I know, though I don't know much about the matter. For the truth is, you must have a hundred troubles every day which I never felt in my life ; and it must be a very hard thing to keep body and soul together, and to get a little pleasure on this side the grave, without making blackguards of yourselves. There- fore I don't pretend to set myself up as a better or a wiser man than you at all ; but I do know a thing or two which I fancy may be useful to you. You can but try it. So come up, if you like, any of you, and talk matters over with me as between gentleman and gentleman. I shall keep youi secret, of course ; and if you find I can't cure your com plaint, why you can but go away and try elsewhere.' " " And so the doctor's model sermon ends in proposing private confession I " » "Of course The thing itself which will do them goo:.!. THE RECOGNITION. ITi without the red rag of an official name, which sen Is thera cackling off like frightened turkeys. Such private con- fession as is going on between you and me now. Here am I confessing to you all my unorthodoxy." " And I my ignorance," said Frank ; " for I really believe you know more about the matter than I do." " Not at all. I may be all wrong. But the fault of your cloth seems to me to be that they apply their medicines without deigning, most of them, to take the least diagnosis of the case. How could I cure a man without first examin- ing what was the matter with him ? " " So say the old casuists, of whom I have read enough — some would say too much ; but they do not satisfy me They deal with actions, and motives, and so forth ; but they do not go down to the one root of wrong, which is the same in every man." " You are getting beyond me ; but why do you not apply a little of the worldly wisdom which these same casuists taught you ? " " To tell you the truth, I have tried in past years, and found that the medicine would not act." "Humph I Well, that would depend, again, on the pre- vious diagnosis of human nature being correct ; and those old monks, I should say, would know about as much of human nature as so many daws in a steeple. Still, you would n't say that what was the matter with old Heale was the matter also with Vavasour ? " " I believe from my heart that it is." " Humph 1 Then you know the symptoms of his com- plaint ? " " I know that he never comes to church." " Nothing more ? I am really speaking in confidence. You surely have heard of disagreements between him and Mrs. Vavasour ? " " Never, I assure you ; you shock me." " I am exceedingly sorry, then, that I said a word about it ; but the whole parish talks of it," answered Tom, who was surprised at this fresh proof of the little confidence which Aberalva put in their parson. " Ah 1 " said Frank, sadly, " I am the last person in the parish to hear any news ; but this is very distressing." "Very, to me. My honor, to tell you the trutn, as 3 medical man, is concerned in the matter ; for she is growing auite ill from unhappiness, and I cannot cure her ; so I 15* 174 THE EECOGNITION. come to you, as soul-doctor, to do what I, the body-doctor cannot." Frank sat pondering for a minute, and then — " You set me on a task for which I am as little fit as any man, by your own showing. What do I know of disagree- ments between man and wife ? And one has a delicacy about offering her comfort. She must bestow her confidence on me before I can use it ; while he — " " While he, as the cause of the disease, is what you ought to treat ; and not her unhappiness, which is only a symptom of it." " Spoken like a wise doctor ; but, to tell you the truth, Thurnall, I have no influence over Mr. Vavasour, and see no means of getting any. If he recognized my authority, as his parish priest, then I should see my way. Let him be as bad as he might, I should have a fixed point from which to work ; but with his free-thinking notions, I know well — one can judge it too easily from his poems — he would look on me as a pedant assuming a spiritual tyranny to which I have no claim." Tom sat a while nursing his knee, and then — " If you saw a man fallen into the water, what do you think would be the shortest way to prove to him that you had authority from Heaven to pull him out ? Do you give it up ? Pulling him out, would it not be, without more ado ? " " I should be happy enough to pull poor Vavasour out, if he would let me. But, till he believes that I can do it, how can I ever begin ? " " How can you expect him to believe, if he has no proof? " " There are proofs enough in the Bible and elsewhere, if he will but accept them. If he refuses to examine into the credentials, the fault is his, not mine. I really do not wish to be hard ; but would you not do the same, if any one refused to employ you, because he chose to deny that you were a legally qualified practitioner ? " " Not so badly put ; but what should I do in that case ? Go on quietly curing his neighbors, till he began to alter his mind as to my qualifications, and came in to be cured him- self. But here 's this difference between you and me. I am not bound to attend any one who don't send for me ; while you think that you are, and carry the notion a little too fat; for I expect you to kill yourself by it some day." " Well ? " said Frank, with something of that lazy Ox- THE EECOGNITION. ] 75 ford tone, which is intended to save the speaker the troubla of giving his arguments, when he has already made up hia mind, or thinks that he has so done. " Well, if I thought myself bound to doctor the man willy-nilly, as you do, I would certainly go to him, and show him, at least, that I understood his complaint. That would be the first step towards his letting me cure him. How else on earth do you fancy that Paul cured those Corinthians about whom I have been reading lately ? " "Are you, too, going to quote Scripture against me ? I am glad to find that your studies extend to St. Paul." " To tell you the truth, your sermon last Sunday puzzled me. I could not comprehend (on your showing) how Paul got that wonderful influence over those pagans which he evidently had ; and as how to get influence is a very favorite study of mine, I borrowed the book when I went home, and read for myself; and the matter at last seemed clear enough, on Paul's own showing." " I don't doubt that; but I suspect your interpretation of the fact and mine would not agree." " Mine is simple enough. He says that what proved him to be an apostle was his power. He is continually appeal- ing to his power ; and what can he mean by that, but that he could do, and had done, what he professed to do ? He promised to make those poor heathen rascals of Greeks bet- ter, and wiser, and happier men ; and I suppose he made them so ; and then there was no doubt of his commission, or his authority, or anything else. He says himself he did not require any credentials, for they were his credentials, read and known of every one ; he had made good men of them out of bad ones, and that was proof enough whose apostle he was." "Well," said Frank, half sadly, "I might say a great deal, of course, on the other side of the question, but I pre- fer hearing what you laymen think about it all." " Will you be angry if I tell you honestly ? " " Did you ever find me angry at anything you said ? " " No. I will do you the justice to say that. Well, what we laymen say is this. If the parsons have the authority of which they boast, why don't they use it ? If they have commission to make bad people good, they must have power too ; for He whose commission they claim, is not likely, I should suppose, to set a man to do what he cannot do." 176 THE RECOGNITION. " And we can do, if people would but submit to us. H all comes round again to the same point." " So it does. How to get them to listen. I tried to find out how Paul achieved that first step : and when I looked, he told me plainly enough. By becoming all things to all men ; by showing these people that he understood them, and knew what was the matter with them. Now, do you go and do likewise by Vavasour, and then exercise your authority like a practical man. If you have power to bind and loose, as you told us last Sunday, bind that fellow's ungovernable temper, and loose him from the real slavery which he is in to his miserable conceit and self-indulgence ; and then, if he does not believe in your ' sacerdotal power,' he is even a greater fool than I take him for." " Honestly, I will try ; God help me 1 " added Frank, in a lower voice ; " but as for quarrels between man and wife, as I told you, no one understands them less than I." " Then- marry a wife yourself, and quarrel a little with her, for experiment, and then you '11 know all about it." Frank laughed in spite of himself. " Thank you. No man is less likely to try that experi^ ment than I." "Hum!" " I have quite enough as a bachelor to distract me from my work, without adding to them those of a wife and family, and those little home lessons in the frailty of human nature, in which you advise me to copy Mr. Vavasour." " And so," said Tom, " having to doctor human beings, nineteen twentieths of whom are married ; and being aware that three parts of the miseries of human life come either from wanting to be married, or from married cares and troubles — you think that you will improve your chance of doctoring your flock rightly by avoiding carefully the least practical acquaintance with the chief cause of their disease. Philosophical and logical, truly I " " You seem to have acquired a little knowledge of men and women, my good friend, without encumbering yourself with a wife and children." " Would you like to go to the same school to which I went ? " asked Thurnall, with a look of such grave mean ing that Frank's pure spirit shuddered within him. " And I '11 tell you this ; whenever I see a woman nursing her baby, or a father with his child upon his knees, I say to myself — they know more at this minute, of human nature, THE RECOGNITION. 171 »8 of the great law of ' G'est V amour, V amour, I'amaur, which makes the world go round/ than I am likely to dc for many a day. I'll tell you what, sir! luese simple natural ties, which are common to us and the dumb animals, ■ — as I live, sir, they are the divinest things I see in the Vvorld I I have but one, and that is love to my poor old father ; that 's all the religion I have as yet ; but I tell you, it alone has kept me from being a ruflSan and a blackguard. And I '11 tell you more," said Tom, warming ; " of all diar bolical dodges for preventing the parsons from seeing who they are, or what human beings are, or what their work in the world is, or anything else, the neatest js-that „calibacy ,,Ji£-the-c]ergy. I should like to have you with me in Span- ish America, or in France either, and see what you thought of it then. How it ever came into mortal brains is to me the puzzle. I 've often fancied, when I 've watched those priests, — and very good fellows, too, some of them are, — that there must be a devil after all abroad in the world, as you say ; for no human insanity could ever have hit upon so complete and 'cute a device for making parsons do the more harm, the more good they try to do. There, I 've preached you a sermon, and made you angry." " Not the least ; but I must go now and see some sick." " Well, go, and prosper ; only recollect that the said sick are men and women." And away Tom went, thinking to himself: " Well, that is a noble, straightforward, honest fellow, and will do yet, if he '11 only get a wife. He 's not one of those asses who have made up their minds by book that the world is square, and won't believe it to be round for any ocular demonstra- tion. He '11 find out what shape the world is before long, and behave as such, and act accordingly." Little did Tom think, as he went home that day in full- blown satisfaction with his sermon to Frank, of the misery he had caused and was going to cause for many a day to poor Grace Harvey. It was a rude shock to her to find her- self thus suspected ; though perhaps it was one which she needed. She had never, since one first trouble ten years ago, known any real grief; and had therefore had all tht. more time to make a luxury of unreal ones. She was treated by the simple folk around her as all but inspired ; and being possessed of real powers as miraculous in her own eyes aa those which were imputed to her were in theirs (for what are real spiritual experiences but daily miracles ? ), she was ust in that temper of mind in which she required, as bal 178 THE RECOGNITION. last, all hex n;al goodness, lest the moral balauce should topple headlong after the intellectual, and the downward course of vanity, excitement, deception, blasphemous as- sumptions be entered on. Happy for her that she was in Protestant and common-sense England, and in a country parish where mesmerism and spirit-rapping were unknown. Had she been an American, she might have become one of the most lucrative " mediums ; " had she been born in a Romish country, she would have probably become an even more famous personage. There is no reason why she should not have equalled, or surpassed, the ecstasies of St. Theresa, or of St. Hildegardis, or any other sweet dreamer of sweet dreams ; have founded a new order of charity, have enriched the clergy of a whole province, and have died in seven years, maddened by alternate paroxysms of self-conceit and revulsions of self-abasement. Her own preachers and class- leaders, indeed (so do extremes meet), would not have been sorry to make use of her in somewhat the same manner, however feebly and coarsely ; but her innate self-respect lind modesty had preserved her from the snares of such clumsy poachers ; and more than one good-looking young preacher had fled desperately from a station where, instead of making a tool of Grace Harvey, he could only madden his own foolish heart with love for her. So Grace had reigned upon her pretty little throne of not unbearable sorrows, till a real and bitter woe came ; one which could not be hugged and cherished, like the rest ; one which she tried to fling from her, angrily, scornfully, and found, to her horror, that, instead of her possessing it, it pos- sessed her, and coiled itself round her heart, and would not be flung away. She — she, of all beings, to be suspected as a thief, and by the very man whose life she had saved ! She was willing enough to confess herself — and confessed herself night and morning — a miserable sinner, and her heart a cage of unclean birds, deceitful, and desperately wicked — except in that. The conscious innocence flashed up in pride and scorn, in thoughts, even when she was alone, in words, of which she would not have believed herself capa- ble. With hot brow and dry eyes she paced her little cham- ber, eat down on the bed, staring into vacancy, sprang up and paced again; but she went into no trance — she dare not. The grief was too great ; she felt that, if she once gave way enough to lose her self-possession, she should go mad. And the first, and perhaps not the least, good effect of that fiery trial was, that it compelled her to « stem self-restraint, TBt! RECOGNITION. 179 to which her will, weakened by mental luxuriousiioss, had Deen long a stranger. But a fiery trial it was. That first wild (and yet not unnatural) fancy, that Heaven had given Thurnall to her, had deepened day by day, by the mere indulgence of it. But she never dreamt of him as her husband ; only as a friendless stranger to be helped and comforted. And that he was worthy of help ; that some great future was in store for him ; that he was a chosen vessel marked out for glory, she had persuaded herself utterly ; and the persuasion grew in her day by day, as she heard more and more of his clev- erness, honesty, and kindliness, mysterious, and, to her, u.iraculous learning. Therefore she did not make haste ; she did not even try to see him, or to speak to him ; a civil bow in passing was all that she took or gave ; and she was content with \hat, and waited till the time came when she was destined to do for him — what she knew not; but it would be done if she were strong enough. So she set her- self to learn, and read, and trained her mind and temper more earnestly than ever, and waited in patience for God's good time. And now, behold, a black, unfathomable gulf of doubt and shame had opened between them, perhaps for- ever ! And a tumult arose in her soul, which cannot be, perhaps ought not to be, analyzed in words ; but which made )ier know too well, by her own crimson cheeks, that 1 it was none other than human love strong as death, audi jealousy cruel as the grave. At last, long and agonizing prayer brought gentler thoughts, and mere physical exhaustion a calmer mood. How wicked she had been — how rebellious! Why not forgive him, as One greater than she had forgiven ? It was ungrateful of him ; but was he not human ? Why should she expect his heart to be better than hers ? Be- sides, he might have excuses for his suspicion. He might be the best judge, being a man, and such a clever one too. Yes ; it was God's cross, and she would bear it ; she would try and forget him. No ; that was impossible ; she must hear of him, if not see him, day by day ; besides, was not her fate linked up with his ? And yet, shut out from him by that dark wall of suspicion! It was v^ry bitter. But she could pray for him ; she would pray for him now. Yes ; it was God's cross, and shd would bear it. He would right her if He thought fit ; and if not, what matter ? Was she not born to sorrow ? Should she complain if another drop, and that the bitterest of all, was added to the cup? 180 THE RECOGNITION. And bear her cross she did, about with her, coming iu, and going' out, for many a weary day. There was no change in her hibits or demeanor; she was never listless for a moment in her school ; she was more gay and amusing than ever, when she gathered her little ones aiound her for a story ; but still there was the unseen burden, grinding her heart slowly, till she felt as if every footstep was stained with a drop of her heart's blood . . . Why not? It would be the sooner over. Then, at times, came that strange woman's pleasure in martyrdom, the secret pride of suffering unjustly ; but even that, after a while, she cast away from her, as a snare, and tried to believe that she deserved all her sorrow — deserved it, that is, in the real, honest sense of the word ; that she had worked it out, and earned it, and brought it on herself — how, she knew not, but longed and strove to know. No ; it was no martyrdom. She would not allow herself so silly a cloak of pride ; and she went daily to her favorite " Book of Martyrs," to contemplate there the stories of those who, really innocent, really suffered for well doing. And out of that book she began to draw a new and strange enjoyment, for she soon found that her intense imagination enabled her to reenact those sad and glorious stories in her own person ; to tremble, agonize, and conquer with those heroines who had been for years her highest ideals — and what higher ones could she have ? And many a night, after extinguish- ing the light, and closing her eyes, she would lie motion- less for hours on her little bed, not to sleep, but to feel with Perpetua the wild bull's horns, to hang with St. Maura on the cross, or lie with Julitta on the rack, or see with a tri umphant smile, by Anne Askew's side, the fire flare up around her at the Smithfield stake, or to promise, with dying Dorothea, celestial roses to the mocking youth, whose face too often took the form of Thurnall's ; till every nerve quiv- ered responsive to her fancy in agonies of actual pain, which died away at last into heavy slumber, as body and mind alike gave way before the strain. Sweet fool 1 she knew not — how could she know? — that she might be rearing in herself the seeds of idiotcy and death ; but who that applauds a Rachel or a Eistori, for being able to make a while their souls and their countenances the homes of the darkest passions, can blame her for enacting in herself and for herself alone, incidents in which the highest and holiest virtue takes shape in perfect tragedy ? But soon another, and a yet darker cause of sorrow arnsa THE RECOGNITION. 181 In Her. It -vvas clear, from what Willis had told her, that ' she had held the lost belt in her hand. The question was, howTiad^she lost it ? Did her mother know anything about it ? That question could not but arise in her mind, though, for very reverence, she dared not put it to her mother ; and with it arose the recollection of her mother's strange silence about the matter. Why had she put away the subject, carelessly, and yet peevishly, whenever it was mentioned ? Yes, why ? Did her mother know anything ? Was she ? Grace dared not pronounce the adjective, even in thought ; dashed it away as a temptation of the devil ; dashed away, too, the thought, which had forced itself on her too often already, that her mother was not altogether one who possessed the single eye ; that, in spite of her deep religious feeling, her assurance of salvation, her fits of bitter self-humiliation and despondency, there was an inclination to scheming and intrigue, ambition, covetousness ; that the secrets which she gained as class-leader, too, were too often (Grace could but fear) used to her own advantage ; that, in her dealings, her morality was not above the average of little country shop-keepers ; that she was apt to have two prices ; to keep her books with unnecessary carelessness, when the person against whom the account stood was no scholar. Grace had more than once remonstrated in her gentle way ; and had been silenced, rather than satisfied, by her mother's common-places as to the right of " making those who could pay, pay for those who could not ; " that " it was very hard to get a living, and the Lord knew her temptations," and "that God saw no sin in his elect," and " Christ's merits were infinite," and " Christians always had been a backslid- ing generation ; " and all the other common-places by which such people drug their consciences to a degree which is utterly incredible, except to those who have seen it with their own eyes, and heard it with their own ears, from childhood. Once, too, in those very days, some little meanness on her mother's part brought the tears into Grace's eyes, and a gentle rebuke to her lips ; but her mother bore the inter- ference less patiently than usual, and answered, not by cant, but by counter-reproach. " Was she the person to accuse a poor widowed mother, struggling to leave her child something to keep her out of the work-house ? A mothci that livsd for her, would die for her, sell her soul for her, perhaps — " 16 182 7 HE EECOGNITION. And there Mrs. Harvey stopped short, turned pale, and burst into such an agony of tears, that Grace, terrified, threw her arms round her neck, and entreated forgiveness, all the more intensely on account of those thoughts within which she dared not reveal. So the storm passed ovei'. But not Grace's sadness. For she could not but see, with her clear, pure spiritual eye, that her mother was just in that state in which some fearful and shameful fall is possible, perhaps wholesome. " She would sell her soul for me ? What if she have sold it, and stopped short just now, be- cause she had not the heart to tell me that love for me had been the cause ? 0, if she have sinned for my sake ! Wretch that I am ! Miserable myself, and bringing misery with me ! Why was I ever born ? Why cannot I die — and the world be rid of me ? " No, she would not believe it. It was a wicked, horrible temptation of the devil. She would rather believe that she herself had been the thief, tempted during her unconscious- ness ; that she had hidden it somewhere ; that she should recollect, confess, restore all some day„ She would carry it to him herself, grovel at his feet, and entreat forgiveness. "He will surely forgive, when he finds that I was not myself when — that it was not altogether my fault — not as if I had been waking — yes, he will forgive!" And then on that thought followed a dream of what might follow, BO wild that a moment after she had hid her blushes ii hei bands, md fled to books to escape from thoughts. CHAPTER XI. THE FIRST INSTALMENT OP AN OLD DEBT. Ws must now return to Elsley, who had walked home ia a state of mind truly pitiable. He had been flattering hia soul with the hope that Thurnall did not know him ; that his beard, and the change which years had made, formed a BuflScient disguise ; but he could not conceal from himself that the very same alterations had not prevented his recog- nizing Thurnall ; and he had been living for two months past in continual fear that that would come which now had come , His rage and terror knew no bounds. Fancying Thurnall a merely mean and self-interested worldling, untouched by those higher aspirations which stood to him in place of a religion, he imagined him making every possible use of his power, and longed to escape to the uttermost ends of the earth from his old tormentor, whom the very sea would not put out of the way, but must needs cast ashore at his very feet, to plague him afresh. What a net he had spread around his own feet, by one act of foolish vanity 1 He had taken his present name, merely as a nom de guerre, when first he came to London as a penniless and friendless scribbler. It would hide hini from the ridicule (and, as he fancied, spite) of Thurnall, \ whom he dreaded meeting every time he walked London I streets, and who was for years, to his melancholic and too 1 intense fancy, his hete noir, his Frankenstein's familiar./ Besides, he was ashamed of the name of Briggs. It cer- tainly is not an euphonious or aristocratic name ; and " The Soul's Agonies, by John Briggs," would not have sounded as well as "The Soul's Agonies, by Elsley Vavasour." Va- vasour was a very pretty name, and one of those which is supposed by novelists and young ladies to be aristocratic ; — why so, is a puzzle, as its plain meaning is a tenant-farmer, and nothing more or less. So he had played with the name till he became fon.d^.of it, and considered that he had a right to it. through (seven^vjong years of weary struggles, pen 184 THE FIRST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBT. ury, disappointment, as he climbed the Parnassian Mount, writing for magazines and newspapers, sub-editing this periodical and that ; till he began to be known as a ready, graceful, and trustworthy workman, and was befriended by one kind-hearted litterateur after another. |j For in London, at this moment, any young man of real power will find friends enough and too many among his fellow-book- wrights, and is more likely to have his head turned by flat- tery, than his heart crushed by envy. Of course, whatso- ever flattery he may receive he is expected to return ; and whatsoever clique he may be tossed into on his debut, he ie expected to stand by, and fight for, against the universe ; but that is but fair. If a young gentleman, invited to enrol himself in the Mutual-puffery Society which meets every Monday and Friday in Hatchgoose the publisher's drawing- room, is willing to pledge himself thereto in the mystic cup of tea, is he not as solemnly bound thenceforth to support those literary Catilines in their efforts for the subversion of common sense, good taste, and established things in gen eral, as if he had pledged them, as he would have done in Rome of old, in his own life-blood ? Bound he is, alike by honor and by green tea ; and it will be better for him to fulfil his bond. For, if association is the cardinal principle of the age, will it not work as well in book-making as in clothes-making ? And shall not the motto of the poet (who will also do a little reviewing on the sly) be henceforth that which shines triumphant over all the world, on many a valiant Scotchman's shield, — " Caw me, and I 'II caw thee " ? But, to do John Briggs justice, he kept his hands, and his heart also, cleaner than most men do, during this stage of his career. After the first excitement of novelty, and of mixing with people who could really talk and think, and who freely spoke out whatever was in them, right or wrong, in language which a*, least sounded grand and deep, he began to find in the literary world about the same satisfac- tion for his inner life which he would have found in the sport- ing world, or the commercial world, or the religious world, jr the fashionable world, or any other world, and to suspect strongly that wheresoever a world is, the flesh and the devi] vce not very far off. Tired of talking when he wanted to think, of asserting when he wanted to discover, and of bearing his neighbors do the same ; tired of little mean THE FIRST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBT. 185 nesses, envyings, intrigues, jobberies (for the literar_y world, too, has its jobs), he had been for some time with- drawing himself from the Hatchgoose soirees into his own thoughts, when his "Soul's Agonies" appeared, and he found himself, if not a lion, at least a lion's cub. There is a house or two in town where you may meet, on certain evenings, everybody ; whei'e duchesses and un- fledged poets, bishops and red republican refugees, fox- hunting noblemen and briefless barristers who have taken to politics, are jumbled together for a couple of hours, to make what they can out of each other, to the exceeding benefit of them all. For each and every one of them finds his neighbor a pleasanter person than he expected ; and none need leave those rooms without knowing something more than he did when he came in, and taking an interest in some human being who may need that interest. To one of these houses — no matter which — Elsley was invited on the strength of the " Soul's Agonies ; " found himself, for the first time, face to face with high-bred Englishwomen ; and fancied (small blame to him) that he was come to the mountains of the Peris, and to fairy-land itself. He had been flattered already ; but never with such grace, such sympathy, or such seeming understanding ; for there are few high-bred women who cannot seem to understand, and delude a hapless genius into a belief in their own surpass- ing brilliance and penetration, while they are cunningly retailing again to him the thoughts which they have caught up from the man to whom they spoke last ; perhaps (for this is the very triumph of their art) from the very man to whom they are speaking. Small blame to bashful, clumsy John Briggs, if he did not know his own children, and could not recognize his own stammered and fragmentary fancies, when they were reechoed to him the next minute, in the prettiest shape, and with the most delicate articula- tion, from lips which (like those in the fairy tale) never opened without dropping pearls and diamonds. 0, what a contrast, in the eyes of a man whose sense of beauty and grace, whether physical or intellectual, was true and deep, to that ghastly ring of prophetesses in tha Hatchgoose drawing-room ; strong-minded and emancipated women, who prided themselves on having cast off conven- tionalities, and on being rude, and awkward, and dogmatic, and irreverent, and sometimes slightly improper ; women who had missions to mond everything in heaven and earth except themselrps ; who hail quarrelled with their husbands. 16* 186 THE FIRST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBT. and had therefore felt a mission to assert woman's rights and reform marriage in general ; or who had never been able to get married at all, and therefore were especially competent to promulgate a model method of educating the children whom they never had had ; women who wrote poetry about Lady Blanches whom they never had met, and novels about male and female blackguards whom (one hopes) they never had met, or about whom (if they had) decent women would have held their peace ; and every one of whom had, in obedience to Emerson, "followed her impulses," and despised fashion, and was, accordingly, clothed and bediz- ened as was right in the sight of her own eyes, and prob- ably in those of no one else. No wonder that Elsley, ere long, began drawing compar isons, and using his wit upon ancient patronesses — of course behind their backs ; likening them to idols fresh from the car of Juggernaut, or from the stern of a South Sea canoe ; or, most of all, to that famous wooden image of Freya, which once leaped lumbering forth from her bul- lock-cart, creaking and rattling in every oaken joint, to belabor the too daring Viking who was flirting with her priestess. Even so, whispered Elsley, did those brains and tongues creak and rattle, lumbering, before the blasts of Pythonic inspiration ; and so, he verily believed, would the awkward arms and legs have done likewise, if one of the Pythonesses had ever so far degraded herself as to dance. No wonder, then, that those gifted dames had soon to complain of Elsley Vavasour as a traitor to the cause of progress and civilization ; a renegade who had fled to the camp of aristocracy, flunkeydom, obscurantism, frivolity, and dissipation ; though there was not one of them but would have given an eye — perhaps no great loss to the aggregate loveliness of the universe — for one of his invita- tions to 999 Cavendish-street south-east, with the chance of being presented to the Duchess of Lyonesse. To do Elsley justice, one reason why he liked his new acquaintances so well was that they liked him. He be haved well himself, and therefore people behaved well to him. He was, as I have said, a very handsome fellow in his way ; therefore it was easy to him, as it is to all phys- ically beautiful persons, to acquire a graceful manner. Moreover, he had steeped his whole soul in old poetry, and aspecially in Spenser's Faery Queen. Good for him, had he followed every lesson which he might have learned out of that most noble of English books ; but one lesson at least THE PIEST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBT. 181 he learned from it, and that was, to be chivalrous, tender, and courteous, to all women, however old or ugly, sim- ply because they were women. The Hatchgoose Pytlion< esses did not wish to be women, but very bad imitations of men ; and, therefore, he considered himself absolved from all knightly duties toward them ; but toward these Peris of the west, and to the dowagers who had been Peris in their time, what adoration could be too great ? So he bowed down and worshipped ; and, on the whole, he was quite right in so doing. Moreover, he had the good sense to dis- covjr that, though the young Peris were the prettiest to look at, the elder Peris were the better company ; and that it is, in general, from married women that a poet or any one else will ever learn what woman's heart is like. And so well did he carry out his creed, that, before his first summer was over, he had quite captivated the heart of old Lady Knockdown, aunt to Lucia St. Just, and wife to Lucia's guardian ; a charming old Irish woman, who affected a pretty brogue, perhaps for the same reason that she wore a wig, and who had been, in her day, a beauty and a blue, a friend of the Miss Berrys, and Tommy Moore, and Grat- tan, and Lord Edward Fitzgerald, and Dan O'Connell, and all other lions and lionesses which had roared for the last sixty years about the Emerald Isle. There was no one whom she did not know, and nothing she could not talk about. Married up, when a girl, to a man for whom she did not care, and having no children, she had indemnified herself by many flirtations, and the writing of two or three novels, in which she penned on paper the superfluous feeling which had no vent in real life. She had deserted, as she grew old, the novel for unfulfilled prophecy ; and was a distinguished leader in a distinguished religious c6terie ; but she still prided herself upon having a green head upon gray shoulders ; and not without reason ; for, underneath all the worldliness and intrigue, and petty aflfectation of girlishness, which she contrived to jumble in with her re- ligiosity, beat a young and kindly heart. So she was charmed with Mr. Vavasour's manners, and commended them much to Lucia, who, a shrinking girl of seventeen, was peeping at her first season from under Lady Knock- down's sheltering wing. " Me dear, let Mr. Vavasour be who he will, he has not only the intellect of a true genius, but what is a great deal better for practical purposes ; that is, the manners of one Give me the man who will let a woman of our rank say what 188 THE FIRST INSTALMENT OF iN OLD MSST. we like to him, without supposing that he may say what h« likes in return ; and considers one's familiarity as an hon jr, and not as an excuse for taking liberties. A most agree- able contrast, indeed, to the young men of the present day, whc come in their shooting-jackets, and talk slang to their partners, — though, really, the girls are just as bad, — and stand with their backs to the fire, and smell of smoke, and go to sleep after dinner, and pay no respect to old age, nor to youth either, I think. 'Pon me word, Lucia, the answers I 've heard young gentlemen make to young ladies, this very season, — they'd have been called out the next morn- ing in my time, me dear. As for the age of chivalry, nobody expects that to be restored ; but, really, one might have been spared the substitute for it which we had when I was young, in the grand air of the old school. It was a ' sham,' I dare say, as they call everything now-a-days ; but, really, me dear, a pleasant sham is better to live with than an unpleasant reality, especially when it smells of cigars." So it befell that Elsley Vavasour was asked to Lady Knockdown's, and that there he fell in love with Lucia, and Lucia fell in love with him. The next winter old Lord Knockdown, who had been decrepit for some years past, died ; and his widow, whose income was under five hundred a year, — for the estates were entailed, and mortgaged, and everything else which can happen to an Irish property, — came to live wit|i her nephew. Lord Scoutbush, in Eaton Square, and take such care as she could of Lucia and Valencia. So, after a dreary autumn and winter of parting and silence, Elsley found himself the next season invited to Eaton Square ; there the mischief, if mischief it was, was done ; and Elsley and Lucia started in life upon two hun- dred a year. He had inherited some fifty of his own ; she had about a hundred and fifty, — which,indeed, was not yet her own by right, but little Scoutbush (who was her sole surviving guardian) behaved, on the whole, very well for a young gentleman of twenty-two, in a state of fury and astonishment. The old lord had, wisely enough, settled in his will that Lucia was to enjoy the interest of her for- tune from the time that she came out, provided she did not marry without her guardian's leave ; and Scoutbush, to avoid esclandre and misery, thought it as well to waive the proviso, and paid her her dividends as usual. But how had she contrived to marry at all without his THE FIRST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DKBT. 189 leave 5" That is an ugly question. I will not say that she had told a falsehood, or that Elsley had forsworn himself when he got the license ; but certainly both of them were guilty of something very like a white lie, when they declared that Lucia had the consent of her sole surviving guardian, on the strength of an half-angry, half-jesting expression of Scoutbush's, that she might marry whom she chose, pro- vided she did not plague him. In the first triumph of suc- cess and intoxication of wedded bliss, Lucia had written him a saucy letter, reminding him of his permission, and saying that she had taken him at his word ; but her con- science smote her, and Elsley's smote him likewise, and smote him all the more because he had been married under a false name, a fact which might have ugly consequences In law which he did not like to contemplate. To do him justice, he had been, half-a-dozen times during his court- ship, on the point of telling Lucia his real name and his- tory. Happy for him had he done so, whatever might have been the consequences. But he wanted moral courage ; the hideous sound of Briggs had become horrible to him ; and once his foolish heart was frightened away from honesty, just as honesty was on the point of conquering, by old Lady Knockdown's saying that she could never have mar- ried a man with an ugly name, or let Lucia marry one. " Conceive becoming Mrs. Natty Bumppo, me dear, even for twenty thousand a year. If you could summon up courage to do the deed, I could n't summon up courage to continue my correspondence with ye." Elsley knew that that was a lie ; that the old lady would have let her marry the most triumphant snob in England, if he had half that income ; but, unfortunately, Lucia capped her aunt's nonsense with " There is no fear of my ever mar- rying any one who has not a graceful name," and a look at Vavasour, which said, " And you have one, and therefore I — " For the matter had then been settled between them. This was too much for his vanity, and too much, also, for his fears of losing Lucia by confessing the truth. So Elsley went on, ashamed of his real name, ashamed of having con- cealed it, ashamed of being afraid that it would be discov ered, — in a triple complication of shame, which made him gradually, as it makes every man, moody, suspicious, apt to take offence where none is meant. Besides, they were very poor. He, though neither extravagant nor profligate, was, like most literary men who are accustomed to live from nand to mouth, careless, self-indulgent, unmethodical She 190 THE FIRST INSTALMENT OP AN OLD DEBT. knew as much of housekeeping as the Queen of Oude does , and her charming little dreams of shopping for herself were rudely enough broken, ere the first week was out, by the horrified looks of Clara, when she returned from her firsl morning's marketing for the weekly consumption, with nothing but a woodcock, some truffles, and a bunch of celery. Then the landlady of the lodgings robbed her, even under the nose of the faithful Clara, who knew as little about housekeeping as her mistress ; and Clara, faithful as she was, repaid herself by grumbling and taking liberties for being degraded from the luxurious post of lady's maid to that of servant of all work, with a landlady and "mar- chioness " to wrestle with all day long. Then, what with imprudence and anxiety, Lucia of coursejpsther first child ; and after that came months omihess, during whTCE"^sley tended her, it must be said for him, as lovingly as a mother ; and perhaps they were both really happier during that time of sorrow than they had been in all the delirious bliss of the honeymoon. Valencia meanwhile defied old Lady Knockdown (whose horror and wrath knew no bounds), and walked off' one morning with her maid to see her prodigal sister, — a visit which not only brought comfort to the weary heart, but important practical benefits. For, going home, she seized upon Scoutbush, and so moved his heart with pathetic pic- tures of Lucia's unheard-of penury and misery, that his heart was softened ; and, though he absolutely refused to call on Vavasour, he made him an offer, through Lucia, of Penalva Court for the time being ; and thither they went — perEaps~thS^est thing they could have done. There, of course, they were somewhat more comfortable. A very cheap country, a comfortable house rent free, and a lovely neighborhood, were a pleasant change, after dear London lodgings ; but it is a question whether the change made Elsley a better man. In the first place, he became a more idle man. The rich, enervating climate began to tell upon his mind, as it did upon Lucia's health. He missed that perpetual spur of nervous excitement, change of society, influx of ever-fresh objects, which makes London, after all, the best place in the world for hard working ; and which makes even a walk along the streets an intellectual tonic. In the soft and luxurious West Country, Nature invited him to look at her, and dream ; and dream he did, more and more, day by day. He was tired, too, — as who would not be ? — of the drudg* THE PIEST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBT. 191 cry of writing for his daily bread ; and, relieved from the importunities of publishers and printers' devils, he sent up fewer and fewer contributions to the magazines. He would keep his energies for a great work ; poetry was, after all, his forte ; he would not fritter himself away on prose and periodicals, but would win for himself, &c. &c. If he made a mistake, it was, at least, a pardonable one. But Elsley became not only a more idle, but a more morose man. He began to feel the evils of solitude. There was no one near with whom he could hold rational converse, save an antiquarian parson or two ; and parsons were not to his taste. So, never measuring his wits against those of his peers, and despising the few men whom he met as inferior to him- self, he grew more and more wrapt up in his own thoughts, and his own tastes. His own poems, even to the slightest turn of expression, became more and more important to him. He grew more jealous of criticism, more confident in his own little theories about this and that, more careless of the opinion of his fellow-men, and, as a certain conse- quence, more unable to bear the little crosses and contra- dictions of daily life ; and as Lucia, having brought one and another child safely into the world, settled down into mother- hood, he became less and less attentive to her, and more and more attentive to that self which was fast becoming the centre of his universe. True, there were excuses for him ; for whom are there none ? He was poor and struggling ; and it is much more diflScult (as Becky Sharp, I think, pathetically observes) to be good when one is poor than when one is rich. It is (and all rich people should consider the fact) much more easy, if not to go to heaven, at least to think one is going thither, on three thousand a year, than on three hundred. Not only is respectability more easy, — as is proved by the broad fact that it is the poor people who fill the jails, and not the rich ones, — but virtue, and religion — of the popular sort. It is, undeniably, more easy to be resigned to the will of Heaven, when that will seems tending just as we would have it ; much more easy to have faith in the goodness of Providence, when that goodness seems safe in one's pocket in the form of bank notes ; and to believe that one's children are under the protection of Omnipotence, when one can hire for them in half an hour the best medical advice in London. One need only look into one's own heart to understand the dis- ciples' astonishment at the news, that " How hardly shall they that have riches enter into the kingdom of heaven 1 " 192 THE FIRST INSTALMENT OP AN OLD DEBT. " Who then can be saved ? " asked they, being poor men, accustomed to see the wealthy Pharisees in possession of " the highest religious privileges, and means of grace.' Who, indeed, if not the rich ? If the noblemen, and tha bankers, and the dowagers, and the young ladies who go to ohurch and read good books, and have been supplied from youth with the very best religious articles which money can procure, and have time for all manner of good works, and give their hundreds to charities, and head reformatory move- ments, and build churches, and work altar-cloths, and can taste all the preachers and father-confessors round London, one after another, as you would taste wines, till they find the spiritual panacea which exactly suits their complaint — ■ if they are not sure of salvation, who can be saved ? Without further comment, the fact is left for the considera- tion of all readers •, only let them not be too hard upon Els- ley and Lucia, if, finding themselves sometimes literally at their wits' end, they went beyond their poor wits into the region where foolish things are said and done. Moreover, Blsley's ill-temper (as well ap Lucia's) bad its excuses in physical ill-health. Poor fellow ! Long years of sedentary work had begun to tell upon him ; and while Tom Thurnall's chest, under the influence of hard work and oxygen, measured round perhaps six inch'^s more than it had done sixteen years ago, Elsley's, thanks to stooping and carbonic acid, measured six inches less. Short breath, lassi- tude, loss of appetite, heartburn, and all that fair company of miseries which Mr. Cockle and his Anti-Bilious Pills pro- fess to cure, are no cheering bosom friends ; but when a man's breast-bone is gradually growing into his stomach, they will make their appearance ; and small blame to him whose temper suflfers from their gentle hints that he has a mortal body as well as an immortal soul. But most fretting of all was the discovery that Lucia knew, if not all about his original name, still enough to keep him in dread lest she should learn more. It was now twelve months and more that this new terror uad leapt up and stared him in his face. He had left a let- ter about, — a thing which he was apt to do, — in which the Whitbury lawyer made some allusions to his little property • and he was sure that Lucia had seen it. The hated name of Briggs certainly she had not seen, for Elsley had torn it out the moment he opened the letter ; but she had seen enough, as he soon found, to be certain that he had, at soro« time or other, passed under a diflerent name. THE FIRST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBl. 19S If Lucia had been a more thoughtful or high-minded woman, she would have gone straight to her husband, and quietly and lovingly asked him to tell her all ; but, in her left-handed, Irish fashion, she kept the secret to herself, and thought it a very good joke to have him in her povrer, and to be able to torment him about that letter when he got out of temper. It never occurred, however, to her, that his present name was the feigned one. She fancied that he had, in some youthful escapade, assumed the name to which the lawyer alluded. So, the next time he was cross, she tried laughingly the effect of her newly-discovered spell, and was horror-struck at the storm which she evoked. In a voice of thunder, Elsley commanded her never to mention the subject again ; and showed such signs of terror and re- morse, that she obeyed him from that day forth, except when now and then she lost her temper as completely, too, as he. Little she thought, in her heedlessness, what a dark cloud of fear and suspicion, ever deepening and spreading, she had put between his heart and hers. But if Elsley had dreaded her knowledge of his story, he dreaded ten times more Tom's knowledge of it. What if Thurnall should tell Lucia ? What if Lucia should make a confidant of Thurnall ? Women told their doctors every- thing ; and Lucia, he knew too well, had cause to complain of him. Perhaps, thought he, maddened into wild suspicion by the sense of his own wrong-doing, she might complain of him ; she might combine with Thurnall against him — for what purposes he knew not ; but the wildest imaginations flashed across him, as he hurried desperately home, intend- ing, as soon as he got there, to forbid Lucia's ever calling in his dreaded enemy. No, Thurnall should never cross his door again I On that one point he was determined, but on nothing else. However, his intention was never fulfilled. For long before he reached home he began to feel himself thoroughly ill. His TiTas a temperament upon which mental anxiety acts rapidly and severely ; and the burning sun, and his rapid walk, combined with rage and terror to give him such a " turn " that, as he hurried down the lane, he found himself reeling like a drunken man. He had just time to hurry through the garden, and into his study, when pulse and sense failed him, and he rolled over on the sofa in a dead faint. Lucia had seen him come in, and heard him fall, and rushed in. The poor little thing was at her wits' end. and n 1&4 THK FIRST INSTALMENT OP AN OLD DEBT. thought that he had had nothing less than a coup desoUtil And when he recovered from his faintness, he began to be so horribly ill that Clara, who had been called in to help, had some grounds for the degrading hypothesis (for which Lucia all but boxed her ears) that " Master had got away into the woods, and gone eating toadstools, or some such poisonous stuff;" for he lay a full half-hour on the sofa, death-cold, and almost pulseless ; moaning, shuddering, hiding his face in his hands, and refusing cordials, medi- cines, and, above all, a doctor's visit. However, this could not be allowed to last. Without Elsley's knowledge, a messenger was despatched for Thur- nall, and, luckily, met him in the lane ; for he was return- ing to the town in the footsteps of his victim. Elsley's horror was complete when the door opened, and Lucia brought in none other than his tormentor. " My dearest Elsley, I have sent for Mr. Thurnall. I knew you would not let me, if I told you ; but you see 1 have done it, and now you must really speak to him." Elsley's first impulse was to motion them both away angrily ; but the thought that he was in Thurnall's power stopped him. He must not show his disgust. What if ' Lucia were to ask its cause, even to guess it ? for to his fears even that seemed possible. A fresh misery 1 Just because he shrank so intensely from the man, he must endure him 1 " There is nothing the matter with me," said he, lan- guidly. "I should be the best judge of that, after what Mrs. Vavasour has just told me," said Tom, in his most profes- sional and civil voice, and slipped, cat-like, into a seat beside the unresisting poet. He asked question on question ; but Elsley gave such unsatisfactory answers that Lucia had to detail everything afresh for him, with, " You know, Mr. Thurnall, he is always overtasking his brain, and will never confess him- self ill," and all a woman's anxious comments. Eogue Tom knew all the while well enough what was the cause ; but he saw, too, that Elsley was really very ill. He felt that he must have the matter out at once ; and, by a side glance, sent the obedient Lucia out of the room to get a table-spoonful of brandy. " Now, my dear sir, that we are alone," began he blandly. " Now, sir t " answered Vavasour, springing off the sofaj THE FIRST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBT. 195 ais ■wuole pent-up wrath exploding in hissing steam tha majient the safety-valve was lifted. "Now, sir! what, what is the meaning of this insolence, this intrusion ? " " I beg your pardon, Mr. Vavasour," answered Tom, rising, in a tone of bland and stolid surprise. " What do you want here, with your mummery and med- icine, when you know the cause of my malady well enough already ? Go, sir ! and leave me to myself! " " My dear sir," said Tom, firmly, " you seem to have for- gotten what passed between us this morning." " Will you insult me beyond endurance ? " cried Elsley. " I told you that, as long as you chose, you were Elsley Vavasour, and I the country doctor. We have met in that character. Why not sustain it ? You are really ill ; and if I know the cause, I am all the more likely to know the cure." "Cure?" " Why not ? Believe me, it is in your power to become a much happier man, simply by becoming a healthier one " " Impertinence 1 " "Pish! What can I gain by being impertinent, sir? I know very well that you have received a severe shock ; but I know equally well that if you were as you ought to be you would not feel it in this way. When one sees a man in the state of prostration in which you are, common sense tells one that the body must have been neglected, for the mind to gain such power over it." Elsley replied with a grunt ; but Tom went on, bland and imperturbable. " Believe me ; it may be a very materialist view of things, but fact is fact, the corpus sanum is father to the Tnens sana — tonics and exercise make the ills of life look marvellously smaller. You have the frame of a strong and active man ; and all you want, to make you light-hearted and cheerful, is to develop what nature has given you." " It is too late ! " said Elsley, pleased, as most men are, by being told that they might be strong and active. " Not in the least. Three months would strengthen you) muscles, open your chest again, settle your digestion, and make you as fresh as a lark, and able to sing like one. Be- lieve me, the poetry would be the better for it, as well as the stomach. Now, positively, I shall begin questioning you." So Elsley was won to detail the symptoms of internal malaise, which he was only too much in the habit of watch- 1U() THE FIRST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBT. ing himself; but there were some among them which Tea could not quite account for on the ground of mere effemi- nate habits. A thought struck him. " You sleep ill, I suppose ? " said he, carelessly "Very ill." " Did you ever try opiates ? " " No — yes ; that is, sometimes." " Ah I " said Tom, more carelessly still, for he wished to liide, by all means, the importance of the confession. " Well, they give relief for a^time ; but they are dangeroua things, disorder the digestion, and have their revenge on the nerves next morning, as spitefully as brandy itself. Much better try a glass of strong ale or porter just before going to bed. I 've known it give sleep, even in consump- tion ; try it, and exercise. You shoot ? " "No." " Pity ; there ought to be noble cocking in these woods. However, the season 's past. You fish ? " "No." " Pity again. I hear Alva is full of trout. Why not try jailing ? Nothing oxygenates the lungs like a sail ; and ytJUT friends the fishermen would be delighted to have you as supercargo. They are always full of your stories to them, and your pickijag their brains for old legends and adventures." " They are noble fellows, and I want no better company ; but, unfortunately, I am always searsick." " Ah ! wholesome, but unpleasant. You are fond of gar- dening? " " Very ; but stooping makes my head swim." " True ; and I don't want you to stoop. I hope to see you soon as erect as a guardsman. Why not try walks ? " " Abominable bores ; lonely, aimless — " " Well, perhaps you 're right. I never knew but three men who took long constitutionals on principle, and two of them were cracked. But why not try a companion ; and persuade that curate, who needs just the same medicine as you, to accompany you? I don't know a more gentleman- like, agreeable, well-informed man than he is." " Thank you. I can choose my acquaintances for my self." " You touchy ass I " said Thurnall to himself. " If we were in the blessed state of nature now, would n't I give you ten minutes' double thonging, and then set you to frork, as the runaway nigger did his master, Bird o' free' THE FIRST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBT. 197 doin Sawin, till you 'd learnt a thing or two ! " But blandly still he went on. " Try the dumb-bells, then. Nothing lik-e them for open- ing your chest. And do get a high desk made, and stand to your writing, instead of sitting." And Tom actually iipade Vavasour promise to do both, and bade him farewell with, "Now, I '11 send you up a little tonic, and trouble you with no more visits till you send for me. I shall see by one glance at your face whether you are following my pre- scriptions. And, I say, I would n't meddle with those opiates any more ; try good malt and hops instead." "Those who drink beer think beer," said Elsley, smiling, for he was getting more hopeful of himself, and his terrors were vanishing beneath Tom's skilful management. "And those who drink water think water. The Eliza- bethans — Sidney and Shakspeare, Burleigh and Queen Bess — worked on beef and ale ; and you would not class them among the muddle-headed of the -earth ? Believe me, to write well you must live well. If you take it out of j'our brain you must put it in again. It's a question of fact. Try for yourself" And off Tom went ; while Lucia rushed back to her husband, covered him with caresses, assured him that he was seven times as ill as he really was, and so nursed and petted him that he felt himself, for that time at least, a beast and a fool for having suspected her for a mo- ment. Ah, woman, if you only knew how you carry our hearts in your hands, and would but use your power for our benefit, what angels you might make us all ! "So," said Tom, as he went home, " he has found his way to the elevation-bottle, has he, as well as Mrs. Heale ? It's no concern of mine ; but, as a professional man, 1 must stop that. You will certainly be no credit to me if you kill yourself under my hands." Tom went straight home, showed the blacksmith how to make a pair of dumb-bells, covered them himself with leather, and sent them up the next morning, with directions to be used for half an hour morning and evening. And something — whether it was the dumb-bells, or the tonic, or wholesome fear of the terrible doctor — kept Elsley for the next month in better spirits and temper than he had been in for a long while. Moreover, Tom set Lucia to coax him into walking with Headley. She succeeded at last ; and, on the whole, each of them soon found that he had something to learn from the IT* 198 THE FIRST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBT. other. Elsley improved daily in health, and Lucia wrow to Valencia flaming accounts of the wonderful doctor who had been cast on shore in their world's end ; and received from her after a while this, amid much more — for fancy is not exuberant enough to reproduce the whole of a young lady's letter. " — I am so ashamed. I ought to have told you of that doctor a fortnight ago ; but, rattle-pate as I am, I forgot all about it. Do you know, he is Sabina Mellot's dearest friend, and she begged me to recommend him to you, but I put it off, and then it slipped my memory, like everything else good. She has told me the most wonderful stories of his courage and goodness ; and, conceive, she and her hus- band were takeji prisoners with him by the savages in the South Seas, and going to .be eaten, she says ; but he helped them to escape in a canoe — such a story ! — and lived with them for three months on a beautiful desert island ; — it is all like a fairy tale. ■ I '11 tell it you when I come, darling, which I shall do in a fortnight, and we shall be all so happy. I have" such 9, box ready for you and the chicks, which I shall bring with me ; and some pretty things from Scoutbush, beside, who is very low, poor fellow, I cannot conceive what about, but wonderfully tender about you. I fancy he must be in love ; for he stood up the other day about you to my aunt, quite solemnly, with, ' Let her alone, my lady. She 's not the first whom love has made a fool of, and she won't be the last ; and I believe that some of the moves which look most foolish turn out best after all. Live and let live ; everybody knows their own business best ; anything is better than marriage without real affec- tion.' Conceive my astonishment at hearing the dear little fellow turn sage in that way 1 " By the way, I have had to quote his own advice against him, for I have refused Lord Chalkclere after all. I told him (0. not S.) that he was much too good for me ; far too perfect and complete a person ; that I preferred a husband whom I could break in for myself, even though he gave me a little trouble. Scoutbush was cross at first ; but he said afterwards that it was just like Baby Blake (the wretch always calls me Baby Blake now, after that dreadful girl in Lever's novel I) ; and I told him frankly that it was, if he meant that I had sooner break in a thoroughbred foi myself, even though I had a fall or two in the process, than jog along on the most finished little pony on earth, wlo would never go out of an amble. Lord Chalkclere may be ve.ij THE FIRST INSTALMENT OF AN OLD DEBT. 19fl finished, and learned, and excellent, and so forth : but, via chere, I want, not a white rabbit (of which he always re minds me), but a hero, even though he be a naughtj' one. I always fancy people must be very little if they can be fin- ished off so rapidly ; if there was any real verve in them, they would take somewhat longer to grow. Lord Chalk- clere would do very well to bind in Eussia leather, and put on one's library shelves, to be consulted vrhen one forgot a date ; but, really, even your Ulysses of a doctor, — pro- vided, of course, he turned out a prince in disguise, and don't leave out his h's, — would be more to the taste of your naiightiest of sisters." CHAPTER XII. A PEER IN TROUBLE. Somewhere in those days, so it seems, did Mr. Bowie call unto himself a cab at the barrack-gate, and, dressed in his best array, repair to the wilds of Brompton, and request to see either Claude or Mrs. Mellot. Bowie is an ex-Scots-Pusileer, who, damaged by the kick of a horse, has acted as valet, first to Scoutbush's father, and next to Scoutbush himself. He is of a patronizing habit of mind, as befits a tolerably " leeterary " Scotsman of forty-five years of age, and six feet three in height, who has full confidence in the integrity of his own Virtue, the infallibility of his own opinion, and the strength of his own right arm ; for Bowie, though he has a rib or two " dinged in," is mighty still as Theseus' self; and both astonished his red-bearded compatriots, and won money for his master, by his prowess in the late feat of arms at Holland House. Mr. Bowie is asked to walk into Sabina's boudoir (for Claude is out in the garden), to sit down, and deliver his message ; which he does after a due military salute, sitting bolt upright in his chair, and in a solemn and sonorous voice. " Well, madam, it 's just this, that his lordship would be very glad to see ye and Mr. Mellot, for he 's vary ill indeed, and that 's truth ; and if he winna tell ye the cause, then I will — and it's just a' for love of this play-acting body here, and more 's the pity." " More 's the pity, indeed ! " " And it's my opeenion the puir laddie will just die if riLbody sees to him ; and I 've taken the liberty of writing to Major Cawmill mysel', to beg him to come up and see to him, for it 's a pity to see his lordship cast away, for want of an understanding body to advise him." " So I am not an understanding body, Bowie ? " " 0, madam, ye 're young and bonny," says Bowie, in a tone in which admiration is not untoingled with pity. (200) A PEER IN TROUBLE. 201 " Young, indeed ! Mr. Bowie, do you know that I 'ni almost as old as you ? " "Hoot, hut, hut — " says Bowie, looking at the wax-like complexion and bright hawk-eyes. " Keally I am. I 'm past five-and-thirty this many a day." " Weel, then, madam, if you'll excuse me, ye 're old enough to be wiser than to let his lordship be inveigled with any such play-acting." "Really he's not inveigled," says Sabina, laughing. " It is all his own fault, and I have warned him how absurd and impossible it is. She has refused even to see him ; and you know yourself he has not been near our house for these three weeks." "Ah, madam, you'll excuse me; but that's the way with that sort of people, just to draw back and draw back, to make a poor young gentleman follow them all the keener, as a trout does a minnow, the faster you spin it." " I assure you no. I can't let you into ladies' secrets ; but there is no more chance of her listening to him than of me. And as for me, I have been trying all the spring to marry hiitf to a young lady with eighty thousand pounds", so you can't complain of me." " Eh ? No. That 's more like and fitting." " Well, now. Tell his lordship that we are coming ; and trust us, Mr. Bowie ; we do not look very villanous, do we?" " Faith, 'deed then, and I suppose not," said Bowie, using the verb which, in his cautious, Scottish tongue, expresses complete certainty. The truth is, that Bowie adores both Sabina and herjmsband, who are, he says, "just fit to be put under -afglass case on the sideboard, like tw a we e china angels," InTialf an hoiir they were in Scoutbush's rooms. They found the little man lying on his sofa, in his dressing-gown, looking pale and pitiable enough. He had been trying to read ; for the table by him was covered with books : but either gunnery and mathematics had injured his eyes, or he had been crying ; Sabina inclined to the latter opinion. " This is veiy kind of you both ; but I don't want you, Claude. I want Mrs. Mellot. You go to the window with Bowie." Bowie and Claude shrugged their shoulders at each other, and departed. " Now, Mrs. Mellot, I can't help looking up to you as ». mother." 2v)2 A PEEK IN TROUBLE. " Complimentary to my youth," says Sabina, who always calls herself young when she is called old, and old when she is called young. " I did n't mean to be rude. But one does long to open une's heart. I never had any mother to talk to, you know ; and I can't tell my aunt ; and Valencia is so flighty ; and I thought you would give me one chance more. Don't laugh at me, I say. I am really past laughing at." " I see you are, you poor creature," says Sabina, melt- ing ; and a long conversation follows, while Claude and Bowie exchange confidences, and arrive at no lesult beyond the undeniable assertion, " it is a very bad job." Presently Sabina comes out, and Scoutbush calls cheer- fully from the sofa : " Bowie, get my bath and things to dress ; and order me ihe cab in half an hour. Good-by, you dear people, I shall jever thank you enough." Away go Claude and Sabina in a hack-cab. " What have you done ? " " Qiven _him what he entreated for, — another chance with Marie." '.' It will only madden him all the more. Why let him try, when you know it is hopeless ? " " Why, I had not the heart to refuse — that 's the truth ; and, beside, I don't know that it is hopeless." ' ' All the naughtier of you, to let him run the chance of making a fool of himself." " I don't know that he will make such a great fool of himself. As he says, his grandfather married an actress, and why should not he ? " " Simply because she won't marry him." " And how do you know that, sir ? You fancy that you understand all the women's hearts in England, just because you have found out the secret of managing one little fool." " Managing her, quotha ! Being matiaged by her, till my quiet house is turned into a perfect volcano of match- making. Why, I thought he was to marry Manchesterina." " He shall marrj' whom he likes ; and if Marie changes her mind, and revenges herself on this American by taking Lord Scoutbush, all I can say is, it will be a just judgment on him. I have no patience with the heartless fellow, going off thus, and never even leaving his address." " And because you have no patience, yo^u think Maiio will have none ? " A PEER IN TROUBLE. 203 ' ' What do you know about women's hearts ? Leave na to mind our own matters." " Mr. Bowie will kill you outright, if your plot succeeds." " No, he won't. I know who Bowie wants to marry ; and if he is not good, he shan't have her. Besides, it will be such fun to spite old Lady Knockdown, who always turns up her nose at me ! How mad she will be ! Here we are at heme. Now, I shall go and prepare Marie." An hour after, Scoutbush was pleading his cause with Marie ; and had been met, of course, at starting, with the simple rejoinder, — ""But, my lord, you would not surely have me marry where I do not love ? " " 0, of course not ; but, you see, people very often get love after they are married ; and I am sure I would do all to make you love me. I know 1 can't bribe you by promising you carriages and jewels, and all that ; — but you should have what you would like — pictures, and statues, and books — and all that I can buy — 0, madam, I know I am not worthy of you — I never had any education as you have 1 — " 1 Marie smiled a sad smile. " But I would learn — I know I could — for I am no fool, though I say it. I like all that sort of thing, and — and if I had you to teach me, I should care about nothing else I have given up all my nonsense since I knew you ; indeed I have — I am trying all day long to read — ever since you said something about being useful, and noble, and doing one's work : — I have never forgotten that, madam, and never shall ; and you would find me a pleasant person to live with, I do believe. At all events I would — madam — I would be your servant, your dog — I would fetch and carry for you like a negro slave ! " Marie turned pale, and rose. " Listen to me, my lord ; this must end. You do not know to whom you are speaking. You talk of negro slaves. Know that you are talking to one I " Scoutbush looked at her in blank astonishment. " Madam ? Excuse me ; but my own eyes — " " You are not to trust them ; I tell you fact." Scoutbush was silent. She misunderstood his silence | but went on steadily. "I tell you, my lord, what I expect you to keep secret and I know that I can trust your honor." Scoutbush bowed. 204 A PEER IN TROUBLE. " And what I should never have told you, were it no*, my only chance of curing you of this foolish passion. I am an American slave ! " " Curse them ! Who dared make you a slave?" cried Scoutbush, turning as red as a game-cock. " I was born a slave. My father was a white gentleman of good family ; my mother was a quadroon ; and, therefore, I am a slave ; a negress, a runaway slave, my lord, who, if I returned to America, should be seized, and chained, and scourged, and sold. Do you understand me ? " " What an infernal shame ! " cried Scoutbush, to whom the whole thing appeared simply as a wrong done to Marie. "Well, my lord?" "Well, madam?" " Does not this fact put the question at rest forever ? " " No, madam ! What do I know about slaves ? No one is a slave in England. No, madam ; all that it does is to make me long to cut half a dozen fellows' throats — " and Scoutbush stamped with rage. " No, madam, you are you ; and if you become my viscountess, you take my rank, I trust, and my name is yours, and my family yours ; and let me see who dare intertere ! " " But public opinion, my lord ? " said Marie, half-pleased, half-terrified, to find the shaft which she had fancied fatal fall harmless at her feet. " Public opinion ? You don't know England, madam I What 's the use of my being a peer, if I can't do what I like, and make public opinion go my way, and not I its ? Though I am no great prince, madam, but only a poor Irish viscount, it 's hard if I can't marry whom I like — in reason, that is — and expect all the world to call on her, and treat her as she deserves. Why, madam, you will have all Lon- don at your feet after a season or two, and all the more if they know your story ; or if you don't like that, or if fools did talk at first, why we 'd go and live quietly at Kilan- baggan, or at Penalva, and you 'd have all the tenants look- ing up to you as a goddess, as I do, madam. 0, madam, I would go anywhere, live anywhere, only to be with you ! " Marie was deeply affected. Making all allowances for the wilfulness of youth, she could not but see that her origin formed no bar whatever to her marrying a nobleman ; and that he honestly believed that it would form none in the opinion of his compeers, if she proved herself worthy of hia choice ; and, full of new emotions, she burst into tears. "There, now, you are melting; I knew yoi would' A PEER IN TROUBLE. 205 Madam 1 Signon 1 " aud Scoutbush advanced to take her hand. " Never less," cried she, drawing back. " Do not ; you only make me miserable ! I tell you it is impossible. 1 cannot toll you all. You must not do yourself and yours such an injustice ! Go, I tell you 1 " Scoutbush still tried to take her hand. "Go, I entreat you," cried she, at her wit's end, "or I will really ring the bell for Mrs. Mellot I " '• You need not do that, madam," said he, drawing him- self up; "I am not in the habit of being troublesome to ladies, or being turned out of drawing-rooms. I see how it is — " and his tone softened; "you despise me, and think me a vain, frivolous puppy. Well 1 I '11 do something yet that you shall not despise 1 " and he turned to go. " I do not despise you ; I think you a generous, high- hearted gentleman — nobleman in all senses." Scoutbush turned again. " But, again, impossible 1 I shall always respect you ; out we must never meet again." She held out her hand. Little Freddy caught and kissed it till he was breathless, and then rushed out, and blundered over Sabina in the next room. " No hope ? " " None." And, though he tried to squeeze his eyes to- gether very tight, the great tears would come dropping down. Sabina took him to a sofa, and sat him down while he made his little moan. " I told you that she was in love with the American." " Then why don't he come back and marry her? Hang him, I '11 go after him and make him 1 " cried Scoutbush, glad of any object on which to vent his wrath. " You can't, for nobody knows where he is. Now, do be good and patient ; you will forget all this." "I shan't 1" " You will, — not at first, but gradually, — and marry some one really more fit for you." " Ah, but if I marry her I shan't love her ; and then, you know, Mrs. Mellot, I shall go to the bad again, just as much as ever. 0, I was trying to be steady for her sake 1 " " You can be that still." " Yes, but it 's so lard, with nothing to hope for. I 'm not fit to take care of myself. I 'm fit for nothing, I belieTe. 18 20G A PEER IN TROUBLE. but to go out and be shot by those Russians ; and I '11 do it ! " " You must not ; you are not strong enough. The doc< tors would not let you go as you are." " Then I '11 get strong ; I '11 — " " You '11 go home, and be good." " An't I good now ? " " Yes, you are a good, sensible fellow, and have behaved nobly, and I honor you for it, and Claude shall come and see you every day." That evening a note came from Scoutbush. •' Deak Mrs. Mellot : Whom should I find when I went home, but Campbell ? I told him all ; and he says that you and everybody have done quite right, so 1 suppose you have ; and that I am quite right in trying to get out to the East, so I shall do it. But the doctor says 1 must rest for six weeks at least. So Campbell has persuaded me to take the yacht, which is at Southampton, and go down to Aberalv a. and then round^to Snowdoh, where 1 have a 'little slate quarry, and get some fishing. Campbell is coming with me, and I wish Claude would come too. He knows that brother-in-law of mine, Vavasojir, I think, and I shall go and~TnaEeTr'iends witlihi'm. I've^got very merciful to foolish lovers lately, and Claude can help me to face him ; tor I am a little afraid of geniuses, you know. So, there we '11 pick up my sister (she goes down by land this week), and then go on to Snowdon ; and Claude can visit his old quarters at the Royal Oak, at Bettws, where he and I had that jolly week among the painters. Do let him come, and beg La Signora not to be angry with me. That 's all I '11 ever ask of her again." " Poor fellow ! But I can't part with you, Claude." " Let him," said La Cordifiamma. " He will comfort hia lordship ; and do you come with me." " Come with you ? Where ? " " I will tell you when Claude is gone." " Claude, go and smoke in the garden. Now ? " " Come with me to Germany, Sabina." '' To Germany ? Why on earth to Germany ? " "I — I only said Germany beca.use it came first into my mind. Anywhere for rest ; anywhere to be out of that pooi man's way." A PEER IN TROUBLE. 207 " He -will not trouble you any more ; and you will not suiely tl/row up your engagement? " " Of course not ! " said she, half peevishly. "It will be over in a fortnight ; and then I must have rest. Don't you see how I want rest? " Sabina had seen it for some time past. That white cheet had been fading more and more to a wax-like paleness ; those black eyes glittered with fierce, unhealthy light ; and dark rings round them told, not merely of late hours and excitement, but of wild passion and midnight tears. Sabina had seen all, and could not but give way, as Marie went on. " I must have rest, I tell you 1 I am beginning — I con- fess all to you — to want stimulants. I am beginning to long for brandy and water — pah ! — to nerve me up to the excitement of acting, and then for morphine to make me sleep after it. The very eau de Cologne flask tempts me 1 They say that the fine ladies use it, before a ball, ibr other purposes than scent. You would not like to see me com- mence that practice, would you ? " " There is no fear, dear." " There is fear 1 You do not know the craving for exhila- ration, the capability of self-indulgence, in our wild Tropic blood. 0, Sabina, I feel at times that I could sink so low — ■ that I could be so wicked, so utterly wicked, if I once began I Take me away, dearest creature, take me away, and let me have fresh air, and fair quiet scenes, and rest — rest 1 0, save me, Sabina 1 " and she put her hands over her face, and burst into tears. " We will go, then ; — to the Rhine, shall it be ? I have not been there now for these three years, and it will be such fun running about the world by myself once more, and knowing all the while that — " and Sabina stopped ; she did not like to remind Marie of the painful contrast between them. " To the Rhine ? Yes. And I shall see the beautiful old world, the old vineyards, and castles, and hills, which he used to tell me of — taught me to read of in those sweet, sweet books of LoegfelloVs.L So-^entle, and pure, and calm- — so unlike me!" — _— -— — ^^~rgB7-wirwill see them ; and, perhaps — " Marie looked up at her, guessing her thoughts, and blushed scarlet. "You, too, think then, that — that — " she could aot finish her sentence. 208 A PEEK IN TROUBLE. Sabina stooped over her, and the two beaiitifiil mouths met. " There, darling, we need say nothing. We are both women, and can talk without words." " Then you think there is hope ? " "Hope? Do you fancy that he has gone so very for? Or that if he were, I could not hunt him out ? Have I wan- dered half round the world alone for nothing ? " "No, but hope — hope that — " " Not hope, but certainty ; if some one I know had but courage." " Courage — to do what ? " " To trust him utterly." Marie covered her face with her hands, and shuddered in every limb. " You know my story. Did I gain or lose by telling my Claude all ? " " I will I " she cried, looking up, pale but firm. " I will ! " and she looked steadfastly into the mirror over the chimney-piece, as if trying to court the reappearance of that ugly vision which haunted it, and so to nerve herself to the utmost, and face the whole truths In little more than a fortnight Sabina and Marie, with maid and courier (for Marie was rich now), were away in the old Antwerpen. And Claude was rolling down to Southampton by rail, with Campbell, Scoutbush, and last, but notleast, the faithfuHJowie, who had under hi? charge what he described to the puzzled railway guard as " goad* and cleiks, and pirns and creels, and beuks an'3 beuks, enough for a' the cods o' Neufunland." CHAPTER XIII. L'HOMME mCOMPRTS. Elsley went on, between improved health and the fear of Tom Thurnall, a good deal better for the next month. He began to look forward to Valencia's visit with equanimity, and, at last, with interest ; and was rather pleased than otherwise when, in the last week of July, a fly drove up to the gate of old Penalva Court, and he handed out therefrom Valencia and Valencia's maid. Lucia had discovered that the wind was east, and that she was afraid to go to the gate for fear of catching cold ; her real purpose being that Valencia should meet Elsley first. " She is so impulsive," thought the good little creature, always plotting about her husband, "that she will rush upon me, and never see him for the first five minutes ; and Elsley is so sensitive — how can he be otherwise in his position, poor dear ? " So she refrained herself, like Joseph, and stood at the door till Valencia was half-way down the garden-walk, having taken Elsley's somewhat shyly-ofiered arm ; and then she could refrain herself no longer, and the two women ran upon each other, and kissed, and sobbed, and talked, till Lucia was out of breath ; but Valencia was not so easily silenced. " My darling ! — and you are looking so much better than J expected ; but not quite yourself yet. That naughty baby is killing you, I am sure ! And Mr. Vavasour, too, I shall begin to call him Elsley to-morrow, if I like him as mucli as I do now. But he is looking quite thin — wearing liimself out with writing so many beautiful books, — that Wreck was perfect ! And where are the children ? — I must rush up stairs and devour them ! — and what a delicious old garden ! and dipt yews, too, so dark and romantic, and such dear old-fashioned flowers! — Mr. Vavasour must show me all over it, and over that hanging wood, too. What a duck of a place ! — And 0, my dear, I am quite out of breath 1 '' 18* Cirs) 210 l'homme incompris. And so she swept in, with her arm round Lucia's "vaist ; while Elsley stood looking after her, well enough satisfied with her reception of him, and only hoping that the stream of words would slacken after a while. "What a magnificent creature!" said he to himself. " Who could believe that the three years would make such a change ? " And he was right. The tall, lithe girl nad bloomed into full glory ; and Valencia St. Just, though not delicately beautiful, was as splendid an Irish damsel as man need look upon, with a grand masque, aquiline features, luxuriant black hair, and — though it was the fag-end of the London season — the unrivalled Irish complexion, as of the fair dame of Kilkenny, whose " Lips were like roses, her cheelss were the same, Like a dish of fresh strawberries smothered in crame." Her figure was perhaps too tall, and somewhat too stout also ; but its size was relieved by the delicacy of those hands and feet, of which Miss Valencia was most pardona- bly proud, and by that indescribable lissomeness and lazy grace which Irishwomen inherit, perhaps, with their tinge of southern blood ; and when, in half an hour, she reap- peared, with broad straw hat, and gown tucked up a la ber- gere over the striped Welsh petticoat, perhaps to show off the ankles, which only looked the finer for a pair of heavy laced boots, Elsley honestly felt it a pleasure to look at her, and a still greater pleasure to talk to her, and to be talked to by her ; while she, bent on making herself agreeable, partly from real good taste, partly from natural good nature, and partly, too, because she saw in his eyes that he admired her, chatted sentiment about all heaven and earth. For to Miss Valencia — it is sad to have to say it — admiration had been now, for three years, her daily bread. She had lived in the thickest whirl of the world, and, as most do for a while, found it a very pleasant place. She had flirted — with how many must not be told ; and perhaps with more than one with whom she had no business to flirt. Little Scoutbush had remonstrated with her on some such affair, but she had silenced him with an Irish jest, — " You're a fisherman, Freddy ; and when you can'f catch salmon, you catch trout ; and when you can't catch trout, you '11 whip on the shallow for poor little gubbahawns, and say that it is all to keep your hand inland so do I." The old ladies said that this was the reason why she had L HOMME INCOMPEIS. 211 not married; the men, however, asserted that no one dare marry her ; and one club oracle had given it as his opinion that no man in his rational senses was to be allowed to have anything to do with her, till she had been well jilted two or three times, to take the spirit out of her ; but that catas- trophe had not yet occurred, and Miss Valencia still reigned " triumphant and alone," though her aunt, old_Lady Knock- down, moved all the earth, arr3~iome dirty places, too, below the earth, to get the wild Irish girl off her hands ; " for," quoth she, " 1 feel with Valencia, indeed, just like one of those men who carry about little dogs in the Quad- rant. I always pity the poor men so, and think how happy they must be when they have sold one. It is one less chance, you know, of having it bite them horribly, and then run away, after all." There was, however, no more real harm in Valencia than there is in every child of Adam. Town frivolity had not corrupted her. She was giddy, given up to enjoyment of the present ; but there was not a touch of meanness about her ; and if she was selfish, as every one must needs be whose thoughts are of pleasure, admiration, and success, she was so unintentionally ; and she would have been shocked and pained at being told that she was anything but the most kind-hearted and generous creature on earth. Major Campbell, who was her Mentor as well as her broth- er's, had certainly told her so more than once ; at which she had pouted a good deal, and cried a little, and promised to amend ; then packed up a heap of cast-off things to send to Lucia — half of it much too fine to be of any use to the quiet little woman ; and, lastly, gone out and bought fresh finery for herself, and forgot all her good resolutions. Where- by it befell that she was tolerably deep in debt at the end of every season, and had to torment and kiss Scoutbush into paying her bills ; which he did, like a good brother, and often before he had paid his own. But howsoever full Valencia's head may have been of fine garments and London flirtations, she had too much tact and good feeling to talk that evening of a world of which even Elsley knew more than her sister. For poor Lucia had been but eighteen at the time of her escapade, and had not been presented twelve months; so that she was as "inexpert enced " as any one can be, who has only a husband, three chil dren, and a household to manage on less than three hundred a year. Therefore Valencia talked only of things which would interest Elsley ; asked him to read his last new poem, - 212 l'homme incompris. which, 1 need not say, he did ; told him how she devoiued everything lie wrote ; planned walks with him in the coun- try ; seemed to consult his pleasure in every way. " To-morrow morning 1 shall sit vsdth you and the chil dren, I -icia ; of course I must not interrupt Mr. Vavasour ; but really in the afternoon I must ask him to spare a couple of hours from the Muses." Vavasour was delighted to do anything — " Where would she walk? " " Where ? Of course to see the beautiful schoolmistress who saved the man from drowning ; and then to see the chasm across which he was swept. I shall understand your poem so much better, you know, if I can but realize the people and the place. And you must take me to sec Captain Willis, too, and even the lieutenant, — if he does not smell too much of brandy. I will be so gracious and civil, quite the lady of the castle." "You will make quite a royal progress," said Lucia, looking at her with sisterly admiration. " Yes, I intend to usurp as many of Scoutbush's honors as I can till he comes. I must lay down the sceptre in a fortnight, you know, so I shall make as much use of it as I can meanwhile." And so on, and so on ; meaning all the while to put Els- ley quite at his ease, and let him understand that bygones were bygones, and that with her any reconciliation at all was meant to be a complete one ; which was wise and right enough. But Valencia had not counted on the excitable and vain nature with which she was dealing ; and Lucia, wlio had her own fears from the first evening, was the last person in the world to tell her of it ; first from pride in her- self, and then from pride in her husband. For even if a woman has made a foolish match, it is hard to expect her to confess as much ; and, after all, a husband is a husband, and, let his faults be what they might, he was still her Els- ley ; her idol once, and perhaps (so she hoped) her idol agaii. hereafter ; and, if not, still he was her husband, and that was enough. "By which you mean, sir, that she considered herself bound to endure everything and anj'thing from him, simply because she had been mariied to him in church ? " Yes, and a great deal more. Not merely being married in church, but what l)eing married in church means, and what every woman, who is a woman, understands, and livos up to without flinching, though she die a martyr for it, or a L'HOMME INCOMPEIS. 213 confessor ; a far liigher saint, if the truth was known, as il will be some day, than all the holy virgins who ever fasted and prayed in a convent since the days when Macarius first turned fakeer. For, to a true woman, the mere fact of a) man's being her husband, put it on the lowest ground that you choose, is utterly sacred, divine, all-powerful ; in the' Eiight of which she can conquer self in a way which is an i every-day miracle ; and the man who does not feel about! the mere fact of a woman's having given herself utterly to' him, just what she herself feels about it, ought to be de- 1 spised by all his fellows, were it not that, in that case, it / would be necessary to despise more human beings than is i safe for the soul of any man. y That fortnight was the sunniest which Elsley had passed since he made secret love to Lucia in Eaton Square. Ro- mantic walks, the company of a beautiful woman as ready to listen as she was to talk, free license to pour out all his fancies, sure of admiration, if not of flattery, and pardona- bly satisfied vanity, — all these are comfortable things for most men, who have nothing better to comfort them. But, on the whole, this feast did not make Elsley a better or wiser man at home. Why should it ? Is a boy's digestion improved by turning him loose into a confectioner's shop ? And thus the contrast between what he chose to call Valencia's sympathy and Lucia's want of sympathy, made him, unfortunately, all the more cross to her when they were alone ; and who could blame the poor little woman for saying one night, angrily enough : " Ah, yes ! Valencia ! Valencia is imaginative ; Valencia understands you ; Valencia sympathizes ; Valencia thinks . . . Valencia has no children to wash and dress, no ac- counts to keep, no linen to mend ; Valencia's back does not ache all day long, so that she would be glad enough to lie on the sofa from morning till night, if she was not forced to work whether she can work or not. No, no ; don't kiss me, for kisses will not make up for injustice, Elsley. 1 only trust that you will not tempt me to hate my own sister. No, don't talk to me now ; let me sleep, if I can sleep ; and go ond walk and talk sentiment with Valencia to-morrow, and leave the poor little brood hen to sit on her nest, and be despised." And, refusing all Elsley's entreaties for pardon, she sulked herself to sleep. Who can blame her? If there is one thing more provok- ing than another to a woman, it is to see her husband Strass-enerel, Haus-teufel, an angel of courtesy to every 214 L'HOMMB INCOMPBIS. woman but herself; to see him in society all orailes ana good stories, the most amiable and self-restraining of men — perhaps to be complimented on his agreeableness ; and to know all the while that he is penning up all the accumu lated ill-temper of the day, to let it out on her when they get home ; perhaps in the very carriage, as soon as it leaves the door. Hypocrites that you are, some of you gentlemen 1 Why cannot the act against cruelty to women, corporal punishment included, be brought to bear on such as you ? And yet, after all, you are not most to blame in the matter ; Eve herself tempts you, as at the beginning ; for who does not know that the man is a thousand times vainer than the woman ? He does but follow the analogy of all nature. Look at the red Indian, in that blissful state of nature from which (so philosophers inform those who choose to believe them) we all sprung. Which is the boaster, the strutter, the bedizener of his sinful carcass with feathers and beads, fox-tails and bears' claws — the brave, or his poor little squaw ? An Australian settler's wife bestows on some poor slaving gin a cast-off French bonnet ; before she has gone a hundred yards, her husband snatches it off, puts it on his own mop, quiets her for its loss with a tap of the waddic, and struts on in glory. Why not ? Has he not the analogy of all nature on his side ? Have not the male birds, and the male moths, the fine feathers, while the females go soberly about in drab and brown ? Does the lioness, or the lion, rejoice in the gran- deur of a mane ; the hind, or the stag, in antlered pride ? How know we but that, in some more perfect and natural state of society, the women vdll dress like so many Quaker esses ; while the frippery shops will become the haunts of men alone, and " browches, pearls, and owches " be conse- crate to the nobler sex ? There are signs already, in the dress of our young gentlemen, of such a return to the law of nature from the present absurd state of things, in which the human pea-hens carry about the gaudy trains which arfi the peacocks' right. For there is a secret feeling in woman's heart that she is in iier wrong place ; that it is she who ought to worship the man, and not the man her ; and when she becomes properly conscious of her destiny, has not he a right to be conscious of his ? If the gray hens will stand round in the mire cluck- ing humble admiration, who can blame the old blackcock for dancing and drumming on the top of a moss hag, with lutspread wings and flirting tail, glorious and self-glorify- l'homme incompeis. 21.'i ing ? He is a splendid fellow, and he was made splendid foJ some purpose, surely ! Why did nature give him his steel blue coat, and his crimson crest, but for the very same pur- pose that she gave Mr. A*** his intellect — to be admired by the other sex ? And if young damsels, overflowing with sentiment and Ruskinism, will crowd round him, ask hia opinion of this book and that picture, treasure his bon mots, beg for his autograph, looking all the while the praise which they do not speak (though they speak a good deal of it), and when they go home write letters to him on mat- ters about which in old times girls used to ask only their mothers ; who can blame him if he finds the little wife at home a very uninteresting body, whose head is so full of petty cares and gossip, that he and all his talents are quite unappreciated ? Lesfemmes incomprises of Prance used to (perhaps do now) form a class of married ladies whose sor- rows were especially dear to the novelist, male or female ; but what are their woes, compared to those of l'homme incomprisf What higher vocation for a young maiden than to comfort the martyr during his agonies ? And, most of all, where the sufferer is not merely a genius, but a saint ; persecuted, perhaps, abroad by vulgar tradesmen and Philistine bishops, and snubbed at home by a stupid wife, who is quite unable to appreciate his magnificent projects for regenerating all heaven and earth ; and only, humdrum, practical creature that she is, tries to do justly, and love mercy, and walk humbly with her God ? Fly to his help, all pious maidens, and pour into the wounded heart of the holy man the healing balm of self-conceit ; cover his table with confidential letters, choose him as your father-confessor, and lock yourself up alone with him for an hour or two every week, while the wife is mending his shirts up stairs. True, you may break the stupid wife's heart by year-long misery, as she slaves on, bearing the burden and heat of the day, of which you never dream ; keeping the wretched man, by her unassuming good exam- ple, from making a fool of himself three times a week ; and sowing the seed of which you steal the fruit. What mat- ter ? If your immortal soul requires it, what matter what it costs her carnal heart? She will suffer in silence; at least, she will not tell you. You think she does net under stand you. Well ; and she thinks, in return, that you do not understand her, and her married joys and sorrows, and her five children, and her butcher's bills, and her long iigony of fear for her husband, of whom she is ten times 216 l'homme incompeis. more prond inan you oould be ; for whom she has slaved foi years ; whose defects she has tried to cure, while she cured lier own ; for whom she would die to-morrow, did he fall into disgrace, when you had flounced off to find some new idol ; — and so she will not tell you : and what the ear heareth not, that the heart grieveth not. — Go on and prosper! You may, too, ruin the man's spiritual state by vanity ; you may pamper his discontent with the place where God has put him, till he ends by flying off to " some purer communion," and taking you with him. Never mind. He is a most delightful person, and his intercourse is so improving I Why were sweet things made, but to be eaten ? Go on and prosper 1 Ah ! young ladies, if some people had (as it is perhaps well for them that they have not) the ordering of this same British nation, they would certainly follow your example, and try to restore various ancient institutions. And first •among them would be that very ancient institution of the cucking-stool ; to be employed, however, not as of old, against married scolds (for whom those who have been behind the scenes have all respect and sympathy), but against unmarried prophetesses, who, under whatsoever high pretence of art or religion, flirt with their neighbors' husbands, be they parson or poet. Not, be it understood, that Valencia had the least sus- picion that Blsley considered himself " incompris." If he had hinted the notion to her, she would have resented it as an insult to the St. Justs in general, and to her sister in particular, and would have said something to him in her off-hand way, the like whereof he had seldom heard, even from adverse reviewers. Elsley himself soon divined enough of her character to see that he must keep his sorrows to himself, if he wished for Valencia's good opinion; and soon — so easily does a vain man lend himself to meanness — he found himself Iry- ing to please Valencia, by praising to her the very woman with whom he was discontented. He felt shocked and ashamed when first his own baseness flashed across him ; but. the bait was too pleasant to be left easily ; and, after i ' he was trying to say to his guest what he knew his guest would like ; and what was that but following those very rules of good society, for breaking which Lucia was always calling him gauche and morose ? So he actually quieted his own conscience by the fancy that he was bound to be civil, and to keep up appearances, " even for Lucia's l'homme incompeis. 217 sake," said the self-deceiver to himself. And thus the mischief was done ; and the breach between Lucia and her husband, which had been somewhat bridged over during the last month or two, opened more wide than ever, with- out a suspicion on Valencia's part that she was doing all she could to break her sister's heart. She, meanwhile, had plenty of reasons which justified hor new intimacy to herself. How could she better please fi'-icia ? How better show that bygones were to be by- gones, and that Elsley was henceforth to be considered as one of the family, than by being as intimate as possible with him ? What matter how intimate ? For, after all, he was only a brother, and she his sister. She had law on her side in that last argument, as well as love of amusement. Whether she had either common sense or Scripture, is a very different question. Poor Lucia, too, tried to make the best of the matter ; and to take the new intimacy as Valencia would have had her take it, in the light of a compliment to herself; and so, in her pride, she said to Valencia, and told her that she should love her forever for her kindness to Elsley, while her heart was ready to burst. But ere the fortnight was over the Nemesis had como, and Lucia, woman as she was, could not repress a thrill of malicious joy, even though Elsley became more intolerable than ever at the change. What was the Nemesis, then ? Simply that this naughty Miss St. Just began to smile i upon Frank Headley, the curate, even as she had smiled upon Elsley Vavasour. It was very naughty ; but she had her excuses. She had found Elsley out ; and it was well for both of them that she had done so. Already, upon the strength of their supn posed relationship, she had allowed him to talk a great deal more nonsense to her, — harmless, perhaps, but nonsense still, — than she would have listened to from any other man ; and it was well for both of them that Elsley was a man without self-control, who began to show the weak side of his character freely enough, as soon as he became at his ease with his companion, and excited by conversation. Valencia quickly saw that he was vain as a peacock, and weak enough to be led by her in any and every direction, when she chose to work on his vanity. And she despised Dim accordingly, and suspected, too, that her sister could not be very happy with such a man 19 218 L'HOMME IXC0MPRI3. None are more quick than sisters-in-law to see faints in the brother-in-law, when once they have begun to look for them ; and Valencia soon remarked that Elsley showed Lucia no peiits soins, while he was ready enough to show them to her ; that he took no real trouble about his children, or about anything else ; and twenty more faults, which she might have perceived in the first two days of her visit, if she had not been in such a hurry to amuse herself. But she was too delicate to ask Lucia the truth, and contented herself with watching all parties closely, and ia amusing herself meanwhile — for amusement she must have — iu " Breaking i, country heart For pastime, ere she went to town." She had met Frank several times about the parish and in the schools, and had been struck at once with hia grace and high-breeding, and with that air of melancholy which ia always interesting in a true woman's eyes. She had seen, too, that Elsley tried to avoid him, naturally enough not wishing an intrusion on their pleasant tetes-k-tete. Whereon, half to spite Elsley, and half to show her own right to chat with whom she chose, she made Lucia ask Frank to tea ; and next contrived to go to the school when he was teach- ing there, and to make Elsley ask him to walk with them ; and all the more, because she had discovered that Elsley had discontinued his walks with Frank, as soon as she had appeared at Penalva. Lucia was not sorry to countenance her in her naughti- ness ; it was a comfort to her to have a fourth person in the room at times, and thus to compel Elsley and Valencia to think of something beside each other ; and when she saw her sister gradually transferring her favors from the married to the unmarried victim, she would have been more than woman if she had not rejoiced thereat. Only, she began Boon to be afraid for Fi-ank, and at last told Valencia so. " Do take care that you do not break his heart I " "My dear I You forget that I sit under Mr. O'Blarc' away, and am to him as a heathen and a publican. Fiesb from St. Neporauc's as he is, he would as soon think of falling in love with an ' Oirish Prodestant,' as with a malig- nant and a turbaned Turk. Besides, my dear, if the mis chief is going to be done, it's done already." " I dare say it is, you naughty beautiful thing 1 If any Dody is goose enough to fall in love with you, he '11 be also l'homme incompris. 219 gouse enough, I don't doubt, to do so at first sight. There, don't look perpetually in that glass ; but take care ! " "What use? If it is going to happen at all, I say, it has happened already ; so I shall just please myself, as asual." And it had happened ; and poor Frank had been, ever since the first day he saw Valencia, over head and ears in love. His time had come, and there was no escaping his late. B>ut to escape he tried. Convinced, with many good men of all ages and creeds, that a celibate life was the fittest one for a clergyman, he had fled from St. Neporauc's into the wilderness to avoid temptation, and beheld at his cell-door a fairer fiend than ever came to St. Dunstan. A fairer fiend, no doubt ; for St. Dunstan's imagination created his temptress for him, but Valencia was a reality ; and fact and nature may be safely backed to produce something more charming than any monk's brain can do. One questions whether St. Dunstan's apparition was not something as coarse as his own mind, clever though that mind was. At least, he would never have had the heart to apply the hot tongs to such a nose as Valencia's, but at most have bowed her out pityingly, as Frank tried to bow out Valencia from the sacred place of his heart, but failed. Hard he tried, and humbly too. He had no proud con- tempt for married parsons. He was ready enough to con- fess that he, too, might be weak in that respect, as in a hundred others. He conceived that he had no reason, from his own inner life, to believe himself worthy of any higher vocation — proving his own real nobleness of soul by that very humility. He had rather not marry. He might do so some day ; but he would sacrifice much to avoid the neces- sity. If he was weak, he would use what strength he had to the uttermost ere he yielded. And all the more, because ho felt, and reasonably enough, that Valencia was the last woman in the world to make a parson's wife. He had his ideal of what such a wife should be, if she were to be allowed to exist at all — the same ideal which Mr. Paget has drawn in his charming little book (would that all parsons' wives would read and perpend !), the " Owlet of Owlstone Edge." But Valencia wmild surely not make a Beatrice. Beautiful Bhe was, glorious, lovable, but not the helpmeet whom he needed. And he fought against the new dream like a brave man. ' i fasted, he wept, he prayed ; but his prayers seemed i to be heard. Valencia seemed to have enthroneci 220 l'homme incompris. herself, a true Venus victrix, in the centre of his heart, and would not be dispossessed. He tried to avoid seeing her ; out even for that he had not strength ; he went again and again whon asked, only to come home more miserable each time, as fierce against himself and his own weakness as if he liiad given way to wine or to oaths. In vain, too, he repro- Benter to himself the ridiculous hopelessness of his passion ; the impossibility of the London beauty ever stooping to marry the poor country curate. Fancies would come in, how such things, strange as they might seem, had happened already, might happen again. It was a class of marriages for which he had always felt a strong dislike, even suspicion and contempt ; and though he was far more iitted, in family as well as personal excellence, for such a match, than three out of four who make them, yet he shrunk with disgust fron. the notion of being himself classed at last among the match- making parsons. Whether there was " carnal pride " or not in that last thought, his soul so loathed it, that he would gladly have thrown up his cure at Aberalva ; and would have done so actually, but for one word which Tom Thur- nall had spoken to him, and that was — cholera. That the cholera might come — that it probably would come, in the course of the next two months, was news to ihim which was enough to keep him at his post, let what would be the consequence. And gradually he began to Bee a way out of his difficulty, and a very_@imple one ; and that was, to die. ~- " That is the solution, after all," said he. " J am no t strong enough_for God's work jJbytJ will not shnnK from 4*- if I can help. ~if I cannot master it, let it MUme ; so at least I may have peace. I have failed utterly here ; all my grand plans have crumbled to ashes between my fingers. I find myself a cumherer of the ground, where I fancied that I was going forth like a very Michael — fool that I was 1 — leader of the armies of heaven. And now, in the one re- maining point on which I thought myself strong, I find myself weakest of all. Useless and helpless ! I have one chance left, one chance to show these poor souls that I really love them, really wish their good — selfish that \ am ! What matter whether I do show it or not ? What need to justify myself to them ? Self, self, creeping in everywhere ! I shall begin next, I suppose, longing for the cholera to come, that I may show oflF myself in it, and make spiritual capital out of their dying agonies ! Ah me ! that it were all ov(!r 1 That this cholera, if it is to come, would wip? L'HOMME INC0MPEI3 221 out of tliiij head what I verily believe nothing bul death will do ! " And therewith Frank laid his head on the table, and cried till he could cry no more. It was not over manly ; but he was weakened with over- work and sorrow ; and, on the whole, it was, perhaps, the best thing he could do ; for he fell asleep there, with tiis head on the table, and did not wake till the dawn blazed through his open window. 19* CHAPTER XIV. THE DOCTOR AT BAT. TlD you ever, in a feverish dream, climb a mountain which grew higher and higher as you climbed ; and scram- We through passages which changed perpetually before you, and up and down break-neck stairs which broke off perpetually behind you ? Did you ever spend the whole night, foot in stirrup, mounting that phantom hunter which never gets mounted, or if he does, turns into a pen between your knees ; or in going to fish that phantom stream which never gets fished ? Did you ever, late for that mysterious dinner-party in some enchanted castle, wander disconso- lately, in unaccountable rags and dirt, in search of that phantom carpet-bag wliich never gets found ? Did you ever "realize" to yourself the sieve of the Danaides, the stone of Sisyphus, the wheel of Ixion ; the pleasure of shearing that domestic animal who (according to the expe- rience of a very ancient observer of nature) produces more cry than wool ; the perambulation of that Irishman's model bog, where you slip two steps backward for one forward, and must, therefore, in order to progress at all, turn your face homeward, and progress as a pig does into a steamer, by going the opposite way ? Were you ever condemned to spin ropes of sand to all eternity, like Tregeagle the wrecker ; or to extract the cube roots of a million or two of hopeless surds, like the mad mathematician ; or, last, and worst of all, to work the Nuisances Removal Act ? Then you can enter, as a man and a brother, into the sor- rows of Tom Thurnall, in the months of June and July, 1854. He had made up his mind, for certain good reasons of his own, that the cholera ought to visit Aberalva in the course of the summer; and, of course, tried his best to persuade people to get ready for their ugly visitor, — but in vain, The cholera come there ? Why, it never had come yet : which signified, when he inquired a little more closely, that (222) THE DOCTOR AT BAT. 223 there had been only one or two doubtful cases in 183T, and five 0'- six in 1849. In vain he answered, " Very well ; and is not that a pioof that the causes of cholera are increasing herer If you had one case the first time, and five times as many the next, by the same rule you will have five times as many more if it comes this summer." " Nonsense 1 Aberalva was the healthiest town on the coast." " Well, but," would Tom say, " in the census before last you had a population of thirteen hundred, in one hundred and twolve houses, and that was close-packing enough, in all conscience ; and in the last census I find you had a pop- ulation Lf over fourteen hundred, which must have increased since ; a ad there are eight or nine old houses in the town pulled diiwn, or turned into stores; so you are more closelj packed than ever. And mind, it may seem no very great difierenct, but it is the last drop fills the cup." What Lad that to do with cholera ? And more than one gave him to understand that he must be either a very silly or a very impertinent person, to go poking into how many houses there were in the town, and how many people lived in each. Tardrew, the steward, indeed, said openly, that Mr. Thurnall was making disturbance enough in people's property up at Pentremochyn, without bothering himself with Aberalva too. lie had no opinion of people who. had a finger in everybody's pie. Whom Tom tried to soothe with honey jd words, knowing him to be of the original Brit- ish buU-dof.; breed, which, once stroked against the hair, shows his toeth at you forever afterwards. But stanoh was Tardrew, unfortunately on the wrong side ; and, backed by the collective ignorance, pride, lazi- ness, and superstition, of Aberalva, showed to his new assailant that terrible front of stupidity, against which, saya Schiller, " the gods themselves fight in vain." " Docs he think wo was all fools afore he came here ? " That was the rallying cry of the conservative party, wur-j shippers of Beelzebub, god of flies, and of that (so sayj Syrian scholars) from which flies are bred. And, indeed,, there wore excuses for them, on the Yankee ground that* " there 's a deal of human natur' in man." It is hard tol human nature to make all the humiliating confessions which] must precede sanitary repentance ; to say, " I have been al very nasty, dirty fellow. I have lived contented in evil B!2iells, till I care for them no more than my pig does. I have refused to understand Nature's broadest hints, that 224 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. anything which is so disagreaable is not meant to be lofl about. I have probably been more or less the cause of half my own illnesses, and of three-fourths of the illness of my children ; for aught I know, it is very much my fault that my own baby has died of scarlatina, and two or three of my tenants of typhus. No, hang it! that's too much to make any man confess to ! I '11 prove my innocence by not reforming I " So sanitary reform is thrust out of sight, eimply because its necessity is too humiliating to the pride c' all, too frightful to the consciences of many. Tom went to Trebooze. " Mr. Trebooze, you are a man of position in the county, and own some houses in Aberalva. Don't you think yon could use your influence in this matter ? " "Own some houses? yes;" — and Mr. Trebooze con- signed the said cottages to a variety of unmentionable places ; " cost me more in rates than they bring in in rent, even if I get the rent paid. I should like to get a six-pounder, and blow the whole lot into the sea. Cholera coming, eh ? D' ye think it will be there before Michaelmas ? " "I do." " Pity I can't clear 'em out before Michaelmas. Else I 'd have ejected the lot, and pulled the houses down." " I think something should be done meanwhile, though, towards cleansing them." " * * * Let 'em cleanse themselves ! Soap 's cheap enough with your * * * free trade, an't it? No, sir That sort of talk will do well enough for my Lord Michamp- stead, sir, the old money-lending Jew 1 * * * but gentle- men, sir, gentlemen, that are half ruined with free trade, and your Whig policy, sir ; you must give 'em back their rights before they can afford to throw away their money on cottages. Cottages, indeed ! * * * upstart of a cotton- Bpinner, coming down here, buying the land over our heads, and pretends to show us how to manage our estates ; old families that have been in the county this four hundred years, with the finest peasantry in the world ready to die for them, sir, till these new revolutionary doctrines came in — pride and purse-proud conceit, just to show off hia money I What do they want with better cottages than tneir fathers had ? Only put notions into their heads, raise em above their station ; more they have, more they '11 want. * * * BIT, make chartists of 'em all before he 'a done! I'll tell you what, sir," — and Mr. Trebooze at' tempted a dignified and dogmatic tone, — "I never told ii THE DOCTOR AT BAY. 225 you before, because you were my very good friend, sir ; but my opinion is, sir, that by what you 're doing up at Poiitremochyn, you 're just spreading chartism — chartism, sir ! Of course I know nothing. Of course I 'm nobody^ in these days ; but that 's my opinion, sir, and you 've got it I " By which motion Tom took little. Miglity is envy, always, and mighty ignorance ; but you become aware of their truly Titanic grandeur only when you attempt to touch their owner's pocket. Tom tried old Healc ; but took as little in that quarter. Heale had heard of sanitaiy reform, of course ; but he knew nothing about it, and gave a general assent to Tom's doctrines, for fear of exposing his own ignorance : acting on them was a very different matter. It is always hard for an old medical man to confess that anything has been discov- ered since the days of his youth ; and, beside, there were other reasons behind, which Heale tried to avoid giving, and therefore fenced off, and fenced off, till, pressed hard by Tom, wrath came forth, and truth with it. " And what be you thinking of, sir, to expect me to offend all my best patients ? and not one of 'em but rents some two cottages, some a dozen. And what '11 they say to me if I go a routing and rookling in their drains, like an old sow by the wayside, beside putting 'em to all manner of expense ? And all on the chance of this cholera coming, which I have no faith in, nor in this new-fangled sanitary reform neither, which is all a dodge for a lot of young gov- ernment puppies to fill their, pockets, and rule and ride ovei us ; and my opinion always was with the Bible, that 't is jidgment, sir, a jidgment of God, and we can't escape hia holy will, and that's the plain truth of it." 'Tom made no answer to that latter argument. He had heard that "'Tis jidgment" from every mouth during the last few days, and had mortally offended the Brianite preacher that very morning, by answering his "'Tis jidg- ment" with, " But, my good sir I the Bible, I thought, says that Aaron stayed the plague among the Israelites, and David the one at Jerusalem." " Sir, those was miracles, sir I aod they was under the law, sir, and we 'm under the gospel, you '11 be pleased to remember." " Humph I "said Tom: "then, by your showing, they were betteu. off under the law than we are now, if they could have 226 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. their plagues stopped by miracles ; and we cannot have ours stopped at all." " Sir, be you an infidel ? " To which there was no answer to be made. In this case, Tom answered Heale with — '' But, my dear sir, if you don't like (as is reasonable enough) to take the responsibility on yourself, why not go to the Board of Guardians, and get them to put the act in force ? " " Boord, sir! — and do you know so little of boords as that? Why, there an't one of them but owns cottages themselves, and it 's as much as my place is. worth — " " Your place as medical oflScer is just worth nothing, as you know. You '11 have been out of pocket by it seven oi eight pounds this year, even if no cholera comes." Tom knew the whole state of the case ; but he liked tor- menting Heale now and then. " Well, sir, but if I get turned out next year, in steps that Drew, over at Carcarrow Chnrchtown, into my district, and into the best of my practice, too. I wonder what sort of a poor law district you were medical officer of, if you don't know yet that that's why we take to the poor." " My dear sir, 1 know it, and a good deal more beside." " Then why go bothering me this way ? " "Why," said Tom, "it's pleasant to have old notions confirmed as often as possible — ' Life is a jest, and all things show it ; I thought so once, but now I know it.' What an ass that fellow must have been who had that put on his tombstone, not to have found it out many a year before he died I " He went next to Headley, the curate, and took little by that move ; though more than by any other. For Frank already believed his doctrines, as an educated London parson of course would ; was shocked to hear that they were likely to become fact so soon and so fearfully oflFered to do all he could ; but confessed that he could dc nothing. " I have been hinting to them, ever since I came, improve- ments in cleanliness, in ventilation, and so forth ; but I have been utterly unheeded ; and bully me as you will, doctor, about my cramming doctrines down their throats, and roar mg like a Pope's bull, I assure you that, on sanitary reform THE DOCTOK AT BAT. 227 my roaring was as of a sucking dove, and ought to have prevailed, if soft persuasion can." " You were a dove wliere you ought to have been a bull, and a bull where you ought to be a dove. But roar now, if ever you roared, in the pulpit and out. Why not preach to them on it next Sunday ? " " Well, I 'd give a lecture gladly, if I could get any ono to come and hear it ; but that you could do better than me."' ' I '11 lecture them myself, and show them bogies, if my quarter-inch will do its work. If they want seeing to believe, see they shall ; I have half a dozen specimens of water alreadj' which will astonish them. Let me lecture ; you must preach." " You must know that there is a feeling — you would call it a prejudice — against introducing such purely secular sub- jects into the pulpit." Tom gave a long whistle. - " Pardon me, Mr. Headley ; you are a man of sense ; and I can speak to you as one human being to another, which I have seldom been able to do with your respected cloth." " Say on ; I shall not be frightened." " Well ; don't you put up the ten commandments in your church ? " "Yes." " And don't one of them run, ' Thou shalt not kill ' ? " "Well." "And is not murder a moral offence — what you call a sin ? " " Sans doute." " If you saw your parishioners in the habit of cutting each other's throats, or their own, shouldn't you think that a matter spiritual enough to be a fit subject for a little of the drum ecclesiastic ? " "Well." " Well ? Ill ! There are your parishioners about to com- mit wholesale murder and suicide, and is that a secular question ? If they don't know the fact, is not that all the more reason for your telling them of it ? You pound away, as I warned you once, at the sins of which they are just as well aware as you ; why on earth do you hold your tonguo about the sins of which they are not aware ? You tell us every Sunday that we do Heaven only knows how many more wrong things than we dream of. Tell it us again now Don't strain at gnats like want of faith and resignation, and swallow such a camel as twenty or thirty deaths. It 'e na 228 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. concern of mine ; I 've seen plenty of people murdered, and may again ; I am accustomed to it; but if it 's not jour concern, what on earth you are here for is more than 1 can tell." "You are right, you are right; but how to put it on religious grounds — " Tom whistled again. " If your doctrines cannot be made to fit such plain mat ters as twenty deaths, tant pis pour eux. If they have nothing to say on such scientific facts, why, the facts must take care of themselves, and the doctrines may, for aught 1 care, go and — But I won't be really rude. Only think over the matter : if you are God's minister, you ought to have something to say about God's view of a fact which certainly involves the lives of his creatures, not by twos and threes, but by tens of thousands." So Frank went home, and thought it through ; and went once and again to Thurnall, and condescended to ask his opinion of what he had said, and whether he said it ill or well. What Thurnall answered was — " Whether that 's sound Church doctrine is your business ; but, if it be, I '11 say, with the man there in the Acts — what was his name ? — ' Almost thou persuadest me to be a Christian.' " " Would God that you were one ! for you would make a right good one." " Humph ! at least you see what you can do, if you 'II only face fact as it stands, and talk about the realities of life. I '11 puff your sermon beforehand, I assure you, and bring all I can to hear it." So Frank preached a noble sermon, most rational, and most spiritual withal ; but he, too, like his tutor, took little by his motion. All the present fruit upon which he had to congratulate himself was, that the Brianite preacher denounced him in chapel next Sunday as a German Rationalist, who impiously pretended to explain away the Lord's visitation into a car- nal matter of drains, and pipes, and gases, and such like ; and that his rival, of another denomination, who was a fanatic on the teetotal question, denounced him as bitterlj for supporting the cause of drunkenness, by attributing cholera to want of cleanliness, while all rational people knew that its true source was intemperance. Poor Frank 1 he bad preached against drunkenness many a time and oft ; but because he would not add a Mohammedan eleventh com- THE DOCTOR AT BAY. 22S (nandinf' nt to those ten which men already find diflSculty enough in keeping, he was set upon at once by a fanatic whose game it was — as it is that of too many — to snub sanitary reform, and hinder the spread of plain scientific truth, for the sake of pushing their own nostrum for all human ills. In despair, Tom went off to Elsley Vavasour. Would he help ? Would he join, as one of two householders, in mak- ing a representation to the proper authorities ? Elsley had never mixed in local matters ; and, if he had, he knew nothing of how to manage men, or to read an Act of Parliament ; so, angry as Tom was inclined to be with him, he found it useless to quarrel with a man so utterly unpractical, who would, probably, had he been stirred into! exertion, have done more harm than good. " Only come with me, and satisfy yourself as to the exist- ence of one of these nuisances, and then you will - have grounds on which to go," said Tom, who had still hopes of making a cat's-paw of Elsley, and, by his power over him, pulling the strings from behind. Sorely against his will, Elsley went, saw, and smelt ; came home again ; was very unwell ; and was visited nightly for a week after by that most disgusting of all phantoms, sani- tary nightmare, which some who have worked in the foul places of the earth, know but too well. Evidently his health could not stand it. There was no work to be got out of him in that direction. "Would he write, then, and represent matters to Lord Scoutbush ? " How could he ? He did not know the man ; not a line had ever been exchanged between them. Their relations were so very peculiar. It would seem sheer impertinence on his part to interfere with the management of Lord Scout- bush's property. Really there was a great deal to be said Tom felt, for poor Elsley's dislike of meddhng in that quarter. " Would Mrs. Vavasour write, then ? " " For Heaven's sake do not mention it to her 1 She would be so terrified about the children ; she is worn out with anx- iety already," and so forth. Tom went back to Frank Headley. " You see a good deal of Miss St. Just ? " " I ? — No ! — why ? what ? " said poor Frank, blushing " Only that you must make her write to her brother about this cholera." 20 230 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. " My dear fellow, it is such a subject for a lady to n eddle with." " It has no scruple in meddling with ladies ; so ladiea ought to have none in meddling with it. You must do it as delicately as you will ; but done it must be ; it is our only chance. Tell her of Tardrew's obstinacy, or Scout-^ bush will go by his opinion ; and tell her to keep the secret from her sister." Frank did it, and well. Valencia was horror-struck, and wrote. Scoutbush was away at sea, nobody knew where ; and a full fortnight elapsed before an answer came. " My dear, you are quite mistaken if you think I can do anything. Nine-tenths of the houses in Alberalva are not in my hands ; but copyholds and long leases, over which I have no power. If the people vsdll complain to me of any given nuisance, I '11 right it if I can ; and, if the doctor wants money, and sees any way of laying it out well, he shall have what he wants, though I am very high in Queer- street just now, ma'am, having paid your bills before I left town, like a good brother ; but I tell you again, I have no more power than you have, except over a few cottages ; and Tardrew assured me, three weeks ago, that they were as comfortable as they ever had been." I So Tardrew had forestalled Thurnall in writing to the viscount. Well, there was one more chance to be tried. Tom gave his lecture in the school-room. He showed them magnified abominations enough to frighten all the children into fits, and dilated on horrors enough to spoil all appetites ; he proved to them that, though they had the finest water in the world all over the town, they had contrived to poison almost every drop of it ; he waxed elo- quent, witty, sarcastic ; and the net result was a general grumble. "How did he get hold of all the specimens, as he calls them ? What business has he poking his nose down peo- ple's wells and water-butts ? " But an unexpected ally arose at this juncture, in the coast-guard lieutenant, who, being valiant after his even- ing's brandy and water, rose and declared, " that Doctor Thurnall was a very clever man ; that, by what he 'd seen himself in the West Indies, it was all as true as gospel ; that the parish might have the cholera if it liked/' — and here a THE DOCTOR AT BAT. 231 few expletives occurred, — "but that he'd see that the coast-guard houses were put to rights at once ; for he would not have the lives of her majesty's servants endangered by such dirty tricks, not fit for heathen savages," &c. &c. Tom struck while the iron was hot. He saw that tho great man's speech had produced an impression. "Would he" (so he asked the lieutenant, privately)^ " get some one to join him, and present a few of theso nuisances ? " He would do anything in his contempt for "a lot of long- shore merchant-skippers and herringers, who went about calling themselves captains, and fancy themselves, sir, as good as if they wore the Queen's uniform ! " " Well, then, can't we find another householder — some cantankerous dog who don't mind a row ? " Yes, the cantankerous dog was found, in the person of Mr. John Penruddock, coal-merchant, who had quarrelled with Tardrew, because Tardrew, he said, gave short weight - — which he very probably did — and had quarrelled also with Thomas Beer, senior, ship-builder, about right of pas- sage through a back-yard. Mr. Penruddock suddenly discovered that Mr. Beer kept up a dirt-heap in the said back-yard, and with virtuous in- dignation vowed " he 'd sarve the old beggar out at last." So far so good. The weapons of reason and righteous- ness having failed, Tom felt at liberty to borrow the devil's tools. Now to pack a vestiy, and to nominate a local com- mittee. The vestry was packed ; the committee nominated ; of course half of them refused to act — they " didn't want to go quarrelling with their neighbors." Toni explained to them cunningly and delicately that they would have nothing to do ; that one or two (he did not say that he was the one, and the two also) would do all the wDrk, and bear all the odium ; whereon the malcontents subsided, considering it likely that, after all, nothing would be done. Some may fancy that matters were now getting somewhat settled. Those who do so know little of the charming ma- chinery of local governments. One man has " summat to say," — utterly irrelevant. Another must needs answer him with something equally irrelevant ; a long chatter ensues, in spite of all cries to order and question. Soon one and another gets personal, and temper shows here and Ihere, You would fancy that the go-head party try to 232 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. restore order, and help business on. Not in the least. They had begun to cool a little. They are a little afraid that they have committed themselves. If people quarrel with each other, perhaps they may quarrel with them too And they begin to be wonderfully patient and impartial, in the hope of staving off the evil day, and finding some ex- cuse for doing nothing after all. " Hear 'mun out ! " . . . " Vair and zoft, let ev'ry man ha' his zay ! " ... " There 's vary gude rason in it." ... "I did n't think of that avore ; " — and so forth ; till, in a quarter of an hour the whole question has to be discussed over again, through the fog of a dozen fresh fallacies, and the miserable earnest man finds himself coasiderably worse off than when he began. Happy for him, if some chance-word is not let drop, which will afford the whole assembly an excuse for falling on him open-mouthed, as the cause of all their woes ! That chance-word came. Mr. Penruddock gave a spite- ful hit, being, as is said, of a cantankerous turn, to Mr. Treluddra, principal "jowder," that is, fish-salesman, of Aberalva. Whereon Treluddra, whose conscience told him that there was at present in his back-yard a cartload and more of fish in every stage of putrefaction, which he had kept rotting there rather than lower the market-price, rose in wrath. " An' if any committee puts its noz into my back-yard, if it doant get the biggest cod's innards as I can collar hold on, about its ears, my name is not Treluddra I A man's house is his castle, says I, and them as takes up with any o' this here open-day burglary, for it's nothing less, has to do wi' me, that 's all, and them as knows their interest, knows me I " Terrible were these words ; for old Treluddra, like most jowders, combined the profession of money-lender with that of salesman ; and there were dozens in the place who were ill debt to him for money advanced to buy boats and nets, after wreck and loss. Besides, to offend one jowder, was to offend all. They combined to buy the fish at any pi-ico they chose ; — if angered, they would combine now and then not to buy it at all. " You old twenty per cent, rascal 1 " roared the lieutenant, " after making a fortune out of these poor fellows' mishaps, do you want to poison 'em all with your stinking fish ? " "I say, lieutenant," says old Beer, whose son owed Treluddra fifty pounds at that moment, "fair's fair. You mind your coast-guard, and we'm mind our trade. We 'm THE DOCTOR AT BAT. 233 free fishermen, by charter and right ; you 'm not our masterj and you shall know it." " Know it ? " says the lieutenant, foaming. " Iss I You put your head inside my presences, and I '11 split mun open, if I be hanged for it." " You 'U split my head open ? " " Iss, by 1 " And the old gray-bearded sea-king set his arms akimbo. " Gentlemen, gentlemen, for Heaven's sake ! " cries poor Headley, " this is really going too far. Gentlemen, the vestry is adjourned 1 " " Best thing, too ; oughtn't never to have been called," says one and another. And some one, as he went out, muttered something about "interloping strange doctors, colloquies with popish cu- rates," which was answered by a " Put 'num in the quay pule ! " from Treluddra. Tom stepped up to Treluddra instantly. " What were you so kind as to say, sir ? " Treluddra turned very pale. " I didn't say naught." " 0, but I assure you I heard ; and I shall be most happy to jump into the quay pule this afternoon, if it will afford you the slightest amusement. Say the word, and I '11 bor- row a flute, and play you the Rogue's March all the while with my right hand, swimming with my left. Now, gentle- men, one word before we part." " Who be you ? " cries some one. " A man, at least, and ought to have a fair hearing. Now, I ask you, what possible interest can I have in this matter ? I knew when I began that I should give myself a frightful quantity of trouble, and get only what I have got." " Why did you begin at all, then ? " " Because I was a very foolish, meddlesome ass, who fan- cied that I ought to do my duty once in a way by my neigh- bors. Now, I have only to say, that if you will but forgive and forget, and let bygones be bygones, I promise you sol- emnly I '11 never do my duty by you again as long as I live, nor interfere with the sacred privilege of every free-born Englishman, to do that which is right in the sight of his own eyes, and wrong too ! " " You 'm making fun at us," said old Beer, dubiously. " Well, Mr. Beer, and is n't that better than quarrelling with you ? Come along ; we '11 all go home and forget it, like good Christians. Perhaps the cholera won't come ; and ri it does, what 's the odds, so long as you 're happy, eh ? '' 20* 234 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. And, to the intense astonishment both of the lieutenant and Prank, Tom walked home with the malcontents, mak- ing himself so agreeable that he was forgiven freely on the spot. " What does the fellow mean ? He 's deserted us, sir, after bringing us here to make fools of us I " Prank could give no answer ; but Thurnall gave one him- self, that evening, both to Frank and the lieutenant. " The cholera will come ; and these fellows are just mad ; but I must n't quarrel with them, mad or not." " Why then ? " "Porthe same reason that you must not. If we keep our influence, we may be able to do some good at the last ; which means, in plain English, saving a few human lives. As for you, lieutenant, you have behaved like a hero, and have been served as heroes generally are. What you must do is this. On the first hint of disease, pack up your traps and your good lady, and go and live in the watch-house across the river. As for the men's houses, I '11 set them to rights in a day, if you '11 get the commander of the district to allow you a little chloride of lime and whitewash." And so the matter ended. "You're a greater puzzle than ever to me, Thurnall," said Frank. " You are always pretending to care for noth- ing but your own interest, and yet here you have gone out of your way to incur odium, knowing, you say, that your cause was all but hopeless." " Well, I do it because I like it. It's a sort of sporting with your true doctor. He blazes away at a disease where he sees one, as he would at a bear or a lion ; the very sight of it excites his organ of destructiveness. Don't you under- stand me ? You hate sin, you know. Well, I hate disease. Moral evil is your devil, and physical evil is mine. I hate it, little or big ; I hate to see a fellow sick ; I hate to see a child rickety and pale ; I hate to see a speck of dirt in the street; I hate to see a woman's gown torn; I hate to see her stockings down at heel ; I hate to see anything wasted, anything awiy, anything going wrong ; I hate to see water- power wasted, manure wasted, land wasted, muscle wasted, pluck wasted, brains wasted ; I hate neglect, incapacity, idleness, ignorance, and all the disease and misery which Bpring out of that. There 's my devil ; and I can't help, for the life of me, going right at his throat, wheresoever I meet him." Lastly, rather to clear bis reputation than in the hope of THE DOCTOR AT BAY. 235 tloiug" go id, Tom wrote up to London, and detailed tho case to that much-calumniated body, the General Board of Health, informing them civilly that the Nuisances Removal Act was simply waste paper ; that he could not get it to bear at all on Aberalva ; and that if he had done so, it would have been equally useless, for the simple reason that it constituted the offenders themselves judge and jury in their own case. To which the board returned for answer, that they were perfectly aware of the fact, and deeply deplored the same ; but that, as soon as cholera broke out in Aberalva, they should be most happy to send down an inspector. To which Tom replied courteously that he would not give them the trouble, being able, he trusted, to perform without assistance the not uncommon feat of shutting the stable- door after the horse was stolen. And so was Aberalva left "a virgin city," undefiled by government interference, to the blessings of that " local gov- ernment," which signifies, in plain English, the leaving the few to destroy themselves and the many, by the unchecked exercise of the virtues of pride and ignorance, stupidity and stinginess. But to Tom, in his sorest need, arose a new and most un- expected coadjutor ; and this was the way in which it came to pass. For it befell in that pleasant summer time, "when small birds sing, and shaughs are green," that Thurnall started, one bright Sunday eve, to see a sick child at an upland farm, some few miles from the town. And partly because he liked the walk, and partly because he could no other, having neither horse nor gig, he went on foot ; and whistled as he went like any throstle-cock, along the pleasant vale, by flowery banks and ferny walls, by oak and ash and thorn, while Alva flashed and swirled, between green boughs below, clear cofiee-brown from last night's rain. Some miles up the turnpike road he went, and then away to the right, through the ash-woods of Trebooze, up by the rill which drips from pool to pool over the ledges of gray slate, deep-bedded ii, dark sedge and broad, bright burdock leaves, and tall ang' 1- ica, and ell-broad rings and tufts of king, and crown, and lady fern, and all the semi-tropic luxuriance of the fat west- ern soil, and steaming western woods ; out into the boggy moor at the glen-head, all fragrant with the gold-tipped gale, where the turf is enamelled with the hectic marsh violet, and the pink pimpernel, and the pale yellovir leaf stars of 236 THE DOCTOR AT BAY. the butterwort, and the bine bells and green threads of the ivy-leaved campanula ; out upon the steep, smooth dovyn above, and away over the broad cattle-pastures ; and then to pause a moment, and look far and wide over land and sea. It was a " day of God." The earth lay like one great emerald, ringed and roofed with sapphire : blue sea, blue mountain, blue sky overhead. There she lay, not sleeping, but basking in her quiet Sabbath joy, as though her two great sisters of the sea and air had washed her weary limba with holy tears, and purged away the stains of last week's sin and toil, and cooled her hot worn forehead with their pure incense-breath, and folded her within their azure robes, and brooded over her with smiles of pitying love, till she smiled back in answer, and took heart and hope for next week's weary work. Heart and hope for next week's work. That was the ser- mon which it preached to Tom Thurnall, as he stood there alone, a stranger and a wanderer, like Ulysses of old ; but like him, self-helpful, cheerful, fate-defiant. In one respect, indeed, he knew less than Ulysses, and was more of a hea- then than he ; for he knew not what Ulysses knew, that a heavenly guide was with him in his wanderings ; still less what Ulysses knew not, that what he called the malicious sport of fortune was, in truth, the earnest education of a Father ; but who will blame him for getting strength and comfort from such merely natural founts, or say that the impulse came from below, and not from above, which made him say — "Brave old world she is, after all, and right well made ; and looks right well to-day, in her go-to-meeting clothes ; and plenty of room and chance in her for a brave man to earn his bread, if he will but go right on about his business, as the birds and the flowers do, instead of peaking and pining over what people think of him, like that miserable Briggs ^ Hark to that jolly old missel-thrush below ! he 's had his nest to build, and his supper to earn, and his young ones to feed ; and all the crows and kites in the wood to drive away, the sturdy John Bull that he is ; and yet he can find time to sing as merrily as an abbot, morning and evening, since he sang the new year in last January. And why should not I ? " Let him be a while ; there are sounds of deeper meaning in the air, if his heart had ears to hear them ; far-off church bells chiming to even-song ; hymn-tunes floating up the glen from the little chapel in the vale. He may learn what THE DOCTOE AT BAT. 237 they too mean some day. Honor to him at least, that he has learnt what the missel-thrush below can tell him. If he accept cheerfully and manfully the things which he does see, he will be all the more able to enter hereafter into the deeper mystery of things unseen. The road toward true faith and reverence for God's kingdom of heaven does not lie through Manichsean contempt and slander of God's king- dom of earth. So let him stride over the down, enjoying the mere fact of life, and health, and stnmgth, and whistling shrilly to the bird below, who trumpets out a few grand ringing notes, and repeats them again and again in saucy self-sat- isfaction ; and then stops to listen for the answer to this challenge ; and then rattles on again with a fresh passage, more saucily than ever, in a tone which seems to ask, — "You could sing that, eh? but can you sing this, my fine fellow on the down above ? " So he seems to Tom to say ; and, tickled with the fancy, Tom laughs, and whistles, and laughs, and has just time to compose his features as he steps up to the farm-yard gate. Let him be, I say again. He might have better Sunday thoughts ; perhaps he will have some day. At least he is a man, and a brave one ; and as the greater contains the less, surely before a man can be a good man, he must be a brave one first, much more a man at all. Cowards, old Odin held, inevitably went to the very bottom of Hela-pool, and by no possibility, unless of course they became brave at last, could rise out of that everlasting bog, but sank whining lower and lower like mired cattle, to all eternity in the unfath- omable peat-slime. And if the twenty-first chapter of the Book of Revelation, and the eighth verse, is to be taken aa it stands, their doom has not altered since Odin's time, unless to become still worse. Tom came up, over the home-close and through the bar- ton-gate, through the farm-yard, and stopped at last at the porch. The front door was open, and the door beyond it ; and, ere he knocked, he stopped, looking in silence at a pic- ture which held him spell-bound for a moment by its rich and yet quiet beauty. Tom was no artist, and knew no more of painting, in spite of his old friendship with Claude, than was to be expected of a keen and observant naturalist who had seen half the globe. Indeed, he had been in the habit of snubbing Claude's profession ; and of arriving, on pre-Raphaelite grounds, al A by no means pre-Raphaelite conclusion. " A pcture,you 238 THE DOCTOR AT 'iAT. Bay, is worth nothing unless you copy nature. But you can't copy her. She is ten times more gorgeous than any man can dare represent hor. Ergo, every picture is a fail ure ; and the nearest hedge-bush is worth all your galleries together " — a syllogism of sharp edge, which he would back up by Byron's — " I 've seen much finer women, ripe and real, Than all the nonsense of their stone ideah" But here was one of nature's own pictures, drawn and colored by more than mortal hand, and framed over and above, ready to his eye, by the square of the dark doorway, beyond which all was flooded with the full glory of the low north-western sun. A dark oak-ribbed ceiling ; walls of pale fawn-yellow ; an open window, showing a corner of rich olive-stone wall, enamelled with- golden lichens, orange and green combs of polypody, pink and gray tufts of pelHtory, all glowing in the sunlight. Above the window-sill rose a bush of maiden-blush roses ; a tall spire of blue monkshood ; and one head of scarlet lychnis, like a spark of fire ; and behind all the dark-blue sea, which faded into the pale-blue sky. At the window stood a sofa of old maroon leather, its dark hue throwing out in strong relief two figures who sat upon it. And when Tom had once looked at them, he looked at nothing else. There sat the sick girl, her head nestling upon the shoul- der of Grace Harvey ; a tall, delicate thing of seventeen, with thin white cheeks, the hectic spot aflame on each, and long fair curls, which mingled lovingly with Grace's dark tresses, as they sat cheek against cheek, and hand in hand Her eyes were closed ; Tom thought at first that she was asleep ; but there was a quiet smile about her pale lips ; and every now and then her hand left Grace's, to move towards a leaf full of strawberries which lay on Grace's lap ; and Tom could see that she was listening intently to Grace, who told and told, in that sweet, measured voice of hers, her head erect, her face in the full blaze of sunshine, her great eyes looking out far away beyond the sea, beyond the sky, into some infinite which only she beheld. Tom had approached unheard, across the farm-yard straw. He stood and looked his fill The attitude of the two girla was so graceful, that he was loath to disturb it. and loath. THE DOCTOB AT BAY. 239 too, to disturb a certain sunny calm which warmed at once and softened his stout heart. He wished, too, he scarce knew why, to hear what Grace was saying ; and, as he listened, her voice was so distinct and delicate in its modulations, that every word came clearly to his ear. It was the beautiful old legend of St. Dorothea : " So they did all sorts of dreadful things to her, and then led her away to die ; and they stood laughing there. But after a little time there came a boy, the prettiest boy that ever was seen on earth, and in his hand a basket full of fruits and flowers, more beautiful than tongue can tell. And he said, ' Dorothea sends you these, out of the heavenly garden which she told you of ; — will you believe her now ? ' And then, before they could reply, he vanished away. And Theophilus looked at the flowers, and tasted the fruit, and a new heart grew up within him, and he said, ' Doro- thea's God shall be my God, and I will die for him like her. " So you see, darling, there are sweeter fruits than these, and gayer flowers, in the place to which you go ; and all the lovely things in this world here will seem quite poor and worthless beside the glory of that better land which He will show you ; and yet you will not care to look at them, for the sight of Him will be enough, and you will care to think of nothing else." " And you are sure He will accept me, after all ? " asked the sick girl, opening her eyes, and looking up at Grace. She saw Thurnall standing in the doorway, and gave a little scream. Tom came forward, bowing. " I am very sorry to have disturbed you. I suspect Miss Harvey was giving you better medicine than I can give." Now, why did Tom say that, to whom the legend of St Dorothea, and, indeed, that whole belief in a better land, was as a dream fit only for girls ? Not altogether because he must need say something civil. True, he felt, on the whole, about the future state as Gbthe did ; " To the able man this world is not dumb ; why should he ramble off into eternity ? Such incomprehensible subjects lie too far off", and only disturb our thoughts, if made the subject of daily meditation." That there was a future state he had no doubt. Our having been born once, he used to say, is the strongest possible presumption in favor of our being born again ; and probably, as nature always works upward and develops higher forms, in somti 240 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. higher state. Indeed, for aught he knew, the old icthyo eaurs and plesioeaurs might be alive now, as lions — or as men. He himself, indeed, he had said, ere now, had been probably a pterodactyle of the Lias, neither fish, flesh, nor good red herring, but crocodile and bat in one, able alike to swim, or run, or fly, eat anything, and live in any element Still it was no concern of his. He was here, and here was his business. He had not thought of this life before he came into it ; and it would be time enough to think of the next life when he got into it. Besides, he had all a doctor's dislike of those terrors of the unseen world with which some men are wout to oppress still more failing nature, and break the bruised reed. His business was to cure his patients' bodies ; and, if he could not do that, at least to see that life was not shortened in them by nervous depression and anxi- ety. Accustomed to see men of every character die under every possible circumstance, he had come to the conclusion that the " safety of a man's soul " could by no possibility be inferred from his death-bed temper. The vast majority, good or bad, died in peace : why not let them die so ? If nature kindly took ofl^ ohe edge of sorrow, by blunting the nervous system, what right had man to interfere with so merciful an arrangement ? Every man, he held in his easy optimism, would go where he ought to go ; and it could be no possible good to him — indeed, it might be a very bad thing for him, as in this life — to go where he ought not to go. So he used to argue, with three-fourths of mankind, mingling truth and falsehood ; and would, on these grounds, have lone his best to turn the dissenting preacher out of that house, had he found him in it. But to-day he was in a more lenient, perhaps in a more human, and, therefore, more spiritual mood. It was all very well for him, full of life, and power, and hope, to look on death in that cold, careless way ; but for that poor young thing, cut off, just as life opened, from all that made life lovely — was not death for her a painful, ugly anomaly 1 Could she be blamed if she shuddered at going forth into the unknown blank, she knew not whither ? All very well for the old emperor of Eome, who had lived his life and done his work, to play with the dreary question : ' Animula, ragula, blanaala, Hospes comesque corporis; Qusa nuno abibis in loca, Bigidula, nudula, pallida ? '' THE DOCTOK AT BAT. 241 But she. who had lived no life, and done no work — only had pined through ^earyyears of hideous suffering ; crip- pled and ulcerated with scrofula, now dying of consump- tion ; was it not a merciful dream, a beautiful dream, a ^ust dream, — so beautiful and just, that perhaps it might be true, — that, in some fairer world, all this, and more, might be made up to her ? If not, was it not a mistake and an injustice, that she should ever have come into the world at all ? And was not Grace doing a rational as well as a loving work, in telling her, under whatsoever symbols, that such a home of rest and beauty awaited her ? It was not the sort of place to which he expected, perhaps even wished, to go ; but it fitted well enough with a young girl's hopes, a young girl's powers of enjoy- ment. Let it be; perhaps there was such a place — why not ? — fitted for St. Dorothea, and those cut off in youth like her, and other places fit for such as he. And he spoke niore tenderly than usual (though he was never untender), as he said, " And you feel better to-day ? I am sure you must, with such a kind friend, to tell you such sweet tales." " I do not feel better, thank you. And why should I wish to do so ? You all take too much trouble about me ; why do you want to keep me here ? " " We are loath to lose you ; and, besides, while you can be kept here, it is a sign that you ought to be here." " So Grace tells me. Yes, I will be patient, and wait till He has done his work. I am more patient now ; am I not, Grace ? " And she fondled Grace's hand, and looked up in her face. " Yes," said Grace, who was standing near, with down- cast face, trying to avoid Tom's eye. " Yes, you are very good ; but you must not talk ; " but the girl went on, with kindling eye : " Ah I I was very fretful at first, because I could not go to heaven at once ; but Grace showed me how it was good to be here, as well as there, as long as He thought that 1 might be made perfect by sufferings. And since then my pain has become quite pleasant to me, and I am ready to wait and bear — wait and bear." " You must not talk ; see, you are beginning to cough," said Tom, who wished somehow to stop a form of thought which so utterly puzzled him. Not that he had not heard it before ; common-place enough, indeed, it is, thank God I but that day the words came home to him with spirit and 21 242 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. power, all the more solemnly from their contrast •with the scene around, — without, all sunshine, joy, and glory, all which could tempt a human being to linger here ; and, within, that young girl longing to leave it all, and yet con- tent to stay and suffer. What mysteries there were in the human spirit — mysteries to which that knowledge of man- kind on which he prided himself gave him no key ! " What if I were laid on my back to-morrow for life by a fall, a blow, as I have seen many a better man than me, should I not wish to have one to talk to m(>, as she waa talking to that child ? " And for a moment a yoarning after Grace came i)ver him, as it had done before, and swept from his mind the dark cloud of suspicion. " Now I must talk with your mother," said he ; " for yon have better company than mine ; and I hear her just coming in." He settled little matters for his patient's comfort with the farmer's wife. When he returned to bid her good-by. Grace was gone. " I hope I have not driven her away." " 0, no ; she had been here an hour, and she must go back now to get her mother's supper." " That is a good girl," said Tom, looking after her as she went down the field. " She 's an angel fi-om heaven, sir. Not a three days go over without her walking up here all this way, after her work, to comfort my poor maid, and all of us as well. It 's like the dew of heaven upon us. Pity, sir, you did n't see her home." " I should have liked it well enough ; but folks might talk, if two young people were seen walking together Sun- day evening." " 0, sir, they know her too well by now, for miles round, and you, too, sir, I '11 make bold to say." " Well, at least I '11 go after her." So Tom went, and kept Grace in sight till she had crossed the little moor, and disappeared in the wood below. He had gone about a hundred yards into the wood, wheD he heard voices and laughter, then a loud shriek. He hur ried forward. In another minute, Grace rushed up to him, her eyes wide with terror and indignation. " What is it ? " cried he, trying to stop her ; but, not seeming to see him, she dashed past him, and ran on. Another moment, and a man appeared in full pursi:fit. It was Trebooze of Trebooze, an evil laugh upon his face rHB DOCTOR AT BAY. 243 Tom planted himself across the narrow path in an atti- tude which there was no mistaking. Not a word passed between them. Silently and instinct vely, like two fierce dogs, the two men flew upon each other ; Tom full of righteous wrath, and Treboq zg_of_half- drunken passion, turned to fury by the interruption. He was a far taller and heavier man than Thurnall ; and, as the bully of the neighborhood, counted on an easy vic- tory. But he was mistaken. After the first rush was over, he found it impossible to close with his foe, and saw in the doctor's face, now grown cool and business-like as usual, the wily smile of superior science and expected triumph. " Brandy and water in the morning ought not to improve the wind," said Tom to himself as his left hand countered provokingly, while his right rattled again and again upon Trebooze's watch-chain. " Justice will overtake you in the offending part, which I take to be the epigastric region." In a few minutes more the scuifle ended shamefully enough for the sottish squireen. Tom stood over him a minute, as he sat grovelling and groaning among the Iffng grass. " I may as well see that 1 have not killed him. No ; he will do as well as ever — which is not saying much Now, sir I Go home quietly, and ask Mrs. Trebooze for a little rhubarb and sal- volatile. I '11 call up in the course of to-morrow to see how you are." " I '11 kill you, if I catch you ! " " As a man, I am open, of course, to be killed by any fair means ; but, as a doctor, I am still bound to see after my patient's health." And Tom bowed civilly, and walked back up the path to find Grace, after washing face and hands in the brook. He found her up at Tolchard's farm, trembling and thank- ful. / " I cannot do less than see Miss Harvey safe home " S Grace hesitated. ' " Mrs. Tolchard, I am sure , will walk with us ; it would be safer, in case you felt faint again." But Mrs. Tolchard would not come to save Grace's notions of propriety ; so Tom passed Grace's arm through his own. She offered to withdraw it. " No ; you will require it. You do not know yet how much you have gone through. My fear is, that you will fee' it all the more painfully when the excitement is past. I shall send you up a cordial : and you must promise me to take it. 244 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. You owe me a little debt, you know, to-day ; you must paj it by taking my medicines." Grace looked up at him sidelong ; for there was a playful tenderness in his voice which was new to her, and which thrillod her through and through. " I will, indeed, I promise you. But I am so much better now. Really, I can walk alone 1 " And she withdrew her arm from his, but not hastily. After that they walked on awhile in silence. Grace kept her veil down, for her eyes were full of tears. She loved that man intensely, utterly. She did not seek to deny it to herself. God had given him to her, and hers he was. The very sea, the devourer whom' she hated, who hungered to swallow up all young fair life, the very sea had yielded him up to her, alive from the dead. And yet that man, she knew, suspected her of a base and hateful crime. It was too dreadful ! She could not exculpate herself, save by blank denial — and what would that avail ? The large hot drops ran down her cheeks. She had need of all her strength to prevent sobbing. She looked round. In the bright summer evening, all things were full of joy and love. The hedge-banks were gay as flower-gardens ; the swifts chased each other, scream- ing harsh delight ; the ring-dove murmured in the wood beneath his world-old song, which she had taught the chil- dren a hundred times, — " Curuckity coo, curuok coo ; You love me, and I love you ! " The woods slept golden in the evening sunlight ; and over- head brooded, like one great smile of God, the everlasting blue. " He will right me ! " she said. " ' Hold thee still in the Lord, and abide patiently, and He will make thy righteous- ness clear as the light, and thy just dealing as the noon- day ! ' " And after that thought she wept no more. Was it as a reward for her faith that Tom began to talk to her ? He had paced on by her side, serious, but not sad. True, he had suspected her ; he suspected her still. But that scene with the dying child had been no sham. There, at least, there was nothing to suspect, nothing to sneer at. The calm purity, self-sacrifice, hope, which was contained Jn it, had softened his world-hardened spirit, and woke up i!ii him feelings which were always pleasant, — feelings which THE DOCTOR AT BAi. 245 the sight of his father, or the writing to his father, could only waken. Quaintly enough, the thought of Grace and of his father seemed intertwined, inextricable. If the old man had but such a nurse as she I And for a 'moment he felt a glow of tenderness toward her, because he thought she would be tender to his father. ShfiJiajiataLen his money, certainly ; or, if not, she knew where it was, and wonW"^^? tell hitfi. Well, what matter just then ? He did not want the money at that minute. How much pleasanter and wiser to take things as they came, and enjoy himself while he could ; and fancy that she was always what he had seen her that day I After all, it was much more pleasant to trust people than to suspect them, " Handsome is who handsome does I And, besides, she did me the kindness of saving my life ; so it would but be civil to talk to her a little." He began to talk to her about the lovely scene around : and found, to his surprise, that she saw as much of it as he, and saw a great deal more in it than he. Her answers were short, modest, faltering, but each one of them sug- gestive ; and Tom soon found that he had met with a mind which contained all the elements of poetry, and needed only education to develop them. " What a blue-stocking, pre-Raphaelite seventh-heaven- arian she would have been, if she had had the misfortune to be born in that station of life I " But where a clever man is talking to a beautiful woman, talk he will, and must, for the mere sake of showing off, though she be but a village schoolmistress ; and Tom. soon found himself, with a secret sneer at his own vanity, displaying before her all the much finer things that he had seen in his travels ; and, as he talked, she answered, with quiet expressions of wonder, sympathy, regret at her own narrow sphere of experience, till, as if the truth was not enough, he found himself running to the very edge of exaggeration, and a little over it, in the enjoyment of calling out her passion for the marvellous, especially when called out in honor of himself And she, simple creature, drank it all in as sparkling wine, and only dreaded lest the stream should cease. Adventures with noble savages in palm-fringed coral islands, with greedy robbers amid the fragrant hills of Greece, with fierce Indians beneath the snow-peaks of the far west, with cow- ard Mexicans among tunals of cactus and agave beneath the burning tropic sun, — What a man he was ! Where had he not been, and what had he not seen ? And how he had been preserved — for her ? And his image seemed to he» 21* 246 THE DOCTOR AT BAY. utterly beautiful and glorious, clothed as i'c was in tbo beauty and glory of all that he had seen, and done, and suf- fered. Love, Love, Love, the same in peasant and in peer ! The more honor to you, then, old Love, to be the same thing in this world which is common to peasant and to peer. They say that you are blind ; a dreamer, an exag- gerator — a liar, in short. They know just nothing about you, then. You will not see people as they seem, and as they have become, no doubt ; but why ? Because you see them as they ought to be, and are, in some deep way, eternally, in the sight of Him who conceived and created them. At last she started, as if waking from a pleasant dream, and spoke, half to herself — " 0, how foolish of me to be idling away this oppor- tunity — the only one, perhaps, which I may have ! 0, Mr. Thurnall, tell me about this cholera ! " " What about it ? " " Everything. Ever since I heard of what you have been aaying to the people, ever since Mr. Headley's sermon, it has been like fire in my ears ! " "I am truly glad to hear it. If all parsons had preached about it for the last fifteen years as Mr. Headley did last Sunday, — if they had told people plainly that, if the cholera was God's judgment at all, it was his judgment on the sin of dirt, and that the repentance which He required was to wash and be clean in literal earnest, — the cholera would be impos- sible in England by now." " 0, Mr. Thurnall ! but is it not God's doing ? and can we stop His hand ? " "1 know nothing about that. Miss Harvey. I only know that wheresoever cholera breaks out, it is some one's fault ; and if deaths occur, some one ou^ht to be tried for manslaughter — I had almost said murder — and trans- ported for life." " Some one ? Who ? " " That will be settled in the next generation, when men have common sense enough to make laws for the preserva- tion of their own lives, against the dirt, and covetousnesa, and idleness, of a set of human hogs." Grace was silent for a while. ~" But can nothing be done to keep it off now ? Must it come ?" " I believe it must. Still, one may do enough to save many lives in the moan while." THE DOCTOR AT BAT. 247 " Enough to save many lives — lives ? — immortal souls^ MO ! 0, what could I do ? " " A great deal, Miss Harvey," said Tom, across whom the recollection of Grace's influenc£_flashed for the_ first time. ^ What a help she might be to him I "" And he talked on^^ancTon to her. and found that she en- tered into his plans with all her wild enthusiasm, but also with sound practical common sense ; and Tom began to respect her intellect as well as her heart. At last, however, she faltered — " 0, if I could but believe all this 1 Is it not fighting against God ? " " I do not know what sort of a God yours is. Miss Har- vey. I believe in some one who made all that ! " and he pointed round him to the glorious woods and glorious sky. " I should have fancied, from your speech to that poor girl, that you believed in him also. You may, however, only believe in, the same being in whom the Methodist parson believes — one who intends to hurl into endless agony every human being who has not had a chance of hearing the said preacher's nostrum for delivering men out of the hands of Him who made them 1 " " What do you mean ? " asked Grace, startled alike by Tom's words, and the intense scorn and bitterness of his tone. " That matters little. What do you mean, in turn ? What did you mean by saying that saving lives is saving immortal souls ? " " 0, is it not giving them time to repent ? What will become of them, if they are cut off in the midst of their sms ?" " If you had a son whom it was not convenient to you to keep at home, would his being a bad fellow — the greatest scoundrel on the earth — be a reason for your turning him into the streets to live by thieving, and end by going to the dogs forever and a day ? " " No ; but what do you mean ? " " That I do not think that God, when he sends a human being out of this world, is more cruel than you or I would be. If we transport a man because he is too bad to be in England, and he shows any signs of mending, we give him a fresh chance in the colonies, and let him start again, to tiy if he cannot do better next time. And do you fancy that God, when he transports a man out of this world, nevei gives him a fresh chance in another — especially when 248 THE DOCTOR AT BAY. nine out of ten poor rascals have never had a fair chance yet ? " Grace looked up in his face astonished. " 0, if I could but believe that 1 I it would give me some gleam of hope for my two 1 But no — it 's not in Scripture. Where the tree falls there it lies." " And as the fool dies, so dies the wise man ; and there is one account to the righteous and to the wicked. And a man has no preeminence over a beast, for both turn alike to dust ; and Solomon does' not know, he says, or any one else, anything about the whole matter, or even whether there be any life after death at all ; and so, he says, the only wise thing is to leave such deep questions alone, for Him who made us to settle in his own way, and just to fear God and keep his commandments, and do the work which lies nearest us with all our might." Grace was silent. * " You are surprised to hear me quote Scripture, and well you may be ; but that^ame book of Ecclesiastes is a very old favorite with me ; Qor I am no Christian, but a worldling, if ever there was on^. ) But it does puzzle me why you, who are a Christian, slv^uld talk one half hour as you have been talking to that poor girl, and the next go for informa- tion about the next life to poor old, disappointed, broken- hearted Solomon, with his three hundred and odd idolatrous wives, who confesses fairly that this life is a failure, and that he does not know whether there is any next life at all." Whether Tom were altogether right or not, is not the question here ; the novelist's business is to represent the real thoughts of mankind, when they are not absolutely unfit to be told ; and certainly Tom spoke the doubts of thousands when he spoke his own. Grace was silent still. " Well," he said, " beyond that I can't go, being no the- ologian. But when a preacher tells people in one breath of a God who so loves men that he gave his own Son to save them, and in the next, that the same God so hates men that he will cast nine tenths of them into hopeless torture for- ever — (and if that is not hating, 1 don't know what is), — unless he, the preacher, gets a chance of talking to tliem for a few minutes, — why, I should like. Miss Harvey, to put that gentleman upon a real fire for ten minutes, instead of his comfortable Sunday's dinner, which stands ready fly- ing for him, and which he was going home to eat, as jolly as if all the world was not going to destruction ; and th^re THE DOCTOR AT BAY. 249 let liim feel what fire was like, and recousidei liis state- ments." Grace looked up at him no more ; but walked on in silence, pondering many things. " Howsoever that may be, sir, tell me what to do in this cholera, and I will do it, if I kill myself with work or infec- tion I " " You shan't do that. We cannot spare you from Aber- alva, Grace," said Tom ; " you must save a few more poor creatures, ere you die, out of the hands of that Good Being who made little children, and love, and happiness, and the flowers, and the sunshine, and the fruitful earth ; and who, you say, redeemed them all again, when they were lost, by an act of love which passes all human dreams." "Do not talk sol" cried Grace. "It frightens me; it puzzles me, and makes me miserable. 0, if you would but become a Christian 1 " " And listen to the Gospel ? " " Yes— 0, yes I" " A gospel means good news, I thought. When you have any to tell me, I will listen. Meanwhile, the news that three out of four of those poor fellows down town are going to a certain place, seems to me such terribly bad news, that I can't help fancying that it is not the Gospel at all and so get on the best way I can, listening to the good news about God which this grand old world, and my micro- scope, and my books, tell me. No, Grace, I have more good news than that, and I '11 confess it to you." He paused, and his voice softened. " Say what the preacher may, he must be a good God who makes such creatures as you, and sends them into the world to comfort poor wretches. Follow your own sweet heart, Grace, and torment yourself no more with these dark dreams ! " " My heart ? " cried she, looking down ; " it is deceitfij and desperately wicked." " I wish mine were too, then," said Tom ; " but it cannot be, as long as it is so unlike yours. Now stop, Grace, I want to speak to you." There was a gate in front of them, leading into the road, As they came to it, Tom lingered with his hand upon the top bar, that Grace might stop. She did stop, half fright- ened. Why did he call her Grace ? " I wish to speak to you on one matter, on wtiich I be- lieve 1 ought to have spoken long ago." 250 THE DOCTOR AT BAY. Sb3 looked up at him, surprise in her large eyos, and turned pale as he went on. " I ought long ago to have begged your pardon for some thing rude which I said to you at your own door. This day has made me quite ashamed of— " But she interrupted him, quite wildly, gasping for breath. " The belt ? The belt ? 0, my God 1 my God ! Have you heard anything more ? — anything more ? " " Not a word ; but — " To his astonishment, she heaved a deep sigh, as if re- lieved from a sudden fear. His face clouded, and his eye- brows rose. Was she guilty, then, after all ? With the quick eyes of love, she saw the change ; and broke out passionately, — " Yes ; suspect me I suspect me if you will 1 only give me time I Send me to prison, innocent as I am — innocent as that child there above — would God I were dying like her 1 — Only give me time ! — 0, misery I I had hoped that you had forgotten — that it was lost in the sea — that — I What am I saying ? Only give me time ! " and she dropped on her knees before him, wringing her hands. " Miss Harvey 1 This is not worthy of you. If you be innocent, as I don't doubt, what more do you need — or I ? " He took her hands, and lifted her up ; but she still kept looking down, round, upward, like a hunted deer, and pleading in words which seemed sobbed out — as by some poor soul on the rack — between choking spasms of agony. "0, I don't know, — God help me 1 0, Lord, help me I 1 will try and find it — I know I shall find it 1 only have patience ; have patience with me a little, and I know I shall bring it to you ; and then — and then you will for- give ? — forgive ? " And she laid her hands upon his arms, and looked up in his face with a piteous smile of entreaty. She had never looked so beautiful as at that moment. The devil saw it, and entered into the heart of Thomas Thurnall. He caught her in his arms ; kissed away her tears; stopped her mouth with kisses. "Yes! I '11 wait — wa't forever, if you will I I '11 lose another belt for such inother look as that I " She was bewildered for a moment, poor fond wretch, at finding herself where she would gladly have stayed forever ; but quickly she recovered her reason. " Let me go I " she cried, struggling. " This is nol THE DOCTOR AT BAT. 251 right I Let me go, sir I " And she tried to cover her burn- ing cheeks with her hands. " I will not, Grace 1 I love you ! I love you, I tell you 1 " " You do not, sir 1 " and she struggled still more fiercely, " Do not deceive yourself ! Me you cannot deceive ! Let me go, I say ! You could not demean yourself to love a poor girl like me 1 " Utterly losing his head, Tom ran on with passionate words. " No, sir I you know that I am not fit to be your wife ; and do you fancy that I — " Maddened now, Tom went on, ere he was aware, from a foolish deed to a base speech. " I know nothing, but that I shall keep you in pawn for my belt. Till that is at least restored, you are in my power, Grace ! Kemember that 1 " She thrust him away with so sudden and desperate a spasm, that he was forced to let her go. She stood gazing at him, a trembling deer no longer, but rather a lioness at bay, her face flashing beautiful indignation. " In your power 1 Yes, sir I My character, my life, for aught I know ; but not my soul. Send me to Bodmin jail if you will ; but ofier no more insults to a modest maiden 1 ! " — and her expression changed to one of lofty sorrow and pity, — "0! to find all men alike at heart! After having fancied you — fancied you" (what she had fancied him her woman's modesty dared not repeat) — " to find you even such another as Mr. Trebooze ! " Tom was checked. As for mere indignation, in such cases, he had seen enough of that to trust it no more than " ice that is one night old ; " but pity for him was a weapon of defence to which he was unaccustomed. And there was no contempt in her pity ; and no affectation either. Her voice was solemn, but tender, gently upbraid- ing, like her countenance. Never had he felt Grace's mys- terious attraction so strong upon him ; and for the first and last time, perhaps, for many a year, he answered with down- cast eyes of shame. " I beg your pardon, Miss Harvey. I have been rude-— mad. If you will look in your glass when you go home, and have a woman's heart in you, you may at least see an excuse for me ; but like Mr. Trebooze I am not. Forgive and forget, and let us walk home rationally." And he offeied to take her hand. " No ; not now ! Not till I can trust you, sir I " said she. 252 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. The words were lofty enough ; but there was a profound melancholy in their tone which humbled Tom still more Was it possible — she seemed to have hinted it— that she had thought him a very grand personage till now, and that he had disgraced himself in her eyes ? If a man had suspected Tom of such a feeling, I fear he would have cared little, save how to restore the balance by making a fool of the man who fancied him a fool ; but no male self-sufficiency or pride is proof against the contempi of woman ; and Tom slunk along by the schoolmistress's side, as if he had been one of her naughtiest school-children. He tried, of course, to brazen it out to his own conscience. He had done no harm, after all ; indeed, never seriously meant any. She was making a ridiculous fuss about noth- ing. It was all part and parcel of her Methodistical cant He dared say that she was not as prudish with the Metho- dist parson. And at that base thought he paused ; for a flush of rage, and a strong desire on such hypothesis to slay the said Methodist parson, or any one else who dared even to look sweet on Grace, showed him plainly enough what he had long been afraid of, that he was really in love with her ; and that, as he put it, if she did not make a fool of her- self about him, he was but too likely to end in making a fool of himself about her. However, he must speak, to support his own character as a man of the world ; — it would never do to knock under to a country-girl in this way ; — she might go and boast of it all over the town ; — beside, foiled or not, he would not give in without trying her mettle somewhat further. " Miss Harvey, will you forgive me ? " " I have forgiven you." " Will you forget ? " " If I can 1 " she said, with a marked expression, which signified (though, of course, she did not mean Tom to under- stand it), " some of what is past is too precious, and some too painful, to forget." " I do not ask you to forget all which has passed ! " " I am afraid that there is nothing which would be any credit to you, sir, to have remembered." " Credit or none," said Tom, unabashed, " do not forget one word that I said." She looked hastily and sidelong round, — " That I am iii your power ? " "No I curse it I I wish I had bitten o'lt my ton gun THE DOCTOR AT BAf. 2o3 before I had said that ! No I that I am in your power, Miss Harvey." " Sir I I never heard you say that ; and if you had, the sooner anything so untrue is forgotten the better.'' " I said that I loved you, Grace ; and if that does not mean that — " " Sir ! Mr. Thurnall ! I cannot, I will not hear I You only insult me, sir, by speaking thus, when you know that — / that you consider me — a thief 1 " and the poor girl burst ' into tears again. " I do not 1 I do not I " cried Tom, growing really earnest at the sight of her sorrow. " Did I not begin this unhappy talk by begging your pardon for ever having let such a thought cross my mind ? " " But you do I you do I you told me as much at my own door ; and I have seen it ever since, till I have almost gone mad under it I " " I will swear to you by all that is sacred that I do not ! 0, Grace, the first moment I saw you my heart told me that it was impossible ; and now, this afternoon, as I listened to you with that sick girl, I felt a wretch for ever having Grace, I tell you, you made me feel, for the moment, a better man than I ever felt in my life before. A poor return I have made for that, truly 1 " Grace looked up in his face gasping. " 0, say that ! say that again. 0, good Lord, merciful Lord, at last 1 0, if you knew what it was to have even one weight lifted off, among all my heavy burdens, and that weight the hardest to bear I God forgive me that it should have been so I 0, I can breathe freely now again, that I know I am not suspected by you." " By you? " Tom could not but see what, after all, no human being can conceal, that Grace cared for him. And the devil came and tempted him once more ; but this time it was in vain. Tom's better angel had returned ; Grace's ten- der guilelessness,which would with too many men only have marked her out as the easier prey, was to him as a sacred shield before her innocence. So noble, so enthusiastic, go pure 1 He could not play the villain with that woman. But there was plainly a mystery. What were the bur- dens, heavier even than unjust suspicion, of which she had spoken ? There was no harm in asking. "But, Grace — Miss Harvey — you will not be angry with me if I ask ? — why speak so often, as if finding this money depended on you alone ? You wish me to recover 22 254 THE DOCTOR AT BAY. it, I know, a-jid, if you can counsel me, why not do so ? Why not tell me whom you suspect ? " Her old wild terror returned in an instant. She stopped short — " Suspect ? I suspect ? 0, I have suspected too many already ! Suspected till I began to hate my fellow-crea- tures — hate life itself, when I fancied that I saw 'thief written on every forehead. 0, do not ask me to suspect any more I " Tom was silent. " 0," she cried, after a moment's pause — " 0, thai we were back in those old times I have read of, when they used to put people to the torture to make them con fess ! " " Why, in Heaven's name ? " " Because then I should have been tortured, and have confessed it, true or false, in the agony, and have been hanged. They used to hang them then, and put them out of their misery ; and I should have been put out of mine, and no one have been blamed but me for evermore." "You forget," said Tom, lost in wonder, "that then I should have blamed you, as well as every one else." "True ; yes, it was a foolish, faithless word. I did not take it, and it would have been no good to my soul to say I did. Lies cannot prosper, cannot prosper, Mr. Thurnall ! " and she stopped short again. " What, my dear Grace ? " said he, kindly enough ; for be began to fear that she was losing her wits. " I saved your life ! " " You did, Grace." " Then, I never thought to ask for payment ; but, 0, 1 must now. Will you promise me one thing in return ? " "What you will, as I am a man and a gentleman; I can trust you to ask nothing which is not worthy of you." Tom spoke truth. He felt — perhaps love made him feel !■*, all the more easily — that, whatever was behind, he was safe in that woman's hands. " Then promise me that you will wait one month, onlj one month : ask no questions ; mention nothing to any living soul. And if, before that time, I do not bring you that belt back, send me to Bodmin jail, and let me bear my pun* 1 ishraent." "I promise," said Tom. And the two walked on again in silence, till they neared the head of the village. THE DOCTOR AT BAT. 25.", Then Grace went forward, like Nausicaa when she left Ulysses, lest the townsfolk should talk ; and Tom sat down upon a bank and watched her figure vanishing in the dusk Much he puzzled, hunting up and dovfu in his cunning head for an explanation of the mystery. At last he found one, which seemed to fit the facts so well, that he rose with a whistle of satisfaction, and walked homewards. Evidently, her mother had stolen the belt ; and Grace was, if not a repentant accomplice, — for that he could not believe, — at least aware of the fact. " Well, it is a hard knot for her to untie, poor child ; and, on the strength of having saved my Kfe, she shall untie it her own way. I can wait. I hope the money won't be spent meanwhile, though, and the empty leather returned to me when wanted no longer. However, that 's done already, if done at all. I was a fool for not acting at once ; • — a double fool for suspecting her ! Ass that I was, to take up with a false scent, and throw myself ofi' the true one I My everlasting unbelief in people has punished itself this time. I might have got a search-warrant three months ago, and had that old witch safe in the bilboes. But no — I might not have found it, after all, and there would have been only an esclandre ; and, if I know that girl's heart, she would have been ten times more miserable for her mother than for herself, — so it 's as well as it is. Besides, it 's really good fun to watch how such a pretty plot will work itself out ; — as good as a pack of harriers with a cold scent and a squatted hare. So, live and let live. Only, Thomas Thurnall, if you go for to come for to go for to make such an abominable ass of yourself with that young lady any more, like a miserable school-boy, you will be pleased to make tracks, and vanish out of these parts forever I For my purse can't afford to have you marrying a schoolmis- tress in your impoverished old age ; and my character, which also is my purse, can't afford worse." One word of Grace's had fixed itself in Tom's memory. What did she mean by 'Iher.two? " He contrived to ask WllRs thaTvery evening. " 0, don't you know, sir ? She had a young brothei drowned, a long while ago, when she was sixteen or so. He went out fishing on the Sabbath, with another like him, and were swamped. Wild young lads both, as lads will be. But she, sweet maid, took it so to heart, that sha never held up her head since ; nor will, I think at times, to her dying day." 256 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. " Humph ! was she fond of the other lad, then f " "Sir," said Willis, "I don't think it's fair like — no( decent, if you 'U excuse an old sailor — to talk about young maids' affairs, that they wouldn't talk of themselves, per- haps not even to themselves. So I never asked any ques- tions myself." " And think it rude in me to ask any. Well,! believe you 're right, good old gentleman that you are. What a nobleman you 'd have made, if you had had the luck to have been born in that station of life I " ■ " I have found it too much trouble, in doing my duty in my humble place, to wish to be in any higher one." " So I " thought Tom to himself, " a girl's fancy ; but it explains so much in the character, especially when the tem- perament is melancholic. However, to quote Solomon once more, ' A live dog is better than a dead lion ; ' and I have not much to fear }i:om a rival who has been washed out of this world ten years since. Heyday I rival ! quotha ? Tom Thurnall, you are going to make a fool of yourself. You must go, sir ! I warn you 1 you must flee, till you have recovered your senses." There appeared the next morning in Tom's shop a new phenomenon. A smart youth, dressed in what he consid- ered to be the newest London fashion, but which was really that translation of last year's fashion which happened to be current in the windows of the Bodmin tailors. Tom knew him by sight and name — one Mc!_Cjfigd, a squireen like Trebooze, and an especial friend of Trebooze's, under whose tutelage he had learned to smoke cavendish assiduously from the age of fifteen, thereby improving neither his stat- ure, nor his digestion, his nerves, nor the intelligence of his countenance. He entered with a lofty air, and paused a while as he spoke. "Is it possible," said Tom to himself, "that Trebooze has sent me a challenge ? It would be too good fun. I '11 wait and see." So he went on rolling pills. "I say, sir," quoth the youth, who had determined, as an owner of land, to treat the doctor duly de haut en has, and had a vague notion that a liberal use of the word " Sir " would both help thereto and be consonant with pro- fessional style of duel diplomacy, whereof he had read in novels. Tom turned slowly, and then took a long look at him over the counter through half-shut eyelids, with c'nin THE DOCTOR AT BAT. 257 Upraised, as if he had been suddenly afflicted with short Bight, and worked on meanwhile steadily at his pills " That is, I wish — to speak to you, sir — ahem ! " went on Mr. Creed, being gradually but surely discomfited by Tom's steady gaze. "Don't trouble yourself, sir; I see your case in your face. A sligiit nervous affection ; will pass as the diges- tion improves. I will make you up a set of pills for the night ; but I should advise a little ammonia and valerian at once. May I mix it ? " " Sir I you mistake me, sir I " " Not in the least ; you have brought me a challenge from Mr. Trebooze." " I have, sir ! " said the youth, with a grand air, at once relieved by having the awful words said for him, and exalted by the dignity of his first, and perhaps last, employment in that line. " Well, sir," said Tom, deliberately, " Mr. Trebooze does me a kindness for which I cannot sufficiently thank him, and you also, as his second. It is six full months since I fought, and I was getting hardly to know myself again." " You will have to fight now, sir ! " said the youth, try- ing to brazen off by his discourtesy increasing suspicion that he had " caught a Tartar." " Of course, of course. And of course, too, I fight you afterwards." "I — I, sir? I am Mr. Trebooze's friend, his second, sir. I do not seem to understand, sir ! " " Pardon me, young gentleman," said Tom, in a very quiet, determined voice ; "it is I who have a right to tell you that you do not understand in such matters as these. I had fought my man, and more than one of them, while you were eating blackberries in a short jacket." " What do you mean, sir ? " quoth the youth in fury ; and began swearing a little. "Simple fact. Are you not about twenty-three years old ? " " What is that to you, sir ? " " No business of mine, of course. You may be growing into your second childhood for aught I care ; but if, as 1 guess, you are about twenty-three, I, as I know, am thirty- six ; then I fought my first duel when you were five years old, and my tenth, I should say, when you were fifteen ; at which time, I suppose, you were not ashamed either of the jacket or the blackberries." 22* 258 THE DOCTOR AT BAT. "You will find me a man now, sir, at all eve.its," said Creed, justly wroth at what was, after all, a sophism ; foi if a man is not a man at twenty, he never will be one. " Tant mieux. You know, I suppose, that, as the chal- lenged, I have the choice of weapons? " "Of course, sir," said Creed, in an off-hand, generous tone, because he did not very clearly know. " Then, sir, I always fight across a handkerchief. You will toll Mr. Trebooze so ; he is, I really believe, a brave man, and will accept the terms. You will tell yourself the same, whether you be a brave man or not." The youth lost the last words in those which went before them. He was no coward ; would have stood up to be shot at, at fifteen paces, like any one else ; but the deliberate butchery of fighting across a handkerchief — " Do I understand you, sir ? " " That depends on whether yon are clever enough, or not, to comprehend your native tongue. Across a hand- kerchief, I say ; do you hear that ? " and Tom rolled on a* his pills. "I do." " And when I have fought him, I fight you ! " and the pills rolled steadily at the same pace. " But — sir? — why — sir ? " " Because," said Tom, looking him fiill in the face, " be- cause you, calling yourself a gentleman, and being, more shame for you, one by birth, dare to come here, for a fool- ish, vulgar superstition called honor, to ask me, a quiet medical man, to go and be shot at by a man whom you know to be a drunken, profligate, blackguard, simply be- cause, as you know as well as I, I interfered to prevent his insulting a poor helpless girl, and in so doing was forced to give him what you, if you are (as I believe) a gentleman, would have given him also, in my place." " I don't understand you, sir I " said the lad, blushing all the while, as one honestly conscience-stricken ; for Tom had spoken the exact truth, and he knew it. " Don't lie, sir, and tell me that you don't understand ; you understand every word which I have spoken, and yoc know that it is true." "Lie?" " Yes, lie. Look you, sir ; I have no wish to fight — " " You will fight, though, whether you wish it or not,' said the youth, with a hysterical laugh, meant to be defiant THE nOCTOE AT BAY. 259 " But — I can enuff a candle ; I can split a bullet on a penknife at fifteen paces." " Do you mean to frighten us by boasting ? We shall see what you can do when you come on the ground." " Across a handkerchief, but on no other condition ; and^ unless you will accept that condition, I will assuredly, the next time I see you, be we where we may, treat you as I treated your friend Mr. Trebooze. — I '11 do it now 1 Get out of my shop, sir I What do you want here, interfering with my honest business ? " And, to the astonishment of Mr. Trebooze's second, Tom vaulted clean over the counter, and rushed at him open- mouthed. Sacred be the honor of the gallant West country ; but, " both being friends," as Aristotle has it, " it is a sacred duty to speak the truth." Mr. Creed vanished through the open door. " I rid myself of the fellow jollily," said Tom to Frank that day, after telling him the whole story. " And no credit to me. I saw from the minute he came in there was no fight in him." " But, suppose he had accepted, or suppose Trebooze accepts still ? " "There was my game — to frighten him. He'll take care Trebooze shan't fight, for he knows that he must fight next. He '11 go home and patch the matter up, trust him. Meanwhile, the oaf had not even savoir faire enough to ask for my second. Lucky for me ; for I don't know where to have found one, save the lieutenant ; and, though he would have gone out safe enough, it would have been a bore for the good old fellow." " And," said Prank, utterly taken aback by Tom's busi ness-like levity, "you would actually have stood to shoot, and be shot at, across a handkerchief? " Tom stuck out his great chin, and looked at him with one of his quaint sidelong moves. " You are my very good friend, sir, but not my father- confessor." " I know that ; but, really, as a mere question of human curiosity — " " 0, if you ask me on the human ground, and not on the sacerdotal, I '11 tell you. I 've tried it twice, and I should be sorry to try it again ; though it 's a very easy dodge. Keep your right elbow up — up to your ear, — and, tha 260 THE DOCTOR AT BAY. mofient you heai the word, fire. A high elbow and a cool heart — that 's all ; and that wins." " Wins ? Good heavens ! As you are here alive, you ranst have killed your man ? " " No. I only shot my men each through the body ; and ea'-,h of them deserved it ; but it is an ugly chance ; I should have been sorry to try it on that yokel. The boy may make a man yet. And what 's more," said Tom, bursting into a great laugh, " he will make a man, and go down to his fathers in peace, quant a moi ; and so will that wretched Trebooze. For I '11 bet you my head to a China orange, I hear no more of this matter ; and don't even lose Trebooze's custom." " Upon my word, I envy your sanguine temperament 1 " " Mr. Headley, I shall quietly make my call at Trebooze to-morrow, as if nothing had happened. What will you bet me that I am not received as usual? " " I never bet," said Frank. " Then you do well. It is a foolish and a dirty trick ; playing with edge-tools, and cutting one's own fingers. Nevertheless, I speak truth, as you will see." " You are a most extraordinary man. All this is so con- trary to your usual caution." " When you are driven against the ropes, ' hit out,' is the old rule of Fistiana and common sense. It is an extreme bore ; all the more reason for showing such an ugly front, as to give people no chance of its happening again. Noth- ing so dangerous as half measures, Headley. ' Resist the devil, and he will flee from you,' your creed says. Mine only translates it into practice." " I have no liking for half measures myself." " Did you ever," said Tom, " hear the story of the two Sandhurst broomsquires ? " " Broomsquires?" " So we call, in Berkshire, squatters on the moor who live by tjing heath into brooms. Two of them met in Read- jng market once, and fell out : — " ' How ever do you manage to sell your brooms for three-halfpence ? I steals the heth, and I steals the binds, and I steals the handles ; and yet I can't aford to sell 'em under twopence.' " ' Ah, but you see,' says the other, ' I steals mine ready made.' " Moral — If you 're going to do a thing, do it o'ltnght." That very evening, Tom came in again. THE DOCTOR AT BAY. 261 " Well ; I 've been to Trebooze." " And fared, how ? " '' JiiSt as I warned you. Inquired into his symptoms ; prescribed for his digestion — if he goes on as he is doing, he will soon have none left to prescribe for ; and, finally, plastered, with a sublime generosity, the nose which my own knuckles had contused." " Impossible I you are the most miraculously impudent of men I " " Pish I simple common sense. I knew that Mrs. Tre- booze would suspect that the world had heard of his mishap, and took care to let her know that I knew, by coming up to inquire for him." " Guibono?" " Power. To have them, or any one, a little more in my power. Next, I knew that he dared not fly out at me, for fear I should tell Mrs. Trebooze what he had been after — you see ? Ah 1 it was delicious, to have the great oaf sitting sulking under my fingers, longing to knock my head ofi', and I plastering away, with words of deepest astonish- ment and condolence. I verily believe that, before we parted, I had persuaded him that his black eye proceeded entirely from his having run up against a tree in the dark." " Well," said Prank, half sadly, though enjoying the joke in spite of himself, " I cannot help thinking it would have been a fit moment for giving the poor wretch a more solemn lesson." "My dear sir, a good licking — and he had one, and something over — is the best lesson for that manner of biped. That 's the way to school him ; but, as we are on lessons, I '11 give you a hint." " Go on, model of self-sufficiency 1 " said Prank. " Scoff at me if you will, I am proof. But hearken — you must n't turn out that schoolmistress. She 's an angel, and T know it ; and if I say so of any human being, you may be Bure I have pretty good reasons." " 1 am beginning to be of your mind myself," said frank CHAPTER XV. THE CKUISE OF THE WATEEWITCH. The middle of August is come at last ; and -yith it the Bolemn day on which Frederick Viscount Scoutbush may be expected to revisit the home of his ancestors. Elsley has gradually made up his mind to the inevitable, with a stately sulkiness ; and comforts himself, as the time draws near, with the thought that, after all, his brother-in-law is not a very formidable personage. But, to the population of Aberalva in general, the coming event is one of awful jubilation. The shipping is all decked with flags ; all the Sunday clothes have been looked out, and many a yard of new ribbon and pound of bad powder bought ; there have been arrangements for a procession, which could not be got up ; for a speech, which nobody would undertake to pronounce ; and, lastly, for a dinner, about which last there was no hanging back. Yea, also, they have hired from Carcarrow Ohurch-town, sackbut, psaltery, dulcimer, and all kinds of music ; for Frank has put down the old choir band at Aberalva, — another of his mistakes, — and there is but one fiddle and a clarionet now left in all the town. So the said town waits all the day on liptoe, ready to worship, till out of the soft brown haze the stately Waterwitch comes sliding in, like a white ghost, to fold her vwngs in Alberalva bay. And at that sight the town is all astir. Fishermen shake themselves up out of their mid-day snooze, to admire the beauty, as she slips on and on through water smooth as glass, her hull hidden by the vast curve of the balloon-jib, and her broad wings boomed out alow and aloft, till it seems marvellous how that vast screen does not topple headlong, instead of floating (as it seems) self-supported above its image in the mirror. Women hurry to put on their best bonnets ; the sexton toddles rnp with the church-key in his nand, and the ringers at his heels ; the coast-guard lieuten- ant bustles down to the Manby's mortar, which he has (262) THE URDISE OP THE ■WA.TBRWITCH. '2G'3 hauled out in readiness on the pebbles. Old Willis hoists a flag before his house, and half a dozen merchant-skippers do the same. Bang goes the harmless mortar, burning the British nation's powder without leave or license ; and all the rocks and woods catch up the echo, and kick it from clifi" to cliff, playing at football with it till its breath is beaten out ; a rolling fire of old muskets and bird-pieces crackles along the shore, and in five minutes a poor lad has blown a ramrod through his hand. Never mind, lords do not visit Penalva every day. Out burst the bells above vrith merry peal ; Lord Scoutbush and the Waterwitch are duly "rung in" to the home of his lordship's ancestors ; and lie is received, as he scrambles up the pier steps from his boat, by the curate, the church-wardens, .the lieutenant, and old Tardrew, backed by half a dozen ancient sons of Anak, lineal descendants of the free fishermen to whom, six hundred years before, St. Just of Penalva did grant privi- leges hard to spell, and harder to understand, on the condition of receiving, whensoever he should land at the quay head, three brass farthings from the "free fishermen of Aberalva." Scoutbush shakes hands with curate, lieutenant, Tardrew church-wardens ; and then come forward the three farthings, in an ancient leather purse. " Hope your lordship will do us the honor to shake hands with us, too ; we are your lordship's free fishermen, as we have been your forefathers'," says a magnificent old man, gracefully acknowledging the feudal tie, while he claims the exemption. Little Scoutbush, who is the kindest-hearted of men, clasps the great brown fist in his little white one, and shakes hands heartily with every one of them, saying: " If your forefathers were as much taller than mine, as you are than me, gentlemen, I should n't wonder if they took their ovrn freedom, without asking his leave for it I " A lord who begins his progress with a jest ! That is the sort of aristocrat to rule in Aberalva 1 And all agree that evening, at the Mariners' Rest, that his lordship is as nice a young gentleman as ever trod deal board, and deserves such a yacht as he 's got, and long may he sail her ! How easy it is to buy the love of men 1 Gold will not do it ; but there is a little .angel, or may be, in the cornet of every man's eye, who is worth more than gold, and can do it free of all charges ; unless a man drives him out, and "hates his brother, and so walks in darkness, not know 264 THE CRUISE OF THE WATEEWITCH. ing whither he goeth," but running full butt against men's prejudices, and treading on their corns, till they kno ;k liim down in despair — and all just because he will not open his eyes, and use the light which comes by common human good-nature ! Presently Tom hurries up, having been originally one of the deputation, but kept by the necessity of binding up the three fingers which the ramrod had spared to poor Jem Burman's hand. He bows, and the lieutenant — who (Frank being a little shy) acts as her majesty's representa- tive — introduces him as "deputy medical man to our district of the union, sir — Mr. Thurnall." " Dr. Heale was to have been here, by-the-by. Where is Dr. Heale ? " says some one. "Very sorry, my lord ; I can answer for him — profes- sional calls, I don't doubt — nobody more devoted to your lordship." One need not inquire where Dr. Heale was ; but if elderly men will drink much brandy and water in hot summer days, after a heavy early dinner, then will those men be too late both for deputations and for more important employments. " Never mind the doctor ; dare say he's asleep after din- ner ; do him good ! " says the viscount, hitting the mark with a random shot ; and thereby raising hig repute for sagacity immensely with his audience, who laugh outright. " Ah I Is it so, then ? But — Mr. Thurnall, I think you said ? — I am glad to make your acquaintance, sir. I have heard your name often ; you are my friend Mellot^s old I'riend, are you not ? " "I am a very old friend of Claude Mellot's." " Well, and there 4ie_is_on board, andwiUbe^dehghted^ to do the honors of my yacht to you whenever you like to visit her. You and I must know each other better, sir I " Tom bows low — his lordship does him too much honor ; the cunning fellow knows that his fortune is made in Abe- ralva, if he chooses to work it out ; but he humbly slips into the rear, for Frank has to be supported, not being over popular ; and the lieutenant may " turn crusty," unless he has his lordship to himself, before the gaze of assembled Aberalva. Scoutbush progresses up the street, bowing right and left, and stopped half a dozen times by red-cloaked old women, who curtsey under his nose, and will needs inform aim how they knew his grandfather, or nursed his uncle, oi hovr his " dear mother, God rest her soul, gave me this verj THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. afO cloak as I have on," and so forth ; till Scoutbush comes to the conclusion that they are a very loving and lovable set of people — as indeed they are — and his heart smites him somewhat for not having seen more of them in j ast years. No sooner is Thurnall released, than he is oif to the yacht as fast as oars can. take him, and in Claude's arms. " Now I " (after all salutations and inquiries have been gone through), " Let me introduce you to Major Campbell " And Tom was presented' to a tall and thin personage, who sat at the cabin table, bending over a microscope. " Excuse my rising," said he, holding out a left hand, for the right was busy. " A single jar will give me ten minutes' work to do again. I am delighted to meet you ; Mellot has often spoken to me of you as a man who has seen more, and faced death more carelessly than most men." " Mellot flatters, sir. Whatsoever I have done, I have given up being careless about death ; for I have some one beside myself to live for." " Married at last ? Has Diogenes found his Aspasia ? " cried Claude. Tom did not laugh. " Since my brothers died, Claude, the old gentleman has cnly me to look to. You seem to be a naturalist, sir." " A dabbler," said the major, with eye and hand still basy. " I ought not to begin our acquaintance by doubting your word ; but these things are no dabbler's work ; " and Tom pointed tQ_spme exquisite_photographs of minute coral- lines, evidently^aken unaerThe microscope. " They are Mellot's." " Mellot turned man of science ? Impossible I " "No; only photographer. I am tired of painting nature clumsily, and then seeing a sun-picture outdo all my efforts — so I am turned photographer, and have made a vow against painting for three yea,rs and a day." " Why, the photographs only give you light and shade." " They will give you color, too, before seven years are OT er — and that is more than I can do, or any one else. No ; I yield to the new dynasty. The artist's occupation is gone henceforth, and the painter's studio, like ' all charms, must fly, at the mere touch of cold philosophy.' So Major Campbell prepares the charming little cockyoly birds, and I call the sun in to immortalize them." " And perfectly you are succeeding ! They are quite 23 266 THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. Qew to me, recollect. When I left Melbourne, the art had hardly risen there above guinea portraits of bearded despe- radoes, a nugget in one hand, and a 50Z. note in the other ; but this is a new, and what a forward step for science 1 " " You are a naturalist, then ? " said Campbell, looking up with interest. " All my profession are, more or less," said Tom, care- lessly ; " and I have been lucky enough here to fall on untrodden ground, and have hunted up a few sea-monsters this summer." " Really ? You can tell one where to search then, and where to dredge, I hope. I have set my heart on a foi-t- night's work here, and have been dreaming at night, like a ctftld before a Twelfth=ntght party, of all sorts of-impOssibte hydxaSr-^orgons, and chimeras dire, fished up from your western deeps." " I have none of them ; but I can give you Turbinolia Milletiana and Zoanthus Couchii. I have a party of the last gentlemen alive on shore." The major's face worked with almost childish delight. " But I shall be robbing you." " They cost me nothing, my dear sir. I did very well, moreover, without them, for five-and-thirty years ; and I may do equally well for five-and-thirty more." " I ought to be able to say the same, surely," answered the major, composing his face again, and rising carefully. " I have to thank you exceedingly, my dear sir, for your prompt generosity ; but it is better discipline for a man, in many ways, to find things for himself than to have them put into his hands. So, with a thousand thanks, you shall let me see if I can dredge a Turbinolia for myself." This was spoken with so sweet and polished a modulation, and yet so sadly and severely withal, that Tom looked at the speaker with interest. He was a very tall and powerful man, and would have been a very handsome man, both in face and figure, but for the high cheekbone, long neck, and narrow shoulders, so often seen north of Tweed. His brow was very high and full ; his eyts — grave, but very gentle, with large droop- ing eyelids — were buried under shaggy gray eyebrows. His mouth was gentle as his eyes ; but compressed, per- haps by the habit of command, perhaps by secret sorrow ; for, of that, too, as well as of intellect and magnanimity, Thurnall thought he could discern the traces. His face waF l:rouzeof-the-way little world as that of Aberalva must be ? " " She is a good stalking-horse anywhere ; " and Tom de- tailed, with plenty of humor, the efiect of his microscope and his lecture on the drops of water. But his wit seemed THK CRUISE OP THE. WATEBWITCH. 269 BO much lost on Campbell, that he at last stopped all but short, not quite sure that he had not taken a liberty. " No ; go on, I beg you ; and do not fancy that I am not interested and amused too, because my laughing muscles are a little stiff from want of use. Perhaps, too, I am apt to take things too much au grand serieux ; but I could not help thinking, while you were speaking, how sad it was that people were utterly ignorant of matters so vitally neces- saryTo health." '^ And I, perhaps, ought not to jest over the subject ; but, indeed, with cholera staring us in the face here, I must in- dulge in some emotion ; and, as it is unprofessional to weep, I must laugh as long as I dare." The major dropped his coffee-cup upon the floor, and looked at Thurnall with so horrified a gaze, that Tom could hardly believe him to be the same man. Then, recollecting himself, he darted down upon the remains of his cup ; and, looking up again, — "A thousand pardons; but — did I hear you aright ? — cholera staring us in the face ? " " How can it be otherwise? It is drawing steadily on from the eastward week by week ; and, in the present state of the town, nothing but some miraculous caprice of Damo Fortune's can deliver us." " Don't talk of fortune, sir, at such a moment I Talk of God 1 " said the major, rising from his chair, and pacing the room. " It is too horrible I — intolerable! When do you expect it here ? " " Within the month, perhaps, — hardly before. I should have warned you of the danger, I assure you, had I not understood from you that you were only going to stay a fortnight." The major made an impatient gesture. " Do you fancy that I am afraid for myself? No ; but the thought of its coming to — to the poor people in the town, you know. It is too dreadful I I have seen it in India — among my own men — among the natives. Good heavens I I never shall forget — and to meet the fiend again here, of all places in the world I I fancied it so clean, an J healthy, swept by fresh sea-breezes." " And by nothing else ? A half-hour's walk round would convince you, sir ; I only wish that you could persuade his I'ordship to accompany you." " Scoutbush ? Of course he will — he shall — he must 1 3ood heavens I whose concern is it more than his ? You 23* 270 THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. Ihink, tlien, that there is a chance of staving it off — by cleansing, I mean ? " " If we have heavy rains during the next week or two, yes. If this drought last, better leave ill alone ; we shall only provoke the devil by stirring him up." "You speak confidently," said the major, gradually regain- ing his own self-possession, as he saw Tom so self-possessed. "Have you — allow me to ask so important a question — have you seen much of cholera ? " " I have worked through three. At_Eaxi8r at St. Peters- burg, and in the Westjjidies ; and I have been thinking up my old experien5eTorthe last six weeks, foreseeing what would come." " I am satisfied, sir ; perhaps I ought to ask your pardon for the question." " Not at all. How can you trust a man unless you know him?" " And you expect it within the month ? You shall go with me to Lord Scoutbush to-morrow ; and — and now we will talk of something more pleasant." And he began again upon the zoophytes. Tom, as they chatted on, could not help wondering at the major's unexpected passion ; and could not help remarking, also, that in spite of his desire to be agreeable, and to inter- est his guest in his scientific discoveries, he was yet dis- traught, and full of other thoughts. What could be the meaning of it ? Was it mere excess of human sympathy ? The countenance hardly betokened that ; but still, who can trust altogether the expression of a weather-hardened vis- age of forty-five ? So the doctor set it down .to tenderness of heart, till a fresh vista opened on him. Major Campbell, he soon found, was as fond of insects as of sea-monsters ; and he began inquiring about the woods, the heaths, the climate, which seemed to the doctor, for a long time, to mean nothing more than the question which he put plainly, " Where have I a chance of rare insects ? " But he seemed, after a while, to be trying to learn the geog- raphy of the parish in detail, and especially of the ground round Vavasour's house. " However, it is no business of mine," thought Thurnall, and told him all he wanted, till — " Then the house lies quite in the bottom of the glen ? Is there a good fall to the stream — for a stream I suppose there is ? " Thurnall shook his head. " Cold, boggy stewponds in tha garden, such as our ancestors loved, damming up the stream THE CRUISE OF THE WATEBWITCH. 271 Thoy must needs have fish in Lent, we know ; and paid the penalty of it by ague and fever." " Stewponds damming up the stream ? Scoutbush ought to drain them instantly ! " said the major, half to himself. " But, still, the house lies high — with regard to the town, I mean. No chance of malaria coming up ? " " Upon my word, sir, as a professional man, that is a Idling that I dare not say. The chances are not great — the house is two hundred yards from the nearest cottage ; but, if there be an east wind — " " I cannot bear this any longer. It is perfect madness ! '' " I trust, sir, that you do not think that I have neglected the matter. I have pointed it all out, I assure you, to Mr. Vavasour." " And it is not altered 1 " " I believe it is to be altered ; that is — the truth is, sir^ that Mr. Vavasour shrinks so much from the very notion of cholera, that — " " That he does not like to do anything which may look like believing in its possibility ? " "He says," quoth Tom, parrying the question, but in a somewhat dry tone, " that he is afraid of alarming Mrs. Vavasour and the servants." The major said something under his breath, which Tom did not catch, and then, in an appeased tone of voice, "Well, that is at least a fault on the right side. Mrs. Vavasour's brother, as owner of the place, is, of course, the proper person to make the house fit for habitation." And he relapsed into silence ; while Thurnall, who suspected more than met the ear, rose to depart. " Are you going ? It is not late ; not ten o'clock yet." " A medical man, who may be called up at any moment, must make sure of his ' beautj'-sleep.' " " I will walk with you, and smoke my last cigar." So they went out, and up to Heale's. Tom went in ; but he observed that his companion, after standing a while in the street irresolutely, went on up the hill, and, as far as he could see, turned up the lane to Vavasour's. "~A>aayetery here," thought-he^ as_ he put matters to rights in the surgery ere going up stairs. "A mystery, which I may as well fathom. It may be of use to poor Tom, as most other mysteries are. That is, though, if I can do it honorably ; for the man is a gallant gentleman. I like him, and I am inclined to trust him. Whatsoever liig secret is, I don't think that it is one which he need b« 272 THE CRUISE OP THE WATERWITCH. ashamed of. Still, 'there's a deal of human natur' in man,' and there may be in him ; and what matter if there is?" Half an hour afterwards the major returned, took the sandle from Grace, who was sitting up for him, and went up stairs with a gentle " Good-night," but without lookicg at her. He sat down at the open window, and looked out, leaning on the sill. " Well, I was too late ; I dare say there was some piir- pose in it. When shall I learn to believe that God takes better care of his own than I can do ? I was faithless and impatient to-night. I am afraid I betrayed myself before that man. He looks like one, certainly, who could be trusted with a secret ; yet I had rather that he had not mine. It is my own fault, like everything else I Foolish old fellow that you are, fretting and fussing to the end ! Is not that scene a message from above, saying, ' Be still, and know that I am God ' ? " And the major looked out upon the summer sea, lit by a million globes of living fire, and then upon the waves which broke in flame upon the beach, and then up to the spangled stars above. " What do I know of these, with all my knowing? Not even a twentieth part of those medusae, or one in each thou- sand of those sparks among the foam. Perhaps I need not know And yet, why was the thirst awakened in me, save to be satisfied at last ? Perhaps to become more delicious, intense, with every fresh delicious draught of knowledge. .... JDeatL^jDeautifolj^jvise, kind Death, when will you come and tell me what I want to know ? I courted you once and many a time, brave old Death, only to give rest to the weary. That was a coward's wish, and so you would not come. I ran you close in Affghanistan, old Death, and at Sobraon, too, I was not far behind you ; and I thought I had you safe among that jungle grass at Alliwall ; but you slipped through my hand, — I was not worthy of you. And now I will not hunt you any more, old Death ; do you bide your time, and I mine ; though who knows if I may not meet you here ? Only, when you come, give me not rest, but work. Give work to the idle, freedom to the chained, sight to the blind 1 Tell me a little about finer things than zoophytes — perhaps about the zoophytes as well — and you shall still be brave old Death, my good camp-comrade now for many a year " THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCU. 273 Was Major Campbell mad ? That depends upon the waj IQ v/hich the reader may choose to define the adjective. ^ 5|£ *j£ ^ 5|i tC Meanwhile Scouthush had walked into Penalva Court — where an affecting scene of reconciliation took place ? Not in the least. Scoutbush kissed Lucia, shook hands with Elsley, hugged the children, and then settled himself in an arm-chair, and talked about the weather, exactlj' as if ho had been running in and out of the hoase every week for the last three years, and so the matter was done ; and, for the first time, a partie carree was assembled in the dining-room. The evening passed off at first as uncomfortably as it could, where three out of the four were well-bred people. Elsley was, of course, shy before Lord Scoutbush, and Scoutbush was equally shy before Elsley, though as civil as possible to him, for the little fellow stood in extreme awe of Elsley's talents, and was afraid of opening his lipa before a poet. Lucia was nervous for both their sakes, aa well she might be ; and Valencia had to make all the talk- ing, and succeeded capitally in drawing out both her brother and her brother-in-law, till both of them found the othei', on the whole, more like other people than he had expected. The next morning's breakfast, therefore, was easy and gracious enough ; and, when it was over, and Lucia fled to household matters — " You smoke. Vavasour? " asked Scoutbush. Vavasour did not smoke. "Really? I thought poets always smoked. You will not forbid my having a cigar in your garden, nevertheless, I suppose ? Do walk round with me, too, and show me the place, unless you are going to be busy." 0, no ; Elsley was at Lord Scoutbush's service, of course, and had really nothing to do. So out they went. " Charming old pigeon-hole it is ! " said its owner. " I have not seen it since I went into the Guards ; Campbell says it 's a shame of me, and so it is one, 1 suppose ; but how beautiful you have made the garden look ! " "Lucia is very fond of gardening," said Elsley, who waa very fond of it also, and had great taste therein ; but he was afiraid to confess any such tastes before a man who, he thought, would not understand him. " And that fine old wood — full of cocks it used to be — ] hope you worked it well last year." 274 THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH Elsley did not shoot ; but he had heard that there was plenty of game there. "Plenty of cocks," said his guest, correcting him ; " but for game, the less we say about that the better. I really wonder you do not shoot ; it fills up time so in tlie winter." " There is really no winter to fill up here, thanks to this delicious climate ; and I have my books." " Ah ! I wish I had. I wish, heartily," said he, in a con- fidential tone, "you, or Campbell, or some of your clever men, would sell me a little of their book-learning ; as Va- lencia says to me, ' Brains are so common in the world, 1 wonder how none fell to your share.' " " I do not think that they are an article which is for sale, if Solomon is to be believed." "And if they were, I couldn't afibrd to buy, with this Irish Encumbered Estates' Bill. But now, this is one thing I wanted to say. Is everything here just as you would wish ? Of course, no one could wish a better tenant ; but any repairs, you know, or improvements, which I ought to do of course ? Only tell me what you think should be done ; for, of course, you know more about these things than I do — can't know less." " Nothing, I assure you. Lord Scoutbush. I have alwaya left those matters to Mr. Tardrew." " Ah 1 but, my dear fellow, you shouldn't do that. He is such a screw, as all honest stewards are. Screws me, I know, and, I dare say, has screwed you, too." " Never, I assure you. I never gave him the opportu- uity, and he has been most civil." " Well, in future, just order him to do what you like, and just as if you were landlord, in fact ; and if the old man haggles, write to me, and I '11 blow him up. Delighted to have a man of taste like you here, who can improve the place for me." " I assure you. Lord Scoutbush, I need nothing, nor does the place. I am a man of very few wants." " I wish I were," sighed Scoutbush, pulling out another of Hudson's highest-priced cigars. " And I am bound to say " — (and here Elsley choked a little, but the viscount's frankness and humility had softened him, and he determined to be very magnanimous) — " I am bound in honor, after owing to your kindness such an ex- quisite retreat, — all that either I or Lucia could have fancied THE CRUISE OI? THE WATERWITCH. 215 for ourselves, and more, — not to trouble you by asking foi little matters which we really do not need." And so Elsley, instead of simply asking to have the house-drains set right,_which„Lord Scoutbush would have had done ~uporv' the spot, chose to be lofty-minded, at the risk of killing his wife and children. " My dear fellow, you really must not ' lord ' me any more ; I hate it. I must be plain Scoutbush here among m\ own people, just as I am in the Guards' mess-room. And as for owing me any, — really, it is we that are in your debt — to see my sister so happy, and such beautifnl children, and so well, too — and, altogether — and Valencia so delighted with your poems — and, and, altogether — " and there Lord Scoutbush stopped, having hoisted, as he considered, the flag of peace once and for all, and very glad that the thing was over. Elsley was going to say something in return ; but his guest turned the conversation as fast as he could. " And, now, I know you want to be busy, though you are too civil to confess it ; and I must be with that old fool Tardrew at ten, to settle acccounts ; he'll scold me if I do not — the precise old pedant ! — just as if I was his own child. Good- by." "Where are you going, Frederick?" called Lucia, from the window. She had been watching the interview anx- iously enough, and could see that it had ended well. "To old Stot-and-kye, at the farm; do you want any- thing ? " " No ; only I thought you might be going to the yacht ; and Valencia would have walked down with you. She wants to find Major Campbell." " I want to scold Major Campbell," said Valencia, trip- ping out on the lawn in her walking-dress. " Why has he not been here an hour ago ? I will undertake to say that he was up at four this morning." " He waits to be invited, I suppose," said Scoutbush. " I suppose I must do it," said Elsley to himself, sighing. " Just like his primness," said Valencia. " I shall go down and bring him up myself this minute, and Mr. Vava- sour shall come with me. Of course you will ! You do not know what a delightful person he is, when once you can break the ice." Elsley, like most vain men, was of a jealous temper ; and Valencia's eagerness to see Major Campbell jarred on him. He wanted to keep the exquisite creature to himself, and 276 THE CRUISE OF THE WATEKWITCH. HeaJley ^ras quite enough of an intruder already. Besivlc the accounts of a new comer, his learning, his militarj prowess, the reverence with which all, even Scoutbush, evidently regarded him, made him prej)ared to dislike the major ; and all the more, now that he heard that there was an ice-crust to crack. Impulsive men like Elsley, especially when their self-respect and certainty of their own position s not very strong, have instinctively a defiant fear of the trong, calm, self-contained man, especially if he has seen the world ; and Elsley set down Major Campbell as a proud, sarcastic fellow, before whom he must be at the pains of being continually on his guard. He wished him a hundred miles away. However, there was no refusing Valencia anything ; so he got his hat, but with so bad a grace that Valencia saw his chagrin, and fi-om mere naughtiness of heart amused herself with it, by talking all the way of noth- ing but Major Campbell. " And Lucia," she said at last, " will be so glad to see him again ! We knew him so well, you know, in Eaton Square years ago." " Keally," said Elsley, wincing, " I never met him there." He recollected that Lucia had expressed more pleasure at Major Campbell's coming than even at that of her brother ; and a dark, undefined phantom entered his heart, which, though he would have been too proud to confess it to him- self, was none other than jealousy. "0 — did you not ? No ; it was the year before we first knew you. And we used to laugh at him together, behind his back, and christened him the wild Indian, because he was so gauche and shy. He was a major in the Indian army then ; but a few months afterwards he sold out, went into the line — no one could tell why, for he threw away very brilliant prospects, they say, and might have been a general by now, instead of a mere major still. But he is so improved since then ; he is like an elder brother to Scout- bush ; guides him in everything. I call him the blind man, and the major his dog ! " " So much the worse," thought Elsley, who disliked the notion of Campbell's having power over a man to whom he was indebted for his house-room ; but by this time they were at Mrs. Harvey's door. Mrs. Harvey opened it, curtseying to the very ground ; and Valencia ran up stairs, and knocked at the sitting-rooni door herself. " Come in," shouted a preoccupied voice inside. IRh CRUISE OP THK WATEEWITCH. 277 ' Ib that a proper way in which to address a lady, sir ? '■ answered she, putting in her beautiful head. Major Campbell was sitting, Elsley could see, in his shirt E.eeves, cigar in mouth, bent over his microscope ; but, instead of the expected prim voice, he heard a very gay and arch one answer, " Is that a proper way in which to come peeping into an old bachelor's sanctuary, ma'am ? Go away this moment, till I make myself fit to be seen." Valencia shut the door again, laughing. " You seem very intimate with Major Campbell," said Elsley. " Intimate ? I look on him as my father almost. Now may we come in ? " said she, knocking again in pretty petulance. " I want to introduce Mr. Vavasour." " I shall be only too happy," said the major, opening his door (this time with his coat on) ; "there are few persona in the world whom I have more wished to know than Mr. Vavasour." And he held out his hand, and quite led Elsley in. He spoke in a tone of grave interest, looking intently at Elsley as he spoke. Valencia remarked the interest — Elsley only the compliment. "It is a great kindness of you to call on me so soon," said he. " 1 met Mrs. Vavasour several times in years past ; and though I saw very little of her, I saw enough to long much for the acquaintance of the man who has been worthy to become her husband." Elsley blushed, for his conscience smote him a little at that word " worthy," and muttered some common-place civility in return. Valencia saw it, and, attributing it to his usual awkwardness, drew off the conversation to herself. " Eeally, Major Campbell I You bring in Mr. Vavasour, and let me walk behind as I can ; and then let me sit three whole minutes in your house without deigning to speak to me!" " Ah 1 my dear Queen Whims ! " answered he, returning suddenly to his gay tone ; " and how have you been mis- behaving yourself since we met last ? " " I have not been misbehaving myself at all, mon cher Saint Pere, as Mr. Vavasour will answer for me, during the most delightful fortnight I ever spent I " " Delightful indeed I " said Elsley, as he was bound to say ; but he said it with an earnestness which made the major fix his eyes on him. " Why should he not find any and every fortnight as delightful as his last ? " said he to himself; but now Valencia began bantering him about big 24 'ItO THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH, books and his animals ; wanting to look through his micro- scope, pulling off her hat for the purpose, laughing when her curls blinded her, letting them blind her in order to toss them back in the prettiest way, jesting at him about " his old fogies " at the Linnsean Society ; clapping her hands in ecstasy when he answered that they were not old fogies at all, but the most charming set of men in England, and that (with no offence to the name of Scoutbush) he was prouder of being an P.L.S., than if he were a peer of the realm, — and so forth ; all which harmless pleasantry made Elsley cross, and more cross — first, because he did not mix in it ; next, because he could not mix in it if he tried. He liked to be always in the second heaven ; and if other people were anywhere else, he thought them bores. At last, " Now, if you will be good for five minutes," said the major, " I will show you something really beau- tiful." " I can see that," answered she, with the most charming impudence, "in another glass besides your magnifying one." " Be it so ; but look here, and see what an exquisite world there is, of which you never dream ; and which be- haves a great deal better in its station than the world of which you dream ! " When Campbell spoke in that way, Valencia was good at once ; and, as she went obediently to the microscope, she whispered, " Don't be angry with me, mon Saint Pere." " Don't be naughty, then, ma chere enfant," whispered he ; for he saw something about Elsley's face which gave him a painful suspicion. She looked long, and then lifted up her head suddenly — "Do come and look, Mr. Vavasour, at this exquisite little glass fairy, like — I cannot tell what like, but a pure spirit hovering in some nun's dream ! Come ! " Elsley came, and looked ; and when he looked he started, for it was the very same zoophyte which Thurnall had showed him on a certain memorable day. " Where did you find the fairy, mon Saint Pere? " " 1 had no such good fortune. Mr. Thurnall, the doctor, gave it me." " Thurnall? " said she, while Elsley kept still looking, to nide cheeks which were growing very red. " He is such a clever man, they say. Where did you meet him ? I have often thought of asking Mr. Vavasour to invite him up for an evening with his microscope. He eeems so superior THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. 279 to the people round him. It would be a charity, really, Mr, Vavasour." Vavasour kept his eyes fixed on the zoophyte, and said,— " I shall be only too delighted, if you wish it." "You will wish it yourself a second time," chimed in Campbell, " if you try it once. Perhaps you know nothing of him but professionally. Unfortunately for professiona. men, that too often happens." " Know anything of him — I ? I assure you not, save that he attends Mrs. Vavasour and the children," said Vava- sour, looking up at last ; but with an expression of anger which astonished both Valencia and Campbell. Campbell thought that he was too proud to allow rank aa a gentleman to a country doctor ; and despised him from that moment, though as it happened unjustly. But he answered quietly, — " I assure you, whatever some country practitioners may be, the average of them, as far as I have seen, are cleverer men, and even of higher tone, than their neighbors ; and Thurnall is beyond the average ; he is a man of the world, — even too much of one, — and a man of science ; and I fairly confess that, what with his wit, his savoir vivre, and his genial good temper, I have quite fallen in love with him ip a single evening ; we began last night on the microscope, and ended on all heaven and earth." " How I should like to make a third ! " " My dear Queen Whims would hear a great deal of sober sense, then ; at least on one side ; but I shall not ask her ; for Mr. Thurnall andlhave our deep secrets together." ^"SsTpoke the msijor, in tfl5~^S!raple~"wfelr'to exaltrTom in a quarter where he hoped to get him practice ; and his "se- cret" was a mere jest, unnecessary, perhaps, as he thought afterwards, to pass off Tom's want of orthodoxy. " I was a babbler, then," said he to himself the next mo- ment ; " how much better to have simply held my tongue 1 '' " Ah, yes ; I know men have their secrets, as well aa women," said Valencia, for the mere love of saying some- thing ; but, as she looked at Vavasour, she saw an expres- sion in his face which she had never seen before. What was it? — All that one can picture for one's self branded into the countenance of a man unable to repress the least emo- tion, who had worked himself into the belief that Thurnall had betrayed his secret. "My dear Mr. Vavasour," cried Campbell, of course iinable to guess the truth, and supposing vaguely that he 280 THE CRUISE OP THE WATEEWITCH. was " ill ; " "I am sure that — that the sun has overpowered you" (the only possible thing he could think of). "Lie down on the^pfa a minute " (Vavasour was actually reeling with rage and terror)^ "and I will run up to Thurnall's foi sal volatile." Elsley, who thought him the most consummate of hypo- crites, cast on him a look which he intended to have been withering, and rushed out of the room, leaving-the two star- ing at each other. Valencia was half inclined to laugh, knowing Elsley's pet- ulance and vanity ; but the impossibility of guessing a cause kept her quiet. Major Campbell stood for full five minutes ; not as one astounded, but as one in deep and anxious thought. " What can be the matter, mon Saint Pere?" asked sh** at last, to break the silence. " That there are more whims in the world than yours, dear Queen Whims ; and I fear darker ones. Let us walk up together after this man. I have offended him." " Nonsense I I dare sa;f^e'wanted to-get home to write poetry, as you did not praise what he had written. I know his vanity and flightiness." " You do ? " asked he quickly, in a painful tone. " How- ever, I have offended him, I can see ; and deeply. I must go up and make things right, for the sake of — for every- body's sake." " Then do not ask me anything. Lucia loves him intensely, and let that be enough for us." The major saw the truth of the last sentence no more than Valencia herself did ; for Valencia would have been glad enough to pour out to him, with every exaggeration, her sis- ter's woes and wrongs, real and fancied, had not the sense of her own folly with Vavasour kept her silent and conscience- stricken. Valencia remarked the major's pained look as they walked up the street. "You dear, conscientious Saint Pere, why will you fret yourself about this foolish matter ? He will have forgotten it all in an hour ; I know him well enough." Major Campbell was not the sort of person to admire Els- ley the more for throwing away capriciously such deep pas- sion as he had seen him show, any more than for showing the Bame. " He must be of a very volatile temperament." "0, all geniuses are." THE CBUISK OF THE WATERWITCH. 281 " I have no respect for genius, Miss St. Just ; I do no< even acknowledge its existence where there is no strengtl" and steadiness of character. If any one pnjtends to b( more than a man, he must begin by proving himself a man al all. Genius ? Give me common sense and common decency 1 Does he give Mrs. Vavasour, pray, the benefits of any of these pretty flights of genius ? " Valencia was frightened. She had never heard her Saint Pere speak so severely and sarcastically ; and she feared that, if he knew the truth, he would be terribly angry. She had never seen him angry ; but she knew well enough that that passion, when it rose in him in a righteous cause, would be very awful to see ; and she was one of those women who always grow angry when they are frightened. So she was angry at his calling her Miss St. Just ; she was angry because she chose to think he was talking at her ; though she reasonably might have guessed it, seeing that he had scolded her a hundred times for want of steadiness of character. She was more angry than all because she knew that her own vanity had caused — at least disagree- ment — between Lucia and Elsley. All which — combined with her natural wish not to confess an unpleasant truth about her sister — justified her, of course, in answering: " Miss St. Just does not intrude into the secrets of her sister's married life ; and, if she did, she would not repeat them." Major Campbell sighed, and walked on a few moments in silence, then, — " Pardon, Miss St. Just ; I asked a rude question, and I am sorry for it." " Pardon you, my dear Saint Pere ? " cried sue, almost catching at his hand. " Never I I must either believe you infallible, or hate you eternally. It is I that was naughty ; I always am. But you will forgive Queen Whims ? " " Who could help it ? " said the major, in a sad, sweet tone. " But here is the postman. May I open my let- ters ? " " You may do as you like, now you have forgiven me. Why, what is it, mon Saint Pere? " A sudden shock of horror had passed over the major's face as he read^ his letter ; but it had soofl subsided into stately calm. "A gallant officer, whom we and all the world knew well, is dead of cholera, at his post, whore a man should 24* 282 THE CRUISE OF THE WATEEWITCH. die And, my dear Miss St. Just, we are going tc tte_Crimea,,iL- — "We? — you?" " Yes. The expedition will really sailjj[ find." " But not you ? " " I shall offer my services. My leave of absence will, in any case, end on the first of September ; and, even if it did not, my health i3,£(«te"esQvig-h restoredto^nabl^e me to waJt_ -upjoa cannon'fijnouth." '' "AYipmon SaiuFTere, what words are these ? " " The words of an old soldier, Queen Whims, who has been so long at his trade that he has got to take a strange pleasure in it." " In killing ? " " No ; only in the chance of . But I will not cast an unnecessary shadow over your bright soul. There will be shadows enough over it soon, without my help." " What do you mean ? " " That you, and thousands more as delicate, if not as fair as you, will see, ere long, what the realities of human life are ; and in a way of which you have never dreamed." And he murmured, half to himself, the words of the prophet : " ' Thou saidst, I shall sit as a lady forever ; but these two things shall come upon thee in one day, widowhood and the loss of children. They shall even come upon thee.' — No! not in their fulness! There are noble elements beneath the crust, which will come out all the purer from the fire ; and we shall have heroes and heroines rising up among us as of old, sincere and earnest, ready tc face their work, and to do it, and to call all things by theii right names once more ; and Queen Whims herself will be- come what Queen Whims might be ! " Valencia was awed, as well she might have been ; for there was a very deep sadness about Campbell's voice. " You think there will be def disasters ? " said she, at last. " How can I tell ? That we are what we always were, I doubt not. Scoutbush will fight as merrily as I. But we owe the penalty of many sins, and we shall pay it." It would be as unfair, perhaps, as easy, to make Major Campbell a prophet after the fact, by attributing to him anj' distinct expectation of those mistakes which have been but too notorious since. Much of the sadness in his tone may have been due to his habitual melancholy ; his stroi'g be- lief that the world was deeply diseased, and that somp THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. 283 terrible purgation would surely come, when it was needed. But it is diiEcult, again, to conceive tliat those errors were Altogether unforeseen by many an officer of Campbell's .'xperience and thoughtfulness. " We will talk no more of it, just now." And they fl'alked up to Penalva Court, seriously enough. " Well, Scoutbush, any letters from town ? " said the major. " Yes." "You have heard what has happened at D bar racks ? " " Yes." " You had better take care, then, that the like of it does not happen here." " Here ? " " Yes. I '11 tell you all presently. Have you heard from head-quarters ? " " Yes ; all right," said Scoutbush, who did not like to let out the truth before Valencia. Campbell saw it, and signed to him to speak out. "All right?" asked Valencia. "Then you are not going?" " Ay, but I am ! Orders to join my regiment by the iirst of October, and to be shot as soon afterwards as is fitting for the honor of my country. So, Miss Val., you must be quick in making good friends with the heir-at-law ; or else you won't get your bills paid any more." " 0, dear, dear ! " And Valencia began to cry bitterly. It was her first real sorrow. Strangely enough, MaJQr Campbell, instead of trying to comfort her, took Scoutbush out with him, and left her alonn with her tears. He could not rest till he had opened the whole cholera question. Scoutbush was honestly shocked. Who would have dreamed it ? No one had ever told him that the cholera had really been there before. What could he do ? Send foi Thurnall ? Tom was sent for ; and Scoutbush found, to his horror, that what little he could have ever done ought to have been done three months ago, with Lord Minchampstead's im provements at Pentremochyn. The little man walked up and down, and wrung his hands. He cursed Tardrew for not telling him the truth ; he cursed himself for letting the cottages go out of his power ; he cursed A, B, and C, for taking the said cottages off hij 284 THE CEUISE OF THE WATEEWITCH. hands ; he cursed up, he c arsed down, he cursed all aroand, things which ought to have been cursed, and things which really ought not ; for half of the worst sanatory sinners, in this blessed age of ignorance, yclept of progress and sci- ence, — how our grandchildren will laugh at the epithets I — are utterly unconscious and guiltless ones. But cursing left him, as it leaves other men, very much where he had started. To do him justice, he was in one thing a true nobleman, for he was above all pride ; as are most men of rank, who know what their own rank means. It is only the upstart unaccustomed to his new eminence, who stands on his dig- nity, and " asserts his power." So Scoutbush begged humbly of Thurnall only to tell him what he could do. " You might use your moral influence, my lord." " Moral influence ? " in a tone which implied, naively enough, " I 'd better get a little morals myself before I talk of using the same." " Your position in the parish " " My good sir ! " quoth Scoutbush, in his shrewd way ; " do you not know yourself what these fine fellows who were ready yesterday to kiss the dust off my feet would say, if I asked leave to touch a single hair of their rights ? ' Tell you what, my lord ; we pays you your rent, and you takes it. You mind your business, and we '11 mind our 'n.' You forget that times are changed since my seventeenth progenitor was lord of life and limb over man and maid in Aberalva." " And since your seventeenth progenitor took the trouble to live at Penalva Court," said Campbell, " instead of throwing away what little moral influence he had by going into the Guards, and spending his time between Rotten Eow and Cowes." " Hardly fair, Major Campbell ! " quoth Tom ; " you for- get that in the old times, if the Lord of Aberalva was responsible for his people, he had also by law the power of making them obey him." " The long and the short of it is, then," said Scoutbush, a little tartly, " that I can do nothing." " You can put to rights the cottages which are still in your hands, my lord. For the rest, my only remaining hope lies in the last person whom one would usually depute on such an errand." " Who is that ? " THE CRUISE OP THE VVATEIIWITCH. 28.'5 " ThejchoqlnQistress.L' "The who?" asked Scoutbush. " The schoolmistress ; at whose house Majoi Campbell lodges." And Tom told them, succinctly, enough to justify his strange assertion. " If you doubt me, my lord, I advise you to ask Mr. Head- ley. He is no friend of hers, being a high churchman, while she is a little inclined to be schismatic ; but an enemy's opinion will be all the more honest." " She must be a wonderful woman," said Scoutbush ; " I should like to see her." " And I too," said Campbell. " I passed a lovely girl on the stairs last night, and thought no more of it. Lovely girls are common enough in' West ountry ports." "We'll go and see her," quoth his lordship. Meanwhile, Aberalva pier was astonished by a strange phenomenon. A boat from the yacht landed at the pier- head, not only Claude Mellot, whose beard was an object of wonder to the fishermen, but a tall three-legged box and a little black tent ; which, being set upon the pier, became the scene of various mysterious operations, carried on by Claude and a sailor lad. " I say I " quoth one of the fishing elders, after long, sus- picious silence ; " I say, lads, this won't do. We can't have no outlandish foreigners taking observations here I " And then dropped out one wild suspicion after another. " Maybe he 's surveying for a railroad ? " "Maybe he's from the Trinity House, going to make it new harbor ; or maybe a light-house. And then we'd bet- ter not meddle wi' him." " I '11 tell you what he be. He 's that here government chap as the doctor said he 'd bring down to set our drains right." " If he goes meddling with our drains, and knocking of our back yards about, he '11 find himself over quay before he's done." " Steady ! steady I He come with my loord, mind." "He might a'taken in his loordship, and be a Eoossiau spy to the bottom of him after all. They mak' munselves up into all manner of disguisements, specially beards. I 've seed the Koossians with their beards many a time." " Maybe 't is witchcraft. Look to mun, putting mnn'a head under that black bag now ! He 'm after no good, I 'II warrant. If they be n't works of darkness, what be ? " 28d THE CRUISE OP THE WATERWITCH. " Leastwise he 'm no right to go spying here on our quay, and never ax with your leave, or by your leave. 1 '11 just goo mak' mun out." And Claude, who had just retreated into his tent, had the pleasure of finding the curtain suddenly withdrawn, and ae a flood of light rushed in, spoiling his daguerreotype plate, hearing a voice as of a sleepy bear, — " Ax your pardon, sir ; but what be you arter here ? " " Murder 1 shut the screen 1 " But it was too late ; and Claude came out, while the eldest-born of Anak stood sternly inquiring, — " I say, what be you arter here, mak' so boold ? " " Taking sun-pictures, my good sir ; and you have spoilt one for me." " Sun-picturs, saith a ? " in a very incredulous tone. " Daguerreotypes of the place for Lord Scoutbush." " ! — if it 's his lordship's wish, of course I Only things is very well as they are, and needs no mending, thank God. Only, ax pardon, sir. You see, we don't generally allow no interfering on our pier without lave, sir ; the pier being ourn, we pays for the repairing. So, if his lordship intends making of alterations, he 'd better to have spoken to us first." "Alterations?" said Claude, laughing; "the place is far too pretty to need any improvement." " Glad you think so, sir I But whatever be you arter here ? " " Taking views 1 I 'm a painter, an artist I I '11 take your portrait, if you like I " said Claude, laughing more and more. "Bless my heart, what vules we be I 'Tis a paainter gentleman, lads ! " roared he. " What on earth did you take me for ? A Russian spy ? " The elder shook his head ; grinned solemnly ; and peace was concluded. " We 'm old-fashioned folks here, you see, sir ; and don't like no new-fangled meddle-comes. You '11 excuse us ; you 'm very welcome to do what you like, and glad to eee you here." And the old fellow made a stately bow, and moved away. " No, no I you must stay and have your portrait taken ; you '11 make a fine picture." " Hum ; might ha', they used to say, thirty years agone ; I 'm over old now. Still, my old woman might like it Make so bold, sir, but what 's your charge ? " THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. 287 "I charge nothing'. Five minutes' talk with an honest man will pay me." " Hum ; if you 'd a let me pay you, sir, well and good ; but I maunt take up your time for naught ; that 's not fair." However, Claude prevailed, and in ten minutes he had all the sailors on the quay round him ; and one after another came forward blushing and grinning to be "taken off." Soon the children gathered round, and when Valencia and Major Campbell came on the pier, they found Claude in the midst of a ring of little dark-haired angels ; while a dozen honest fellows grinned when their own visages appeared, and chaffed each other about the sweethearts who were to keep them while they were out at sea. And in the midst little Claude laughed and joked, and told good stories, and gave himself up, the simple, sunny-hearted fellow, to the pleasure of pleasing, till he earned from one *hd all the character of " the pleasant-spokenest gentleman that ever was into the town." "Here's her ladyship ! make room for her ladyship ! " But Claude held up a warning hand. He had just arranged a master-piece, — half a dozen of the prettiest children, sit ting beneath a broken boat, on spars, sails, blocks, lobster pots, and what not, arranged in picturesque confusion ; while the black-bearded sea-kings round were promising them rock and bull's-eyes, if they would only sit still like "gude maids." But at Valencia's coming the children all looked round, and jumped up, and curtsied, and then were afraid to sit down again. " You have spoilt my group, Miss St. Just, and you must mend it ! " Valencia caught the humor, regrouped them all forth- with ; and then placed herself in front of them by Claude's side. "Now, be good children! Look straight at me, and listen ! " And, lifting up her finger, she began to sing the first song of which she could think, "The Landing of the Pilgrim Fathers." She had no need to bid the children look at her and listen ; for not only they, but every face upon the pier was fixed upon her ; breathless, spell-bound, at once by her magnifi- cent beauty and her magnificent voice, as up rose, leaping into the clear summer air, and rolling away over the still blue sea, that glorious melody which has now become the 288 THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. national anthem to the nobler half of the New "World. 1 lonui to woman, and honor to old England, that from Felicia He- mans came the song which will last, perhaps, when modern Europe shall have shared the fate of ancient Rome and Greece. Valencia's singing was the reflex of her own character ; and therefore, perhaps, all the more fitted to the song, the place, and the audience. It was no modest cooing voice, tender, suggestive, trembling with suppressed emotion, such as, even though narrow in compass, and dull in quality, will touch the deepest fibres of the heart, and, as delicate scents will sometimes do, wake up long-forgotten dreams, which seem memories of some antenatal life. It was clear, rich, massive, of extraordinary compass, and yet full of all the graceful ease, the audacious frolic, of perfect physical health, and strength, and beauty. Had there been a trace of effort in it, it might have been accused of "bravura ; " but there was no need of effort where nature had bestowed already an all but perfect organ, and all that was left for science was, to teach not power, but control Above all, it was a voice which you trusted ; after the first three notes, you felt that that perfect ear, that perfect throat, could never, even by the thousandth part of a note, fall short of melody ; and you gave your soul up to it, and cast yourself upon it, to bear you up and away, like a fairy steed, whither it would, down into the abysses of sadness, and up to the highest heaven of joy ; as did those wild and ro\igh, and yet tender-hearted and imaginative men that day, while every face spoke new delight, and hung upon those glorious notes, — " As one who drinks from a charmed cup Of sparkling, and foaming, and murmuring wine — " and not one of them, had he had the gift of words, but might have said with the poet : — " I have no life, Constantia, now but thee. While, like the world-surrounding air, thy song Flows on, and fills all things with melody. Now is thy voice a tempest swift and strong. On which, like one in trance upborne, Secure o'er rocks and waves I sweep, fiejoicing like a cloud of morn. Now 't is the breath of summer night. Which, when the starry waters sleep Round western isles, with incense-blossoms bright. Lingering, suspends my soul in its voluptuous flight" THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. 289 At last it ceased : and all men drew their breaths onco more ; while a low murmur of admiration ran through th^ crowd, too well-bred to applaud openly, as they longed to do " Did you ever hear the like of that, Gentleman Jan ? " " Or see ? I used to say no one could hold a candle tc our Grace ; but she — she looked like a born queen all the time ! " " Well, she belongs to us, too — so we 've a right to be proud of her. Why, here 's our Grace all the while 1 " Tine enough ; Grace had been standing among the crowd all tbe while, rapt, like them, her eyes fixed on Valencia, and full, too, of tears. They had been called up first by the melody itself, and then, by a chain of thought peculiar to Grace, by the faces round her. " Ah ! if Grace had been here 1 " cried one, " we 'd have had her dra'ed off in the midst of the children." " Ah ! that would ha' been as nat'ral as' life 1 " " Silence you ! " saysGLeatleman Jan, who^enerally feels a mission to teach the rest of the quay good manners, " 'tis the gentleman's pleasure to settle who he '11 dra' off, and not wer'n." To which abnormal possessive pronoun, Claude re- joined, — " Not a bit ! whatever you like. I could not have a bet- ter figure for the centre. I '11 begin again." " 0, do come and sit among the children, Grace ! " says Valencia. " No, thank your ladyship." Valencia began urging her ; and many a voice round, old as well as young, backed the entreaty. " Excuse me, my lady," and she slipped into the crowd ; but as she went she spoke low, but clear enough to be heard by all : " No ; it will be time enough to flatter me, and ask for my picture, when you do what I tell you — what God tells you ! " " What's that, then, Grace, dear ? " "You know! I've asked you to save your own lives from chc'lera, and you have not the common sense to do it. Let me go home and pray for you ! " There was an awkward silence among the men, till some fellow said, — " She 'm gone mad after that doctor, I think, with hie muck-hunting notions." And Grace went home, to await the hour of aftemoop school. 25 Si90 THE CRUISE OF THE WATBBWITCH. " What a face ! " said Mellot. " Is it not ? Come and see her in her school, when th« children go in at two o'clock. Ah I there are Scotitbush and Saint Pere." " We are g: ing to the school, my lord. Don't you think that, as a patron of things in general here, it would look well if you walked in, and signified your full approbation of what you know nothing about ? " " So much so, that I was just on my way there with Campbell. But I must just speak to that lime-burning fel- low. He wants a new lease of the kiln, and I suppose he must have it. At least, here he comes, running at me open-mouthed, and as dry as his own waistband. It makes one thirsty to look at him. I '11 catch you up in five min- utes ! " So the three went off to the school. ^ :)c :}: ^ % 4: Grace was telling, in her own sweet way, that charming Btory of the Three Trouts, which, by the by has been lately pirated (as many things are) by a religious author, whose book differs sufficiently from the liberal and wholesome morality of the true author of the tale. " What a beautiful story, Grace ! " said Valencia. " You will surpass Hans Anderssen some day." Grace blushed and was silent a moment. " It is not my own, my lady." " Not your own ? I should have thought that no one but you and Anderssen could have made such an ending to it." Grace gave her one of those beseeching, half-reproachful looks, with which she always answered praise ; and then, — " Would you like to hear the children repeat a hymn, my lady?" " No. I want to know where that story came from." Grace blushed, and stammered. "I know where," said Campbell. "You need not be ashamed of having read the book. Miss Harvey. I doubt not that you took all the good from it, and none of the harm, if harm there be." Grace looked at him, at once surprised and relieved. " It was a foolish romance-book, sir, as you seem to know. I* was the only one which I ever read, except Hans Anders- sen's, — which are not romances, after all. But the begin- ning was so full of God's truth, sir, — romance though it was, — and gave me such precious new light about educat THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. 291 mg children, that I was led on unawares. I hoje I was not wrong." " This school-room proves that you were not," said Campbell. " ' To the pure, all things are pure.' " " What is this mysterious book? I must know I " said Valencia. " A very noble romance, which I made Mellot read once, containing the ideal education of an English nobleman in the middle of the last century." " The Fool of Quality ? " said Mellot. " Of course I I thought I had lieard the story before. What a well-writ- ten book it is, too, in spite of all extravagance and prolixity ! And how wonderfully ahead of his generation the man who wrote it, in politics as well as in religion ! " " I must read it," said Valencia. " You must lend it me. Saint Pere." "Not yet, I think." " W~hy ? " whispered she, pouting. " I suppose I am not as pure as Grace Harvey ? " " She has the children to educate, who are daily in con- tact with coarse sins, of which you know nothing — of which she cannot help knowing. It was written in an age when the morals of our class (more shame to us) were on the same level with the morals of her class now. Let it alone. I often have fancied I should edit a corrected edi- tion of it. When I do, you shall read that." " Now, Miss Harvey," said Mellot, who had never taken his eyes off her face, " I want to turn schoolmaster, and give your children a drawing lesson. Get your slates, all of you! " And, taking possession of the blackboard and a piece of chalk, Claude began sketching them imps and angels, dogs and horses, till the school rang with shrieks of delight "Now," said he, wiping the board, "I'll draw some- thing, and you shall copy it." And, without taking off his hand, he drew a single lino ; and a profile head sprang up, as if by magic, under his firm, unerring touch. "Somebody!" " A lady 1 " " No 'tan't ; 'tis school- mistress I " "You can't copy that: I'll draw you another face." And he sketched a full face on the board. "That's my lady." "No, it's schoolmistress again!" ■' No, it 's not ! " "Not quite sure, my dears?" said Claude, half to him !>iy2 THE CKDISE OF THE WATEEWITCH. Belf. " Thfin here ! " and, wiping the board once moie, he drew a three-quarters face, which elicited a shout of appro- bation. " That 's schoolmistress, her very self 1 " " Then you cannot do anything better than try and draw it. I '11 show you how." And, going over the ones again, one by one, the crafty Claude pretended to be giving a drawing lesson, while he was really studying every feature of his model. " If you please, my lady," whispered Grace to Valencia, " I wish the gentleman would not." "Why not?" " 0, madam, I do not judge any one else ; but why should this poor, perishing flesh be put into a picture ? We wear it but for a little while, and are blessod when we get rid of its burden. Why wish to keep a copy of what we long to be delivered from ? " " It will please the children, Grace," said Valencia, puz- zled. " See how they are all trying to copy it, from love of you." " Who am I ? I want them to do things from love of God. No, madam, I was pained (and no offence to you) when I was asked to have my likeness taken on the quay. There 's no sin in it, of course ; but let those who are going away to sea, and have friends at home, have their pictures taken — not one who wishes to leave behind her no likeness of her own, only Christ's likeness in these children ; and to paint him to other people, not to be painted herself. Do ask him to rub it out, my lady ! " " Why, Grace, we were all just wishing to have a like- ness of you. Every one has their picture taken for a remembrance." " The saints and martyrs never had theirs, as far as I ever heard, and yet they are not forgotten yet. I know it is the way of great people like you. I saw your picture once, in a book Miss Heale had ; and did not wonder, when I saw it, that people wished to remember such a face as yours ; and since I have seen you, I wonder still less." " My picture ? where ? " " In a book — ' The Book of Beauty,' I believe they ealled it." " My dear Grace," said Valencia, laughing and blushing, " if you ever looked in your glass, you must know that yon are quite as worthy of a place in ' The Book of Beauty ' as I am," THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. 293 Gruce shook her head with a serious smile. " Every one In their place, madam. I cannot help knowing that G-od has given me a gift ; but why, I cannot lell. Certainly not *br the same purpose as he gave it to you for, — a simple cor ntry girl like me. If he have any use for it, he will use it, as he does all his creatures, without my help. At all events it will not last long ; a few years more, perhaps a few months, and it will be food for worms ; and then people will care as little about my looks as I care now. 1 wish, my lady, you would stop the gentleman ! " " Mr. Mellot, draw the children something simpler, please; — a dog or a cat." And she gave Claude a look which he obeyed. Valencia felt in a more solemn mood than usual as she walked home that day. " Well," said Claude, " I have here every line and shade, and she cannot escape me. I '11 go on board, and paint her right off from memory, while it is fresh. Why ! here come Scoutbush and the major." " Miss Harvey," said Scoutbush, — trying, as he said to Campbell, " to look as grand as a sheep-dog among a pack of fox-hounds, and very thankful all the while that he had no tail to be bitten off," — " Miss Harvey, I — we — have heard a great deal in praise of your school ; ard so I thought I should like to come and see it." "Would your lordship like to examine the children?" says Grace, curtsying to the ground. "No — thanks — that is — I have no douV,t you teach them all that 's right, and we are exceedingly gratified with the way in which you conduct the school. I say, Val.," cried Scoutbush, who could support the part of patron no longer, " what pretty little ducks they are ! I wish I had a dozen of them ! Come you here ! " and down he sat on a bench, and gathered a group round him. " Now, are you all good children ? I 'm sure you look so ! " said he, looking round into the bright pure faces, fresh fi-om heaven, and feeling himself the nearer heaven as he did so. " Ah ! I see Mr. Mellot 's been drawing you pic- tures. He 's a clever man, a wonderful man, is n't he ? I can't draw you pictures, nor tell you stories, like your schoolmistress. What shall I do ? " " Sing to them, Fred ! " said Valencia. And he began warbling a funny song, with a child on each knee, and his arms round three or four more, while the little faces looked up into his, half awe-struck at the pres 25* 294 THE CRUISE OP THE WATEEWITCH. ence of a live lord, half longing to laugh, but not sure whether it would be right. Valencia and Campbell stood close together, exchanging looks. "Dear fellow!" whispered she; "so simple and good when he is himself! And he must go to that dreadful war ! " "Never mind. Perhaps by this very act he is earning permission to come back again, a wiser and a more useful man." "How then?" " Is he not making friends with angels who always behold our Father's face ? At least he is showing capabilities of good, which God gave ; and which, therefore, God will never waste." " Now, shall I sing you another song ? " " 0, yes, please I " rose from a dozen little mouths. " You must not be troublesome to his lordship," says Grace. " 0, no, I like it. I '11 sing them one more song, and then — I want to speak to you, Miss Harvey." Grace curtsied, blushed, and shook all over. What could Lord Scoutbush want to say to her ? That indeed was not very easy to discover at first ; for Scoutbush felt so strongly the oddity of taking a pretty young woman into his counsel on a question of sanitary reform, that he felt mightily inclined to laugh, and began beating about the bush in a sufficiently confused fashion. " Well, Miss Harvey, I am exceedingly pleased with — with what I have seen of the school — that is, what my sister tells, and the clergyman — " " The clergyman ? " thought Grace, surprised, as she might well be, at what was entirely an impromptu invention of his lordship's. "And — and — there is ten pounds toward the school, and — and, I will give an annual subscription the samo amount." " Mr. Headley receives the subscriptions, my lord," said Grace, drawing back from the proffered note. " Of course," quoth Scoutbush, trusting again to an impromptu ; " but this is for yourself — a small mark of our sense of your — your usefulness." If any one has expected that Grace is about to conduct herself, during this interview, in anywise like a prophetess, tragedy queen, or other exalted personage ; to stand upon THE CEUISB or THE WATERWITCH. 295 r.er native independence, and, scorning the bounty of an aristocrat, to read the said aristocrat a lecture on his duties and responsibilities, as landlord of Aberalva town ; then will that person be altogether disappointed. It would have looked very grand, doubtless ; but it would have been equally untrue to Grace's womanhood, and to her notions of Christianity. Whether all men were or were not equal in the sight of Heaven, was a notion which had never crossed her mind. She knew that they would all be equal in heaven, and that was enough for her. Meanwhile, she found lords and ladies on earth, and, seeing no open sin in the fact of their being richer and more powerful than she was, she sup- posed that God had put them where they were ; and she accepted them simply as facts of his kingdom. Of course they had their duties, as every one has ; but what they were she did not know, or care to know. To their own master they stood or fell ; her business was with her own duties, and with her own class, whose good and evil she understood by practical experience. So, when a live lord made his appearance in her school, she looked at him with vague wonder and admiration, as a being out of some other planet, for whom she had no gauge or measure ; she only believed that he had vast powers of doing good unknown to her ; and was delighted by seeing him condescend to play with her children. The truth may be degrading, but it must be told. People, of course, who know the hoUow- ness of the world, and the vanity of human wealth and honor, and are accustomed to live with lords and ladies, see through all that, just as clearly as any American republican does ; and care no more about walking down Pall-Mail with the Marquis of Carabas, who can get them a place or a liv- ing, than with Mr. Two-shoes, who can only borrow ten pounds of them ; but Grace was a poor, simple West country girl ; and as such we must excuse her, if, curtsying to the very ground, with tears of gratitude in her eyes, she took the ten-pound note, saying to herself, " Thank the good Lord I This will just pay mother's account at the mill." Likewise we must excuse her if she trembled a little, being a young woman — though being also a lady, she lost no jot of self-possession — when his lordship went on in as important a tone as he could — " And — and I hear. Miss Harvey, that you have a gieat influence over these children's parents." " I am afraid some one has misinformed your lordship,' Baid Grace, in a low voice. 296 THE CRUISE OF THE WATEEWITCH. " Ah ! " quoth Scoutbush, in a tone meant to be reassur ing ; " it is quite proper in you to say so. What eyes she has ! and what hair ! and what hands, too I " (This was, of course, spoken mentally.) " But we know better ; and we want you to speak to them, whenever you can, about keeping their houses clean, and all that, in case the cholera should come." And Scoutbush stopped. It was a quaint errand enough ; and, besides, as he told Mellot frankly, " I could think of nothing , but those wonderful eyes of hers, and how like they were to La Signora's." Grace had been looking at the ground all the while. Now she threw upon him one of her sudden, startled looks, and answered slowly, as her eyes dropped again : " I have, my lord ; but they will not listen to me." " Won't listen to you ? Then to whom will they listen ? " " To God, when He speaks himself," said she, still looking on the ground. Scoutbush winced uneasily. He was not accustomed to solemn words, spoken so solemnly. " Do you hear this, Campbell ? Miss Harvey has been talking to these people already, and they won't hear her." " Miss Harvey, I dare say, is not astonished at that. It is the usual fate of those who try to put a little common sense into their fellow-men." " Well, and I shall, at all events, go off and give them my mind on the matter ; though, I suppose," — with a glance at Grace, — "I can't expect to be heard where Miss Harvey has not been." " 0, my lord ! " cried Grace, " if you would but speak " And there she stopped ; for was it her place to tell him his duty ? No doubt he had wiser people than her to counsel him. But, the moment that the party left the school, Grace dropped into her chair ; her head fell on the table, and she burst into an agony of weeping, which brought the whole Bchojl round her. " 0, my darlings I my darlings 1 " cried she, at last look- ing up, and clasping them to her by twos and threes : " Is there no way of saving you ? No way ? Then we must make the more haste to be good, and be all ready when Jesus comes to take us." And shaking off her passion with one strong effort, she began teaching those children as she had never taught them before, with a voice, a look, as of Stephen himself when he saw the heavens opened. THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. 297 For that burst of weeping was the one single overflow of long pent passion, disappointment, shame. She had tried, indeed. Ever since Tom's conversation and Prank's sermon had poured in a flood of new light on the meaning of epidemics, and bodily misery, and death itself, she had been working, as only she could work ; ex- horting, explaining, coaxing, warning, entreating with tears, offering to perform with her own hands the most sickening offices ; to become, if no one else would, the common scav- enger of the town. There was no depth to which 'n hei noble enthusiasm, she would not have gone down. And behold, it had been utterly in vain 1 Ah I the bitter disap- pointment of finding her influence fail her utterly, the first time that it was required for a great practical work ! They would let her talk to them about their souls, then I They would even amend a few sins, here and there, of which they had been all along as well aware as she. But to be convinced of a new sin ; to have their laziness, pride, covetousness, touched ; that, she found, was what they would not bear ; and where she had expected, if not thanks, at least a fair hearing, she had been met with peevishness, ridicule, even anger and insult. Her mother had turned against her. "Why would she go getting'^TBad name from every one, and driving away customers ? " The preachers, who were — as is but too common in West country villages — narrow, ignorant, and somewhat unscrupulous men, turned against her. They had considered the cholera, if it was to come, as so much spiritual capital for themselves ; an occasion which they could " improve " into a sensation, perhaps a " revival ; " and to explain it upon mere physical causes was to rob them of their harvest. Coarse viragos went even further still, and dared to ask her " whether it was the curate or the doctor she was setting her cap at ; for she never had any- thing in her mouth now but what they had said ? " And those words went through her heart like a sword ? Was she disinterested ? Was not love for Thurnall, the wish to please him, mingling with all her earnestness ? And again ; was not self-love mingling with it, and mingling; too, with the disappointment, even indignation, which she felt at having failed ? Ah ! what hitherto hidden spots of self-conceit, vanity, pharisaic pride, that bitter trial laid bare, or seemed to lay, till she learned to thank her unseen Guide even for it I Perhaps she had more reason to be thankful for her humiU 298 THE CRUISE OF THE WATEEWITCH. laiion than she could suspect, with her narrow knowledge of the world. Perhaps that sudden downfall of her fancied queenship was needed to shut her out, once and for all, from that downward path of spiritual intoxication, followed by spiritual knavery, which, as has been hinted, was but too easy for her. But, meanwhile, the whole thing was but a fresh misery. To bear the burden of Cassandra day and night, seeing in fancy — which yet was truth — the black shadow of death hanging over that doomed place ; to dream of whom it might sweep off; — perhaps, worst of all, her mother, unconfessed and impenitent I Too dreadful 1 And dreadful, too, the private troubles which were thickening fast ; and which seemed, instead of drawing her mother to her side, to estrange her more and more, for some mysterious reason. Her mother was heavily in debt. This ten pounds of Lord Scoutbush's would certainly clear off the miller's bill. Her scanty quarter's salary, which was just due, would clear off a little more. But there was a long-standing account of the whole- sale grocer's for five-and-twenty pounds, for which Mrs. Harvey had given a two months' bill. That bill would become due early in September ; and how to meet it neither mother nor daughter knew ; it lay like a black plague-spot on the future, only surpassed in horror by the cholera itself. It might have been three or four days after, that Claude, lounging after breakfast on deck, was hailed from a dingy, which contained Captain Willis and Gentle- man Jan. " Might we take the liberty of coming aboard to speak with your honor ? " " By all means I " and up the side they came ; their faces evidently big with some great purpose, and each desirous that the other should begin. " You speak, captain," says Jan ; " you 'm oldest ; '' and then he began himself. " If you please, sir, we 'm come on a sort of a deputation — Why don't you tell the gentleman, captain ? " Willis seemed either doubtful of the success of his dep- utation, or not over-desirous thereof ; for, after trying to put John Beer forward as spokesman, he began : " I 'm sorry to trouble you, sir, but these young men will have it so — and no shame to them — on a matter which I think will come to nothing. But the truth is, thej THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. 299 nave heard that you are a great painter, and they have taken it into their heads to ask you to paint a picture for them." " Not to ask you a favor, sir, mind ! " interrupted Jan ; we 'd scorn to be so forward ; we '11 subscribe and pay for it, in course, any price in reason. There 's forty and more promised already." " You nust tell me, first, what the picture is to be about," Baid Claude, puzzled and amused. ""^Wliy did n't you tell the gentleman, captain ? " " Because I think it is no use ; and I told them all so from the first. The truth is, sir, they want a picture of my -of our schoolmistress, sir, to hang up in the school or some where '^=^'^^ ~ "That's it, dra'ed out all natural, in paints, and her bonnet, and her shawl, and all, just like life ; we was a going to ax you to do one of they garrytypes ; but she would have'n noo price ; besides 't an't cheerful looking they sort, with your leave ; too much blackamoor wise, you see, and over thick about the nozzes, most times, to my liking ; BO we '11 pay you and welcome, all you ask." "Too much blackamoor wise, indeed!" said Claude, amused. " And how much do you think I should ask ? " No answer. " We '11 settle that presently. Come down into the cabin with me." " Why, sir, we could n't make so bold. His lordship — " " 0, his lordship's on shore, and I am skipper for the time ; and if not, he 'd be delighted to see two good seamen here. So come along." And down they went. " Bowie, bring these gentlemen some sherry ! " cried Claude, turning over his portfolio. " Now, then, my worthy fi-iends, is that the sort of thing you want? " And he spread on the table a water-color sketch of Grace. The two worthies gazed in silent delight, and then looked at each other, and then at Claude, and then at the picture. " Why, sir," said Willis ; " I could n't have believed it I You 've got the very smile of her, and the sadness of her too, as if you 'd known her a hundred year I " " 'T is beautiful I " sighed Jan, half to himself. Poor fellow, he had cherished, perhaps, hopes of winning Grace after all. " Well, will that suit you ? " " Why, sir, make so bold ; — but what we thought on iJOO THE CRUISE OP THE WATERWITCH. WHS to have her drawn from head to foot, and a child stand- ing by her like, holding to her hand, for a token as she was achoolmistress ; and the pier behind, may be, to signify as the was our maid, and belonged to Aberalva." " A capital thought 1 Upon my word, you 're men of taste here in the West ; but what do you think I should charge for such a picture as that ? " " Name your price, sir," said Jan, who was in high good humor at Claude's approbation. " Two hundred guineasL" Jan gave a long whistle. " I told you so. Captain Beer," said Willis, " or ever we got into the boat." " Now," said Claude, laughing, " I 've two prices — one's two hundred, and the other is just nothing ; and if you won't agree to. the one, you must take the other." " But we wants to pay, we 'd take it an honor to pay, if we could afford it." " Then wait till next Christmas." " Christmas ? " " My good friend, pictures are not painted in a day. Next Christmas, if I live, I '11 send you what you shall not be ashamed of, or she either, and do you club your money and put it info a handsome gold frame." " But, sir," said Willis, " this will give you a sight of trouble, and all for our fancy." " I like it, and I like you 1 You 're fine fellows, who know a noble creature when God sends her to you ; and I should be ashamed to ask a farthing of your money. There, no more words I " " Well, you are a gentleman, sir 1 " said Gentleman Jan. " And so are you," said Claude. " Now, I '11 show you some more sketches." "I should like to know, sir," asked Willis, "how you ^gotatjthat likeness. She would not hear of the thing, and thar's'why"rhad no liking to come troubling you about nothing." Claude told them, and Jan laughed heartily, while Willis said; — "Do you know, sir, that's a relief to my mind. There is no sin in being drawn, of course ; but I did n't like to think my maid had changed her mind, when once she 'd made it up." So the deputation retired in high glee, after Willis had THE CRUISE OP THE WATERWITCH. 301 enircated Claude and Beer to keep the thing a secret from Grace. It befell that Claude, knowing no reason why he should not tell Frank Headley, told him the whole story, as a proof of the chivalry of his parishioners, in which he would take delight. Prank smiled, but said little ; his opinion of Grace was altering fast. A circumstance which occurred a few days after altered it still more. Scoutbush had gone forth, as he threatened, and exploded in every direction, with such effect as was to be supposed. Everybody promised his lordship to do everything. But, when his lordship's back was turned, everybody did just nothing. They knew very well that he could not make them do anything ; and what was more, in some of the very worst cases, the evil was past remedy now, and better left alone. For the drought went on pitiless. A copper sun, a sea of glass, a brown easterly blight, day after day, while Thurnall looked grimly aloft, and mystified the sailors with — " Fine weather for the Flying Dutchman, this ! " " Coffins sail fastest in a calm." " You 'd best all out to the quay-head, and whistle for a wind ; it would be an ill one that would blow nobody good just now 1 " But the wind came not, nor the rain ; and the cholera crept nearer and nearer ; while the hearts of all in Aberalva were hardened, and out of very spite against the agitators, they did less than they would have done otherwise. Even the inhabitants of the half-a-dozen cottages, which Scout- bush, finding that they were in his own hands, whitewashed by main force, filled the town with lamentations over his lordship's tyranny. True, their pig-sties were either under their front windows, or within two feet of the wall ; but to pull down a poor man's pig-sty 1 — they might ever so well be Eooshian slave 1 — and all the town was on their side ; for pigs were the normal inhabitants of Aberalva back- yards. Tardrew's wrath, of course, knew no bounds ; and meet- ing Thurnall standing at WiUis's door, with Frank and Meiiot, he fell upon him open-mouthed. " Well, sir I I 've a crow to pick with you." " Pick away ! " quoth Tom. " What business have you meddling between his lordslup and me ? " 26 302 THE CRUISE OF THE WATEEWITCH. " That is my concern," quoth Tom, who evidently was not disinclined to quarrel. " I am not here to give an account to you of what I choose to do." " 1 '11 tell you what, sir ; ever since you 've been in this parish you 've been meddling, you and Mr. Headley too, — 1 'U say it to your faces, — 1 '11 speak the truth to any man, gentle or simple ; and that an't enough for you, but you must come over that poor, half-crazed girl, to set her plaguing honest people, with telling 'em they '11 all be iead in a month, till nobody can eat their suppers in peace ; and that again an't enough for you, but you must go to my lord with your — " " Hold hard ! " quoth Tom. " Don't start two hares at once. Let 's hear that about Miss Harvey again I " " Miss Harvey ? Why, you should know better than I." " Let's hear what you know." " Why, ever since that night Trebooze caught you and her together— >" "Stop ! "-said Tom, " that 's a lie I " " Everybody says so." " Then everybody lies, that 's all ; and you may say I said so, and take care you don't say it again yourself. But what ever since that night? " " Why, I suppose you come over the poor thing some how, as you seem minded to do over every one as you can. But she 's been running up and down the town ever since, preaching to 'em about windilation, and drains, and smells, and cholera, and its being a judgment of the Lord against dirt, till she 's frightened all the women, so that many 's the man as has had to forbid her his house. But you know that as well as I." " I never heard a word of it before ; but, now I have, I '11 give you my opinion on it : — that she is a noble, sensible girl, and that you are all a set of fools who are not worthy \ of her ; and that the greatest fool of the whole is you, Mr. ■ Tardrew. And, when the cholera comes, it will serve you I exactly right if yau are the first man carried off by it. Now, sir, you have given me your mind,' and I have given you mine, and I do not wish to hear anything more of you. Good-morning I " " You hold your head mighty high, to be sure, since you 've had the run of his lordship's yacht! " " If you are impertinent, sir, you will repent it. I shall toke care to inform his lordship of this conversation." "My dear Thurnall," said Headley, as Tardrew with- THE CRUISE OP THE WATERWITCH. 303 drew, muttering' curses, " the old fellow is certainly right Dn one point." " What then ? " " That you have wonderfully changed your tone. Who was to eat any amount of dirt, if he could but save his influence thereby ? " " I have altered my plans. I shan't stay here long ; I shall just see this cholera over, and then vanish." "No? " " Yes. I cannot sit here quietly, listening to the war- news. It makes me mad to be up and doing. I musteast- ward-ho, and see if trumps wiU not turn up for me at last. Why, I know the whole country, half a dozen of the lan- guages — 0, if I could get some secret service-work I Go I must. At worst, I can turn my hand to doctoring Bashi- bazouks." "My dear Tom, when will you settle down like other men ? " cries Claude. " I would now, if there was an opening at Witbury, and, low as life would be, I 'd face it for my father's sake. But here I cannot stay." Both Claude and Headley saw that Tom had reasons which he did not choose to reveal. However, Claude was taken into his confidence that very afternoon. " I shall make a fool of myself with that schoolmistress. I have been near enough to it a dozen times already ; and this magnificent conduct of hers about the cholera has given the finishing stroke to my brains. If I stay on here, I shall marry her ; I know I shall 1 and I won't I -^ I 'd go to-morrow, if it were not that I 'm bound, for my own credit, to see the cholera safe into the town, and out again." Tom did not hint a word of the lost money, or of the month's delay which Grace had asked of him. The month was drawing fast to a close now, however ; but no sign of the belt. Still, Tom had honor enough in him to be silent on the point, even to Claude. " By the by, have you heard from the wanderers this week ? " " I heard from Sabina this morning. Marie is very poor- ly, I fear. They have been at Kissingen, bathing ; and are going to Bertrich : somebody has recommended the baths there." " Bertrich I Where 's Bertrich ? " " The most delicious little nest of a place, half way up the Moselle, among the volcano craters." 304 THE CRUISE OP THE WATEBWITCH. " Don't know it. Have they found that Yankee ? " "No." " Why, I thought Sabina had a whole detective force of pets and proteges, from Boulogne to Rome." " Well, she has at least heard of him at Baden ; and then again at Stuttgard ; but he has escaped them as yet." " And poor Marie is breaking her heart all the while 1 I '11 tell you what, Claude, it will be well for him if he escapes me as well as them." " What do you mean ? " " I certainly shan't go to the East without shaking hands once more with Marie and Sabina ; and if in so doing I pass that fellow, it 's a pity if I don't have a snap shot at him." " Tom ! Tom 1 I had hoped your duelling days weve over." "They will be over when one can get the law to punish such puppies ; but not till then. Hang the fellow I What business had he with her at all, if he didn't intend to marry her ? " " I tell you, as I told you before, it is she who will pot marry him." " And yet she 's breaking her heart for him. I can pee it all plain enough, Claude. She has found him out only too late. I know him — luxurious, selfish, blazd ; would give a thousand dollars to-morrow, I believe, like the old Eoman, for a new pleasure ; — and then amuses himself with her till he breaks her heart I Of course, she won't marry him ; because she knows that if he found out her quadroon blood — ah, that 's it ! I '11 lay my life he has found it out already, and that is why he has bolted 1 " Claude had no answer to give. That talk at the exhibi- tion made it only too probable. " You think so, yourself, I see ! Very well. You know that, whatever I have been to others, that girl has nothing against me." " Nothing against you ? Why, she owes you honor, life, everything. " " Never mind that. Only, when I take a fancy to begin, I '11 carry it through. I took to that girl, for poor Wyse's sake ; and I '11 behave by her to the last as he would wish ; and he who insults her, insults me. I won't go out of my way to find Stangrave ; but, if I do, I '11 have it out I " " Then you will certainly fight. My dearest Tom, do look into your own heart, and see whether you have not a THE CRUISE OF THE WATERWITCH. 305 grain or two of spite against him left. I assure you you judge him too harshly." " Hum — that must take its chance. At least, if we fight, we fight fairly and equally. He is a brave man — I will do him that justice — and a cool one ; and used to be a sweet shot. So he has just as good a chance of shooting me, if I am in the wrong, as I have of shooting him, if he is." " But your father." " I know. That is very disagreeable ; and all the more BO because I am going to insure my life — a pretty premium they will make me pay ! — and if I 'm killed in a duel it will be forfeited. However, the only answer to that is, that either I shan't fight, or, if I do, I shan't be killed. You know I don't believe in being killed, Claude." " Tom ! Tom ! The same as ever! " said Claude, sadly. " Well, old man, and what else would you have me ? Nobody ever could alter me, you know ; and why should I alter myself? Here I am, after all, alive and jolly ; and there is old daddy, as comfortable as he ever can be on earth ; and so it will be to the end of the chapter. There 1 let 's talk of something else." 26* CHAPTER XVI. COMB AT LAST. Now, ai! if in all things Tom Thurnall and John Briggg were fated to take opposite sides, Campbell lost ground with Elsley as fast as he gained it with Thurnall. Elsley had never forgiven himself for his passion that first morn- ing. He had shown Campbell his weak side, and feared and disliked him accordingly. Besides, what might not Thurnall have told Campbell about him ? And what us ; might not the major make of his secret ? Besides, Elsley s dread and suspicion increased rapidly when he discovered that Campbell was one of those men who live on terms of peculiar intimacy with many women ; whether for his own good or not, still for the good of the women concerned. For only by honest purity, and moral courage superior to that of the many, is that dangerous post earned ; and women will listen to the man who will tell them the truth, however sternly ; and will bow, as before a guardian angel, to the strong insight of him whom they have once learned to trust. But it is a dangerous ofiSce, after all, for layman as well as for priest, that of father-confessor. The esperi- ence of centuries has shown that they must needs exist, wherever fathers neglect their daughters, husbands their wives ; wherever the average of the women cannot respect the average of the men. But the experience of centuries sl-ould likewise have taught men that the said father-con- fessors are no objects of envy ; that their temptations to become spiritual coxcombs (the worst species of all cox- combs), if not intriguers, bullies, and worse, are so extreme, that the soul which is proof against them must be either very gieat, or very small indeed. Whether Campbell was alto- gether proof, will be seen hereafter. But one day Elsley found out that such was Campbell's influence, and did not love him the more for the discovery. They were walking round the garden after dinner ; Scjout- (306) COMB AT LAST. 307 bush was licking his foolish lips over some common-place tale (if scandal. " I tell you, my dear fellow, she 's booked ; and Mel- lot knows it as well as I. He saw her that night at Lady A.'s." " We saw the third act of the comi-tragedy. The fourth is playing out now. We shall see the fifth before the winter." " Non sine sanguine I " said the major. " Serve the wretched stick right, at least," said Scout- bush. " What right had he to marry such a pretty woman ? " " What right had they to marry her up to him ? " said Claude. " I don't blame poor January. I suppose none of Tis, gentlemen, would have refused such a pretty toy, if we could have afforded it as he could." " Whom do you blame, then ? " asked Elsley. " Fathers and mothers who prate hypocritically about keeping their daughters' minds pure ; and then abuse a girl's ignorance, in order to sell her to ruin. Let them keep her mind pure, in Heaven's name : but let them consider themselves all the more bound in honor to use on her behalf the experience in which she must not share." "Well," drawled Scoutbush, "I don't complain of her bolting ; she 's a very sweet creature, and always was ; but, as Longreach says, — and a very witty fellow he is, though you laugh at him, — ' If she 'd kept to us, I shouldn't have minded ; but, as Guardsmen, we must throw her over. It 's an insult to the whole Guards, my dear fellow, after refus- ing two of us, to marry an attorney, and after all to bolt with a plunger.' " What bolting with a plunger might signify, Elsley knew not ; but, ere he could ask, the major rejoined, in an ab- stracted voice, " God help us all 1 And this is the girl I recollect, two years ago, singing there in Cavendish-square, as innocent as a nestling-thrush 1 " " Poor child I " said Mellot ; " sold at first — perhaps sold again now. The plunger has bills out, and she has ready money. I know her settlements." " She shan't do it," said the major, quietly ; " I '11 write to her to-night." Elsley looked at him keenly. " You think, then, sir, thai you can, by simply writing, stop this intrigue ? " 308 COME AT LAST. The major did not answer. He was deep in thought. " I should n't wonder if he did," said Scoutbush ; " two to one on his baulking the plunger ! " " She is at Lord 's now, at those silly private theatri- cals. Is he there ? " "No," said Mellot ; "he tiied hard for an invitation — stooped to work me and Sabina. I believe she told him that she would sooner see him in the Morgue than help him ; and he is gone to the moors now, I believe." " There is time, then ; I will write to her to-night ; " and Campbell took up his hat and went home to do it. " Ah ! " said Scoutbush, taking his cigar meditatively from his mouth, " I wonder how he does it ! It 's a gift, I always say, a wonderful gift I Before he has been a week in a house he '11 have the confidence of every woman in it, — and, 'gad, he does it by saying the rudest things ! — and the confidence of all the youngsters the week after." " A somewhat dangerous gift," said Elsley, dryly. " Ah, yes ; he might play tricks if he chose ; but there 's the wonder, that he don't. I 'd answer for him with my own sister. I do every day of my life — for I believe he knows how many pins she puts into her dress — and yet there he is. As I said once in the mess-room, there was a youngster there who took on himself to be witty, and talked about the still sow supping the milk — the snob 1 You recollect him, Mellot ? The attorney's son from Brompton, who sold out ; — we shaved his mustachios, put a bear in his bed, and sent him home to his ma — and he said that Major Campbell might be very pious, and all that ; but he 'd warrant — they were the fellow's own words — that he took his lark on the sly, like other men — the snob 1 So I told him I was no better than the rest, and no more lam ; but, if any man dared to say that the major was not as honest asi his own sister, I was his man at fifteen paces. And so I am, Claude ! " AH which did not increase Elsley's love to the major, con- scious as he was that Lucia's confidence was a thing which he had not wholly ; and which it would be very dangerous to him for any other man to have at all. Into the drawing-room they went. Prank Headley had been asked up to tea ; and he stood at the piano, listening to Valencia's singing. As they came in, the maid came in also. " Mr. Thurnal? wished to speak to Major Campbell." COMB AT LAST. BOO Campbell went out, and returned in two minutes Bome« what hurriedly. " Mr. Thurnall wishes Lord Scoutbush to be informed at once, and I think it is better that you should all know it — that — it is a painful surprise; but there is a man ill in the street, whose symptoms he does not like, he says." " Cholera ? " said Elsley. " Call him in," said Scoutbush. " He had rather not come in, he says." " What ! is it infectious ? " " Certainly not, if it be cholera, but — " "He don't wish to frighten people, — quite right;" — with a half glance at Elsley; — "but is it cholera, hon- estly ? " " I fear so." " 0, my children I " said poor Mrs. Vavasour. " Will five pounds help the poor fellow ? " said Scout- bush. " How far off is it ? " asked Elsley. " Unpleasantly near. I was going to advise you to move at once." " You hear what they are saying ? " asked Valencia of Prank. "Yes, I hear it," said Frank, in a quiet, meaning tone. Valencia thought that he was half-pleased with the news. Then she thought him afraid, for he did not stir. " You will go instantly, of course ? " " Of course I shall. Good-by I Do not be afraid. It la no't infectious." " Afraid 1 and a soldier's sister ? " said Valencia, with a toss of her beautiful head, by way of giving force to her somewhat weak logic. Prank left the room instantly, and met Thurnall in the passage. " Well, Headley, it 's here before we sent for it, as bad luck usually is." " I know. Let me go 1 Where is it ? Whose house ? " asked Frank, in an excited tone. " Humph 1 " said Thurnall, looking intently at him, "that is just what I shall not tell you." " Not tell me ? " " No, you are too pale, Headley. Go back and ge< two or three glasses of wine, and then we will talk of it '• 310 COME AT LAST. " What do you mean ? I must go instantly ! It 13 my duty — my parishioner ! " " Look here, Headley ! Are you and I to work together ■n this business, or are we not ? " " Why not, in Heaven's name ? " " Then I want you, not for cure, but for prevention. You can do them no good when they have once got it. You may prevent dozens from having it in the next four-and-twenty hours, if you will be guided by me." " But my business is with their souls, Thurnall." " Exactly ; to give them the consolations of religion, aa they call it. You will give them to the people who have not taken it. You may bring them safe through it by simply keeping up their spirits ; while, if you waste your time on poor dying wretches — " " Thurnall, you must not talk so I I will do all you ask ; but my place is at the death-bed, as well as elsewhere. These perishing souls are in my care." " And how do you know, pray, that they are perishing ? " answered Tom, with something very like a sneer. " And if they were, do you honestly believe that any talk of yours can change in five minutes a character which has been forming for years, or prevent a man's going where he ought to go, — which, I suppose, is the place to which he deserves to go ? " " I do," said Frank, firmly. " Well ; it is a charitable and hopeful creed. My great dread was, lest you should kill the poor wretches before their time, by adding to the fear of cholera the fear of hell. I caught the Methodist parson at that work an hour ago, took him by the shoulders, and shot him out into the street. But, my dear Headley," — and Tom lowered his voice to a whisper, — " wherever poor Tom Beer deserved to go to, he is gone to it already. He has been dead this twenty minutes." " Tom Beer dead ? One of the finest fellows in the town I And I never sent for ? " " Don't speak so loud, or they will hear you. I had no time to send for you ; and, if I had, I shotild not have sent, for he was past attending to you from the first. He brought it with him, I suppose, from * * *. Had had warnings for a week, and neglected them. Now listen to me ; that man was but two hours ill ; as sharp a case as T ever saw, even in the West Indies. You must summon up all your good sense, and play the man for a fortnight ; for it 's coming COME AT LAST. 311 on the poor souls like hell I " said Tom, between Iiis teeth, and stamped his foot upon the ground. Frank had never Been him show so much feeling ; he fancied he could eoe tears glistening in his eyes. " I will, so help me God ! " said Prank. Tom held out his hand, and grasped Frank's. "I know you will. You're all right at heart. Only mind three things ; don't frighten them, don't tire yourself, don't go about on an empty stomach, and then we can face the worst like men. And now go in, and say nothing to these people. If they take a panic, we shall have some of them down to-night as sure as fate. Go in, keep quiet, per- suade them to bolt anywhere on earth by daylight to-mor- row. Then go home, eat a good supper, and come acrcss to me ; and, if I 'm out, I '11 leave word where." Frank went back again. He found Campbell, who had had his cue from Tom, urging immediate removal as strongly as he could, without declaring the extent of the danger. Valencia was for sending instantly for a fly to the nearest town, and going to stay at a watering-place some forty miles off. Blsley was willing enough at heart, but hesi- tated ; he knew not, at the moment, poor fellow, where to find the money. His wife knew that she could borrow of Valencia ; but she, too, was against the place. The cholera would be in the air for miles round. The journey in the hot sun would make the children sick and ill ; and water- ing-place lodgings were such horrid holes, never ventilated, and full of smells — people caught fevers at them so often. Valencia was inclined to treat this as " mother's nonsense ; " but Major Campbell said, gravely, that Mrs. Vavasour was perfectly right as to the fact, and her arguments full of sound reason; whereon Valencia said that "of course, if Lucia thought it, Major Campbell would prove it ; and there was no arguing with such Solons as he — " Which Elsley heard, and ground his teeth. Whereon little Scoutbush cried, joyfully, " I have it ; why not go by sea ? Take the yacht, and go 1 Where ? Of course I have it again. 'Pon my word, I 'm growing clever, Valencia, in spite of all your prophecies. Go up the Welsh coast. Nothing so healthy and airy as a sea-voyage ; sea as smooth as a mill-pond, too, and likely to be. And then land, if you like, at Port Madoc, as I meant to do ; and there are my rooms at Beddgelert lying empty. Engaged them a week ago, thinking I should be there by now ; si:> you may as well keep them aired for mo 312 COME AT LAST. Oome, Valencia, pack up your millinery 1 Lucia, get the cradles ready, and we '11 have them all on board by twelve, Capital plan. Vavasour, is n't it ? and, by Jove, what stun ning poetry you will write there under Snowdon 1 " " But will you not want your rooms yourself. Lord Scout- bush ? " said Elsley. " My dear fellow, never mind me. I shall go across the country, I think, see an old friend, and get some otter- hunting. Don't think of me, till you 're there, and then send the yacht back for me. She must be doing something, you know ; and the men are only getting drunk every day here. Come, no arguing about it, or I shall turn you all out of doors into the lane, eh ? " And the little fellow laughed so good-naturedly that Elsley could not help liking him ; and, feeling that he would be both a fool and cruel to his family if he refused so good an offer, he gave in to the scheme, and went out to arrange matters, while Scoutbush went out into the hall with Camp- bell, and scrambled into his pea-jacket, to go off to the yacht that moment. " Tou '11 see to them, there 's a good fellow," as they lighted their cigars at the door. " That Vavasour is greener than grass, you know, tant pis for my poor sister." " I am not going." " Not going ? " " Certainly not ; so my rooms will be at their service, and you had much better escort them yourself. It will be much less disagreeable for Vavasour, who knows nothing of commanding sailors," — or himself, thought the major, — " than finding himself master of your yacht in your absence, and you will get your fishing, as you intended." " But why are you going to stay ? " " 0, I have not half done with the sea-beasts here. I found two new ones yesterday." " Quaint old beetle-hunter you are, for a man who has fought in half a dozen battles 1 " And Scoutbush walked on silently for five minutes. Suddenly he broke out — " I cannot ! By George, I cannot ; and, what 's more, I won't ! " " What ? " " Run away. It will look so — so cowardly, and there 's tie truth of it, before those fine fellows down there ; and just as I am come among them, too I The commander-in- chief to turn tail at the first shot 1 Though I can't be of COME AT LAST. 313 auy use, I know, and I should have liked a fortnight's fish. !ng so," said he, in a dolorous voice, "before going to be eaten up with fleas at Varna ; for this Crimean expedition ia all moonshine." " Don't be too sure of that," said Campbell. " We shall go ; and some of us who go will never come back, Freddy. 1 know those Russians better than many, and 1 have been talking them over lately with Thuruall, who has been in their service." " Has he been at Sevastopol ? " " No. Almost the only place on earth where he has not been ; but, from all he sajte, and from all I know, we are undervaluing our foes, as usual, and shall smart for it." " We '11 lick them, never fear ! " "Yes ; but not at the first round. Scoutbush, your life has been child's play as yet. You are going now to see life in earnest, the sort of life which average people have been living, in every age and country, since Adam's fall ; a life of sorrow and danger, tears and blood, mistake, confu- sion, and perplexity ; and you will find it a very new sensa- tion ; and, at first, a very ugly one. All the more reason for doing what good deeds you can before you go ; for you may have no time left to do any on the other side of the sea." Scoutbush was silent a while. " Well ; I 'm afraid of nothing, I hope, — only I wish one could meet this cholera face to face, as one will those Eus- sians, with a good sword in one's hand, and a good horse between one's knees ; and have a chance of giving him what he brings, instead of being picked off by the cowardly Rockite, no one knows how, and not even from behind a turf dyke, but out of the very clouds." " So we all say, in every battle, Scoutbush. Who ever sees the man who sent the bullet through him ? And yet we fight on. Do you not think the greatest terror, the only real terror, in any battle, is the chance shots which come from no one knows where, and hit no man can guess whom ? If you go to the Crimea, as you will, you will feel what I felt at the Cape, and Cabul, and the Punjab, twenty times, — the fear of dying like a dog, one knew not how." "And yet I '11 fight, Campbell 1 " " Of course you will, and take your chance. Do so now I " " By Jove, Campbell — I always say it — you 're the most sensible man I ever met ; and, by Jove, that doctor comes 27 314 COME AT LAST. the next. My sister shall have the yacht, aad 1 'U gt; up to Penalva." "You will do two good deeds at once, then," said the major. " You will do what is right, and you will give heart to many a poor wretch here. Believe me, Scoutbush, you will never jepent of this." "By Jove, it always does one good to hear you talk in that way, Campbell ! One feels — I don't know— so much of a man when one is with you ; not that I shan't take uncommonly good care of myself, old fellow ; that is but fair; but, as for running away, as I said, why — why — why I can't, and so I won't ! " * " By the by," said the major, "there is one thing which I have forgotten, and which they will never recollect. la the yacht victualled — with fresh meat and green stuflT, I mean ? " "Whew— w— 1" " I will go back, borrow a lantern, and forage in the garden, like an old campaigner. I have cut a salad with my sword before now." "And made it in your helmet, with Macassar sauce ?" And the two went their ways. Meanwhile, before they had left the room, a notable con- versation had been going on between Valencia and Headley. Headley had reentered the room so much paler than lie went out, that everybody noticed his altered looks. Valen- cia chose to attribute them to fear. " So 1 Are you returned from the sick man already, Mr. Headley ? " asked she, in a marked tone. " I have been forbidden by the doctor to go near him at present, Miss St. Just," said he, quietly, but in a sort of under-voice, which hinted that he wished her to ask no more questions. A shade passed over her forehead, and shp began chatting rather noisily to the rest of the party, till Elsley, .ler brother, and Campbell, went out. Valencia looked up at him, expecting him to go too. Mrs. Vavasour began bustling about the room, collecting little valuables, and looking over her shouldeis at the now UD Tsrelcome guest. But Prank leaned back in a cosey arm- chair, and did not stir. His hands were clasped on his knees ; he seemed lost in thought, very pale, but there was a firm-set look about his lips which attracted Valencia's attention. Once he looked up in Valencia's face, and saw that she was looking at him. A flush came over his cheeks for a moment, and then he seemed as impassive as ever. COME AT LAST. 31ft What could he want there ? How very gauche and rude of him ; so unlike him, too I And she said, civilly enough, to him, " I fear, Mr. Headley, we must begin packing up now." "I fear you must, indeed," answered he, as if starting from a dream. He spoke in a tone, and with a look, which made both the women start ; for what they meant it was impossible to doubt. " I fear you must. I have foreseen it a long time ; and BO, I fear (and he rose from his seat), must I, unless I mean to be very rude. You will at least take away with you the knowledge, that you have given to one person's existence, at least for a few weeks, pleasure more intense than he thought earth could hold." " 1 trust that pretty compliment was meant for me," said Lucia, half playful, half reproving. " I am sure that it ought not to have been meant for me," said Valencia, more downright than her sister. Both could see for whom it was meant, by the look of passionate worship which Prank fixed on a face which, after all, seemed made to be worshipped. " I trust that neither of you," answered he, quietly, " think me impertinent enough to pretend to make love, as it is called, to Miss St. Just. I know who she is, and who I am. Gentleman as I am, and the descendant of gentle- men " (and Prank looked a little proud, as he spoke, and very handsome), "I see clearly enough the great gulf fixed between us ; and I like it ; for it enables me to say truth which I otherwise dare not have spoken ; as a brother might say to a sister, or a subject to a queen. Either analogy will do equally well, and equally ill." Prank, without the least intending it, had taken up the very strongest military position. Let a man once make a woman understand, or fancy, that he knows that he is noth- ing to her ; and confess boldly that there is a great gulf fixed between them, which he has no mind to bridge over ; and then there is little that he may not say or do, for good or for evil. And therefore it was that Lucia answered gently, " I am sure you are not well, Mr. Headley. The excitement of the night has been too much for you." " Do I look excited, my dear madam ? " he answered quietly. " I assure you that I am as calm as a man must be who believes that he has but a few days to live, and trusts, too, that when he dies, he will be infinitely happier than he 'ver has been on earth, and lay down an ofSco 316 COME AT LAST. which he has never discharged otherwise than ill ; which has been to him a constant source of shame and sorrow." " Do not speak so ! " said Valencia, with her Irish im- petuous generosity ; " you are unjust to yourself. We have watched you, felt for you, honored you, even when we differed from you." What more she would have said, I know not ; but at that moment Elsley's peevish voice was heard calling over the stairs, " Lucia ! Lucia ! " " 0, dear ! He will wake the children 1 " cried Lucia, 'ooking at her sister, as much as to say, " how can 1 leave you ? " " Eun, run, my dear creature ! " said Valencia, with a self-confident smile ; and the two were left alone. The moment that Mrs. Vavasour left the room, there vanished from Prank's face that intense look of admiration which had made even Valencia uneasy. He dropped his eyes, and his voice faltered as he spoke again. He acknowl- edged the change in their position, and Valencia saw that he did so, and liked him the better for it. " I shall not repeat, Miss St. Just, now that we are alone, what I said just now of the pleasure which I have had dur- ing the last month. I am not poetical, or given to string metaphors together ; and I could only go over the same dull words once more. But I could ask, if I were not asking too much, leave to prolong at least a shadow of that pleas- ure to the last moment. That I shall die shortly, and of this cholera, is with me a fixed idea, which nothing can remove. No, madam — it is useless to combat it! But had I anything, by which to the last moment I could bring back to my fancy what has been its sunlight for so long ; even if it were a scrap of the hem of your garment, ay, a grain of dust off your feet — God forgive me 1 He and hia mercy ought to be enough to keep me up ; but one's weak- ness may be excused for clinging to such slight floating straws of comfort." Valencia paused, startled, and yet affected. How she had played with this deep pure heart 1 And yet, was it pure ? Did he wish, by exciting her pity, to trick her into giving him what he might choose to consider a token of affection ? And she answered coldly enough — " I should be sorry, after what you have just said, to chance hurting you by refusing. I put it to your own good feeling — have you not asked somewhat too much ? " " Certainly too much, madam, in any common case," said COME AT LAST. 311 he, quite unmoved. " Certainly too much, if I asked you for it, as I do not, as the token of an affection which I know well you do not, cannot feel. But — take my words as. they stand — were you to — it would be returned, if I die, in a few weeks ; and returned still sooner if I live. And, madam," said he, lowering his voice, " I vow to you, before him who sees us both, that, as far as I am concerned, no human being shall ever know of the fact." Prank had at last touched the wrong chord. " What, Mr. Headley ? Can you think that I am to have secrets in common with you, or with any other man ? No, sir I If I granted your request, I should avow it as openly as I shall refuse it." And she turned sharply towards the door. Frank Headley was naturally a shy man ; but extreme need sometimes bestows on shyness a miraculous readiness — (else why, in the long run, do the shy men win the best wives ? which is a fact, and may be proved by statistics, at least as well as anything else can) — so he quietly stepped to Valencia's side, and said in a low voice — " You cannot avow the refusal half as proudly as I shall avow the request, if you will but wait till your sister's return. Both are unnecessary, I think ; but it will only be an honor to me to confess, that, poor curate as I am — " " Hush ! " and Valencia walked quietly up to the table, and began turning over the leaves of a book, to gain time for her softened heart and puzzled brain. In five minutes Frank was beside her again. The book was Tennyson's "Princess." She had wandered — who can tell why — to that last exquisite scene, which all know ; and, as Valencia read. Prank quietly laid a finger on the book, and arrested her eyes at — " If you be, what I think you, some sweet dream, « * * V * « Stoop down, and seem to kiss me ere I die ! " Valencia shut the book up hurriedly and angrily. A moment after she had made up her mind what to do, and with the slightest gesture in the world, motioned Prank proudly and coldly to follow her back into the window. Had she been a country girl, she would have avoided the ugly matter ; but she was woman of the world enough to see that she must, for her own sake and .his, talk it out reasoB- ably. 27* S18 COME AT LAST. " "What do you mean, Mr. Headley ? I must ask 1 You told me just now that you had no intention of making love to me." " I told you the truth," said he, in his quiet impassive roice. " 1 fixed on these lines as apis aller ; and they have done all, and more than I wished, by bringing you back here for at least a moment." " And do you suppose — you speak like a rational man, therefore I must troat you as one — that I can grant your request ? " " Why not ? It is an uncommon one. If I have guessed your character aright, you are able to do uncommon things. Had I thought you enslaved by etiquette, and by the fear of a world which you can make bow at your feet if you will, I should not have asked you. But," — and here his voice took a tone of deepest earnestness — " grant it — only grant it, and you shall never repent it. Never, never, never will I cast one shadow over a light which has been so glorious, 60 life-giving ; which I watched with delight, and yet lose without regret. Go your way, and God be with you 1 I go mine ; grant me but a fortnight's happiness, and then — let what will come ! " He had conquered. The quiet earnestness of the voice, the childlike simplicity of the manner, of which every word conveyed the most delicate flattery — yet, she could see, without intending to flatter, without an after-thought — all these had won the impulsive Irish nature. For all the dukes and marquises in Belgravia she would not have done it ; for they would have meant more than they said, even when they spoke more clumsily ; but for the plain country curate she hesitated, and asked herself, " What shall I give him ? " The rose from her bosom ? No. That was too significant at once, and too common-place ; besides, it might wither, and he fiiid an excuse for not restoring it. It must be some- thing valuable, stately, formal, which he must needs return. And she drew off a diamond hoop, and put it quietly into his hand. " You promise to return it ? " " I pronaised long ago." He took it, and lifted it — she thought that he was going to press it to his lips. Instead, he put it to his forehead, bowing forward, and moved it slightly. She saw that he made with it the sign of the Cross. " I thank you," he said, with a look of quiet gratitude COMK AT LAST. 319 " I expected as much, when you came to understand my request. Again, thank you I " and he drew back humbly, and left her there alone ; while her heart smote her bitterly for all the foolish encouragement which she had given to one so tender, and humble, and delicate, and true. And so did Frank Headley get what he wanted ; by that plain, earnest^jmBlicitjpwlrtgS°1ias more power (let world- lings pride themselves as they will on their knowledge of women) tha n all the c unningjyiles of the most experienced rake ; and only by aping which, after all, can the rake con- quer. It was a strange thing for Valencia to do, no doubt ; but the strange things which are done in the world (which are some millions daily) are just what keep the world alivo CHAPTER XVII. baalzebub's basquet. The next day there were three cholera cases ; the day after there were thirteen. He had come at last, — Baalzebub, god of flies, and of what flies are bred from, — to visit his self-blinded worshippers, and bestow on them his own Cross of the Legion of Dishonor. He had come suddenly, capriciously, sportively, as he some- times comes ; as he had come to Newcastle the summer before, while yet the rest of England was untouched. He had wandered all but harmless about the West country that summer ; as if his maw had been full-glutted five years before, when he sat for many a week upon the Dartmoor hills, amid the dull brown haze, and sun-burnt bents, and dried up watercourses of white dusty granite, looking far and wide over the plague-struck land, and listening to the dead-bell booming all day long in Tavistock churchyard. But he was come at last, with appetite more fierce than ever, and had darted aside to seize on Aberalva, and not to let it go tiU he had sucked his fill. And all men moved about the streets slowly, fearfully ; conscious of some awful unseen presence, which might spring on them from round every corner ; some dreadful inevitable spell, which lay upon them like a nightmare weight ; and walked to and fro warily, looking anxiously into each other's faces, not to ask, " How are you ? " but "How am I?" " Do I look as if — ?" and glanced up ever and anon restlessly, as if they expected to see, like the Greeks, in their tainted camp by Troy, the pitiless Sungod shooting his keen arrows down on beast and man. All night long the curdled cloud lay low upon the hills, wrapping in its hot blanket the sweltering, breathless town ; and roUed off sullenly when the sun rosa high, to let him pour down his glare, and quicken iato evil life aU evil things. For Baalzebub is a sunny fiend; and loves not storm and tempest, thunder, and lashing rains ; but th» (320) BAALZEBUB'S BANQUET. 321 broad bright sun, and broad blue sky, under which he can take his pastime merrily, and laugh at all the shame and agony below ; and, as he did at his great banquet in New Orleans once, madden all hearts the more by the contrast between the pure heaven above and the foul hell below. And up and down the town the foul fiend sported, now here, now there ; snapping daintily at unexpected victims, as if to make confusion worse confounded, to belie Thur- nall's theories and prognostics, and harden the hearts of fools by fresh excuses for believing that he had nothing to do with drains and water, — that he was " only " — such an only 1 — " the visitation of God." He has taken old Beer's second son ; and now he clutches at the old man himself ; then across the street to Gentleman Jan, his eldest ; but he is driven out from both houses by chloride of lime and peat-dust, and the colony of the Beers has peace a while. Alas ! there are victims enough and to spare beside them, too ready for the sacrifice ; and up the main street he goes unabashed, springing in at one door and at another, on either side the street, but fondest of the western side, where the hill slopes steeply down to the house-backs. He fleshes his teeth on every kind of prey. The drunken cobbler dies, of course ; but spotless cleanliness and sobri- ety does not save the mother of seven children, who has been soaking her brick floor daily with water from a poisoned well, defiling where she meant to clean. Youth does not save the buxom lass, who has been filling herself, as girls will do, with unripe fruit ; nor innocence the two iair ohil- dren who were sailing their feather-boats yesterday iii the quay-pools, as they have sailed them for three years past, and found no hurt ; piety does not save the bed-riaden old dame, bed-ridden in the lean-to garret, who moaos, " It is the Lord! "and dies. It is "the Lord" to her, though Baalzebub himself be the angel of release. And yet all tne while sots and fools escape where wise men fall ; weakly women, living amid all wretchedness, nurse, unharmed, strong men who have breathed fresh ail all day. Of one word of scripture, at least, BAalzebub is raindful ; for " one is taken and another left." Still, there is a method in his seeming madnesii. His eye falls on a blind alley, running back from the main street, backed at the upper end by a high wall of rock. There is a God-send for him — a devil's-send, rather, to apeak plain truth ; and in he dashes, and never leaves thai court, let 322 baalzebub's banqdet. brave Tom wrestle with him as he may, till he has taken one from every house. That court belonged to Ti'eluddra, the old fish-jowder. He must do something. Thurnall attacks him ; Ma,ior Campbell, Headley ; the neighbors join in the cry ; for there is no mistaking cause and effect there, and no one bears a great love to him ; besides, terrified and conscience- stricken men are glad of a scape-goat ; and some of those who were his stoutest backers in the vestry are now, in their terror, th^ loudest against him, ready to impute the whole cholera to him. Indeed, old Beer is ready to declare that it was Treluddra's fish-heaps that poisoned him and his ; so, all but mobbed, the old sinner goes up — to set the houses to rights ? No ; to curse the whole lot for a set of pigs, and order them to clean the place out them- selves, or he will turn them into the street. He is one of those base natures, whom fact only lashes into greater fury, a Pharaoh whose heart the Lord himself can only harden ; — such men there are, and women too, grown gray in lies, to reap at last the fruit of lies. But he carries back with him to his fish-heaps a little invisible somewhat which he did not bring ; and, ere nightfall, he is dead hideously ; he, his wife, his son ; — and now the Beers are down again, and the whole neighborhood of Treluddra's house is wild with disgusting agony. Now the fiend is hovering round the fish-curing houses ; but turns back, disgusted with the pure scent of the tan- yard, where not hides but nets are barked ; skips on board of a brig in the quay-pool ; and a poor collier's 'prentice dies and goes to his own place. What harm has he done ? Is it his sin that, ill-fed and well-beaten daily, he has been left to sleep on board, just opposite the sewer's mouth, in a berth some four feet long by two feet high and broad ? Or is it that poor girl's sin, who was just now in Heale's shop, talking to Miss Heale safe and sound, that she ia carried back into it, in half an hour's time, fainting, shriek- ing. One must draw a veil over the too hideous details. No, not her fault ; but there, at least, the curse has not come without a cause. For she is Tardrew's daughter. But whither have we got ? How long has the cholera been in Aberalva ? Five days, five minutes, or five years ? How many suns have risen and set since Frank Headley put into his bosom Valencia's pledge ? It would be hard for him to tell, and hard for many more ; for all the days have passed as in a fever dream. To cow BAALZEBUB'S BANQUET. 323 ards the time has seemed endless ; and every moment, ere their term shall come, an age of terror, of self-reproach, of superstitious prayers and cries, which are not repentance. And to some cowards, too, the days have seemed but as a moment, for they have been drunk day and night. Strange and hideous, yet true. It has now become a mere common-place, the strange power which great crises, pestilences, famines, revolutions, invasions, have to call out in their highest power, for evil and for good alike, the passions and virtues of man ; how, during their stay, the most desperate recklessness, the most ferocious crime, side by side with the most heroic and unex- pected virtue, are followed generally by a collapse and a moral death; alike of virtue and of vice. We should explain this now-a-days, and not ill, by saying that these crises put the human mind into a state of exaltation ; but the truest explanation, after all, lies in the old Bible belief, that in these times there goes abroad the unquenchable fire of God, literally kindling up all men's hearts to the highest activity and showing, by the light of their own strange deeds, the inmost recesses of their spirits, till those spirits burn down again, self-consumed, while the chaff and stubble are left as ashes, not valueless after all, as manure for some future crop ; and the pure gold, if gold there be, alone remains behind. Even so it was in Aberalva during that fearful week. The drunkards drank more ; the swearers swore more than ever ; the unjust shopkeeper clutched more greedily than ever at the few last scraps of mean gain which remained for him this side the grave ; the selfish wrapped themselves up more brutally than ever in selfishness ; the shameless women mingled desperate debauchery with fits of frantic supersti- tion ; and all base souls cried out together, "Let us eat and drink, for to-morrow we die ! " But many a brave man and many a weary woman pos- sessed their souls in patience, and worked on, and found that as their day their strength should be. And to them the days seemed short indeed ; for there was too much to be done in them for any note of time. Headley and Campbell, Grace and old Willis, and last, but not least, Tom Thurnall, — these, and three or four brave women, organized themselves into aright gallant and well-disciplined band, and commenced at once a visitation from house to house, saving thereby, doubtless, many a life ; but, ere eight-and-forty hours were passed, the housfl 324 baalzebub's banquet. visitation languished. It was as much as they could do tc attend to the acute cases. And little Scoutbush ? He could not nurse, nor doctor ; but what he could he did. He bought, and fetched all that money could procure. He galloped over to the justice's, and obtained such summary powers as he could ; and then, like a true Irishman, exceeded them recklessly, breaking into premises right and left, in an utterly burglarious fash- ion. He organized his fatigue party, as he called them, of scavengers, and paid the cowardly clods five shillings a day each to work at removing all removable nuisances ; he walked up and down the streets for hours, giving the sail- ors cigars from his own case, just to show them that he was not afraid, and therefore they need not be ; and, if^it was somewiiaiJiis:^iUtt_tliat^the horse. was stolen, he at least diSTMsbest after the event tcr~shut the stable-door. The five real workers toiled on, meanwhile, in perfect harmony and implicit obedience to the all-knowing Tom, but with the most difierent inward feelings. Four of them seemed to forget death and danger ; but each remembered them in his own fashion. Major Campbell longed to die, and courted death. Prank believed that he should die, and was ready for death. Grace longed to die, but knew that she should not die till she had found Tom's belt, and was content to wait. Willis was of opinion that an " old man must die some day, and some how — as good one way as another ; " and all his concern was to run about after his maid, seeing that she did not tire herself, and obeying all her orders with sailor-like precision and cleverness. And Tom ? He just thought nothing about danger and death at all. Always smiling, always cheerful, always busy, yet never in a hurry, he went up and down, seem- ingly ubiquitous. Sleep he got when he could, and food as often as he could ; into the sea he leaped morning and night, and came out fresher every time ; the only person in the town who seemed to grow healthier, and actually hap- pier, as the work went on. " You really must be careful of yourself," said Campbell, at last. " You carry no charmed life." " My dear sir, I am the most cautious and selfish man in tne town. I am living by rule ; I have got — and what greater pleasure ? — a good stand-up fight with an old enemy, and be sure I shall keep myself in condition for it. I have written off for help to the board of health ; and 1 baalzebub's banquet. 325 shall not be shoved against the ropes till the government man comes down." "And then?" " I shall go to bed and sleep for a month. Never mind me, but mind yourself, and mind that curate — he is a noble brick ; if all parsons in England were like him, I 'd — What 's here, now ? " Miss Heale came shrieking down the street. " 0, Mr. Thurnall ! Miss Tardrew ! Miss Tardrew ! " " Screaming will only make you ill, too, miss. Where ib Miss Tardrew ? " " In the surgery ; — and my mother I " " I expected this," said Tom. " The old man will go next." He went into the surgery. The poor girl was in collapse already. Mrs. Heale was lying on the sofa, stricken. The old man hanging over her, brandy-bottle in hand. "Put away that trash I " cried Tom; "you've had too much already." " 0, Mr. Thurnall, she's dying, and I shall die too 1 " " You I you were all right this morning." " But I shall die ; I know I shall, and go to hell 1 " " You '11 go where you ought ; and, if you give way to this miserable cowardice, you '11 go soon enough. Walk out, sir ! Make yourself of some xxab, and forget your fear. Leave Mrs. Heale to me." The wretched old man obeyed him, utterly cowed, and went out, but not to be of use ; he had been helplessly boozy from the first — half to fortify his body against infec- tion, half to fortify his heart against conscience. Tom had never reproached him for his share in the public folly. Indeed, Tom had never reproached a single soul. Poor wretches who had insulted him had sent for him, with abject shrieks. "0, doctor, doctor, save me ! 0, forgive me ! 0, if I 'd minded what you said I 0, don't think of what I said ! " And Tom had answered cheerfully, " Tut, tut, never mind what might have been ; let 's feel your pulse." But, though Tom did not reproach Heale, Heale re- proached himself He had just conscience enough left to feel the whole weight of his abused responsibility, exagger- ated and defiled by superstitious horror ; and, maudlin tipsy, he wandered about the street, moaning that he had murdered his wife, and all the town, and asking pardon of every one he met ; till, seeing one of the meeting-Louseaf 28 S26 BAALZEBUB'S BANQUET. open, he staggered in, in the vague hope of comfort which he knew he did not deserve. In half an hour Tom was down the street again to Head- ley's. " Where is Miss Harvey ? " " At the Beers'." " She must go up to Heale's instantly. The mother will die. Those cases of panic seldom recover. And Miss Heale may very likely follow her. She has shrieked and sobbed herself into it, poor fool 1 and Grace must go to her at once ; she may bring her to common sense and courage, and that is the only chance." Grace went, and literally talked and prayed Miss Heale into life again. " You are an angel," said Tom to her that very even- ing, when he found the girl past danger. " Mr. Thurnall 1 " said Grace, in a tone of sad and most meaning reproof " But you are 1 And these owls are not worthy of you." " This is no time for such language, sir 1 After all, what am I doing more than you ? " And Grace went up stairs again, with a cold, hard countenance which belied utterly the heart within. That was the critical night of all. The disease seemed 1-0 have done its worst in the likeliest spots ; but cases of panic increased all the afternoon ; and the gross number was greater than ever. Tom did not delay inquiring into the cause ; and he dis- covered it. Headley, coming out the next morning, after two hours' fitful sleep, met him at the gate ; his ■ usual business-like trot was exchanged for a fierce and hurried stamp. When he saw Frank, he stopped short, and burst out into a story which was hardly intelligible, so interlarded was it with oaths. " For Heaven's sake ! Thurnall, calm yourself, and do not swear so frightfully ; it is so unlike you 1 What can have upset you thus ? " " Why should I not curse and swear in the street," gasped he, ' ' while every fellow who calls himself a preacher is allowed to do it in the pulpit with impunity ! Fine him five shillings for every curse, as you might if people had courage and common sense, and then complain of me I I am a fool, I know, though. But I cannot stand it I To have "all my work undone by a brutal, ignorant fanatic I — it is too much I Here, if you will believe it, are those preaching fellows getting up a revival, or some such baalzebub's banquet. 327 invention, just to make money out of the cholera I They have got down a great gun from the country town. Twice a day they are preaching at them, telling them that it is all God's wrath against their sins ; that it is impious to inter- fere, and that I am fighting against God, and the end of the world is coming, and they and the devil only know what. If I meet one of them, I '11 wring his neck, and be hanged for it 1 0, you parsons 1 you parsons ! " and Tom ground his teeth with rage. " Is it possible ? How did you find this out ? " " Mrs. Heale had been in, listening to their howling, just before she was taken. Heale went in when I turned him out of doors ; came home raving mad, and is all but blue now. Three cases of women have I had this morning, all frightened into cholera, by their own confession, by last night's tom-foolery. Game home howling, fainted, and were taken before morning. One is dead, the other two will die. You must stop it, or I shall have half a dozen more to-night ! Go into the meeting, and curse the cur to his face 1 " " I cannot," cried Frank, with a gesture of despair. " I cannot 1 " " Ah ! your cloth forbids you, I suppose, to enter the non- conformist opposition-shop." " You are unjust, Thurnall 1 What are such rules at a moment like this ? I'd break them, and the bishop would hold me guiltless. But I cannot speak to these people. I have no eloquence — no readiness — they do not trust me — would not believe me — God help me 1 " and Frank cov- ered his face with his hands, and burst into tears. " Not that, for Heaven's sake 1 " said Tom, " or wo shall have you blue next, my good fellow. I 'd go myself, but they 'd not hear me, for certain. I am no Christian, I sup- pose ; at least I can't talk their slang ; but I know who can ! We '11 send Campbell I " Frank hailed the suggestion with rapture, and away they went ; but they had an hour's good search from sufferer to Eufferer before they found the major. He heard them quietly. A severe gloom settled over his face. " I will go," said ho. At six o'clock that evening, the meeting-house was filling with terrified women, and half-curious, halt-sneering men ; and among them the tall figure of Major Campbell, in his undress uniform, — which he had put on, wisely, to give a 328 baalzebub's banquet. certain dignity to his mission, — stalked in, and took his seat in the back benches. The sermon was what he expected. There is no need tc transcribe it. Such discourses may be heard often enough in churches as well as chapels. The preacher's object seemed to be — for some purpose or other which we have no right to ludge — to excite in his hearers the utmost intensity of self ish fear, by language which, certainly, as Tom had said, came under the law against profane cursing and swearing. He described the next world in language which seemed a strange jumble of Virgil's jEneid, the Koran, the dreams of those rabbis who crucified our Lord, and of those mediaeval inquis- itors who tried to convert sinners — and, on their own ground, neither illogically nor over-harshly — by making this world for a few hours as like as possible to what, so they held, God was going to make the world to come forever. At last he stopped suddenly, when he saw that the animal excitement was at the very highest ; and called on aU who felt " convinced " to come forward and confess their sins. In another minute there would have been — as there have been ere now — four or five young girls raving and tossing upon the floor, in mad terror and excitement ; or, possibly, half the congregation might have rushed out — as a congre- gation has rushed out ere now — headed by the preacher himself, and ran headlong down to the quay-pool, with shrieks and shouts, declaring that they had cast the devil out of Betsey Pennington, and were hunting him into the sea ; but Campbell saw that the madness must be stopped at once ; and rising, he thundered, in a voice which brought all to their senses in a moment — " Stop 1 I, too, have a sermon to preach to you ; I trust I am a Christian man, and that not of last year's making, or the year before. Follow me outside, if you be rational beings, and let me tell you the truth — God's truth ! Men ! " he said, with an emphasis on the word, "you, at least, will give me a fair hearing, and you, too, modest married women I Leave that fellow with the shameless hussies who Hke to go into fits at his feet I " The appeal was not in vain. The soberer majority fol- lowed him out ; the insane minority soon followed, in tho mere hope of fresh excitement ; while the preacher was fain to come also, to guard his flock from the wolf Campbell baalzebub's banquet. 329 sprang upon a large block of stone, and, taking off his cap, opened his mouth, and spake unto them. Readers will doubtless desire to hear what Major Camp- bell said ; but they will be disappointed ; and, perhaps, it is better for them that they should be. Let each of them, if they think it worth while, write for themselves a discourse fitting for a Christian man, who loved and honored his Bible too much to find in a few scattered texts, all misinterpreted, and some mistranslated, excuses for denying fact, reason, common justice, the voice of God in his own moral sense, and the whole remainder of the Bible from beginning to end. Whatsoever words he spoke, they came home to those wild hearts with power. And when he paused, and looked intently into the faces of his auditory, to see what effect he was producing, a murmur of assent and admiration rose from the crowd, which had now swelled to half the population of the town. And no wonder ; no wonder that as the men were enchained by the matter, so were the women by the mannefT'Tlte grand Fead, like a gray granite peak against the clear blue-sky ; the talLfigure, with all its martial state- liness and ease ; the gesture of his long arm, so graceful, and yet so self-restrained ; the tones of the voice which poured from beneath that proud moustache, now tender as a girl's, now ringing like a trumpet over roof and sea. There were old men there, old beyond the years of man, who said that they had never seen nor heard the hke ; but it must be like what their fathers had told them of, when John Wesley, on the cliffs of St. Ives, out-thundered the thunder of the i gale. To Grace he seemed one of the old Scotch Covenant- ers of whom she had read, risen from the dead to preach there, from his rock beneath the great temple of God's air, a wider and a juster creed than theirs. Frank drew Thurn- all's arm through his, and whispered, " I shall thank you for this to my dying day ; " but Thurnall held down hie head. He seemed deeply moved. At last, half to himself, - " Humph 1 I believe that between this man and that girl you will make a Christian even of me some day ! " But the lull was only for a moment. For Major Campbell, looking round, discerned among the crowd the preacher, whispering and scowling amid a knot of women ; and a sud- den fit of righteous wrath came over him. " Stand out there, sir, you preacher, and look me in the face, if you can I " thundered he. " We are here on common 28* 330 baalzebub's banquet. ground as free men, beneath God's heaven and God'u eye Stand out, sir ! and answer me if you can ; or be forovei silent ! " Half in unconscious obedience to the soldier-like word of command, half in jealous rage, the preacher stepped forward, gasping for breath, — " Don't listen to him ! He is a messenger of Satan, sent to damn you — a lying prophet I Let the Lord judge be- tween me and him ! Stop your ears — a messenger of Satan — a Jesuit in disguise ! " " You lie, and you know that you lie 1 " answered Camp, bell, twirling slowly his long moustache, as he always did when choking down indignation. " But you have called on the Lord to judge ; so do I. Listen to me, sir ! Dare you, in the presence of God, answer for the words which you have spoken this day ? " A strange smile came over the preacher's face. " I read my title clear, sir, to mansions in the skies Well for you if you could do the same." Was it only the setting sun, or was it some inner light from the depths of that great spirit, which shone out in all his countenance, and filled his eyes with awful inspiration, as he spoke, in a voice calm and sweet, sad and regretful, and yet terrible from the slow distinctness of every vowel and consonant ? " Mansions in the skies ? You need not wait till then, sir, for the presence of God. Now, here, you and I are before God's judgment-seat. Now, here, I call on you to answer to Him for the innocent lives which you have en- dangered and destroyed, for the innocent souls to whom you have slandered their heavenly Father by your devil's doctrines this day ! You have said it. Let the Lord judge between you and me. He knows best how to make his judgment manifest." He bowed his head a while, as if overcome by the awful words which he had uttered, almost in spite of himself, and then stepped slowly down from the stone, and passed through the crowd, which reverently made way for him ; while many voices cried, " Thank you, sir 1 Thank you I " and old Captain Willis, stepping forward, held out his hand to him, a quiet pride in his gray eye. "You will not refuse an old fighting man's thanks, sir! This has been like Elijah's day with Baal's priests on Oarmel." Campbell shook his hand ic silence ; but turned suddenly, BAALZEBUB'S BANQUET. 33 i for another and a coarser voice caught his ear It was Jones, the lieutenant's. "And now, my lads, take the Methodist parson, neck and heels, and heave him into the quay pool, to think over his summons ! " Campbell went back instantly. " No, my dear sir, lei me entreat you for my sake. What has passed has been too terrible to me already ; if it has done any good, do not let us spoil it by breaking the law." " I believe you 're right, sir ; but my blood is up, and no "Fonder. Why, where is the preacher '/ " He had stood quite still for several minutes after Camp- bell's adjuration. He had often, perhaps, himself hurled forth such words in the excitement of preaching ; but never before had he heard them pronounced in spirit and in truth. And, as he stood, Thurnall, who had his doctor's eye on him, saw him turn paler and more pale. Suddenly he clenched his teeth, and stooped slightly forwards for a mo- ment, drawing in his breath. Thurnall walked quickly and steadily up to him. Gentleman Jan and two other riotous fellows had already laid hold of him, more with the intention of frightening, than of really ducking him. " Don't ! don't I " cried he, looking round with eyes wild, but not with terror. "Hands off, my good lads," said Tom, quietly. "This is my business now, not yours, I can tell you." And passing the preacher's arm through his own, with a serious face, Tom led'^imToffSto the house at the back of the chapel. In two hours more he js^as blue ; in four he was a cor£se;^__The judgmSirtT^ usual, ha.d'needed no miracle foenforce it. Tom went to Campbell that night, and apprised him of the fact. "Those words of yours went through him, sir, like a Minie bullet. I was afraid of what would happen when I heard them." " So was I, the moment after they were spoken. Bui , sir, I felt a power upon me, — you may think it a fancy, — that there was no resisting." " I dare impute no fancies, when I hear such truth and reason as you spoke upon that stone, sir." " Then you do not blame me f " asked Campbell, with a subdued, almost deprecatory voice, such as Thurn.ill had never heard in him before. 532 baalzebub's banquet. " The man deserved to die, and he died, bit. It is w(,ll that there are some means left on earth of punishing offend- ers whom the law cannot touch." " It, is an awful responsibility." "Not more awful than killing a man in battle, which we both have done, sir, and yet have felt no sting of con- science." " An awful responsibility still. Yet what else is life made up of, from morn to night, but of deeds which may earn heaven or hell ? . . . Well, as he did to others, so was it done to him. God forgive him 1 At least, our cause will be soon tried and judged ; there is little fear of my not meeting him again — soon enough." And Campbell, with a sad smile, lay back in his chair and was silent. "My dear sir," said Tom, "allow me to remind you, after this excitement comes a collapse ; and that is not to be trifled with just now. Medicine I dare not give you. Food I must." Campbell shook his head. " You must go now, my dear fellow. It is now half past ten, and I will be at Pennington's at one o'clock, to see how he goes on ; so you need not go there. And, mean- while, I must take a little medicine." " Major, you are not going to doctor yourself? " cried Tom. " There is a certain medicine called prayer, Mr. Thurnall, — an old specific for the heart-ache, as you will find one day, — which I have been neglecting much of late, and which I must return to in earnest before midnight. Grood- by, God bless and keep you I " And the major retired to his bedroom, and did not stir off his knees for two full hours. After which he went to Pennington's, and thence somewhere else ; and Tom met him at four o'clock that morning musing amid unspeakable horrors, quiet, genial, almost cheerful. "You are a man," said Tom to himself; " and I fancy at times something more than a man ; more than me at least." Tom was right in his fear that after excitement would come collapse ; but wrong as to the person to whom it would come. When he arrived at the surgery door. Head- ley stood waiting for him. " Anything fresh ? Have you seen the Heales.? " " I have been praying with them. Don't be Mghir ened. I am not likely to forget the lesson of this after noon." baalzebub's banquet. 333 Then go to bed. It is full twelve o'clock."-- — , " Not yet, I fear. I want you to see old Willis.) All is aot right." ^ " Ah I I thought the poor dear old man would kill him- self. He has been working too hard, and presuming on hia sailor's power of tumbling in and taking a dog's nap when- ever he chose." " I have warned him again and again ; but he was work- ing so magnificently that one had hardly heart to stop him. And, beside, nothing would part him from his maid." " I don't wonder at that I " quoth Tom to himself. " Is she with him ? " " No ; he found himself ill ; slipped home on some pre- tence, and will not hear of our telling her." " Noble old fellow ! Caring for every one but himself to the last." And they went in. It was one of those rare cases, fatal, yet merciful withal, in which the poison seems to seize the very centre of the life, and to preclude the chance of lingering torture by one deadening blow. The old man lay paralyzed, cold, pulseless, but quite collected and cheerful. Tom looked, inquired, shook hia head, and called for a hot bath of salt and water. " Warmth we must have somehow. Anything to keep the fire alight." " Why so, sir ? " asked the old man. " The fire 's been flickering down this many a year. Why not let it go out quietly, at threescore years and ten ? You 're sure my maid don't know'f" ■ They put him into his bath, and he revived a little. " No ; I am not going to get well ; so don't you waste your time on me, sirs ! I 'm taken while doing my duty, as I hoped to be. And I 've lived to see my maid do hers, as I knew she would, when the Lord called on her. I have, — but don't tell her, she 's well employed, and has sorrows enough already, some that you '11 know of some day — " "You must not talk," quoth Tom, who guessed his mean- ing, and wished to avoid the subject. " Yes, but I must, sir. I 've no time to lose. If you 'd but go and see after those poor Heales, and come again. 1 'd like to have one word with Mr. Headley ; and my time funs short." "A hundred, if you will," said Frank. " And now, sir," when they were alone, " only one thing, 'S you '11 excuse an old sailor," and Willis tried vainly to 334 baalzbbub's banquet. make his usual ealutation ; but the cramped hand refused to obey, " and a dying one, too." " What is it ? " " Only don't be hard on the people, sir ; the people here. They 're good-hearted souls, with all their sins, if you 'U only take them as you find them, and consider that they 've had no chance." "Willis, Willis, don't talk of that! I shall be a wiser man henceforth, I trust. At least, I shall not trouble Abe- ralva long." " 0, sir, don't talk so ; and you just getting a hold of them ! " "I ?" " Yes, you, sir. They 've found you out at last, thank Grod ! I always knew what you were, and said it. They 've found you out in the last week ; and there 's not a man in the town but what would die for you, I believe." This announcement staggered Prank. Some men it would have only hardened in their pedantry, and have emboldened them to say, " Ah ! then these men see that^High_Church- jnan-ean_wQrk like any one else, when-there is a practicat^ sacrifice to be made._ Now I have a standing groundTwhich no one can dispute, -from which to go on, and enforce my idea of what he ought to be." But, rightly or wrongly, no such thought crossed Frank's mind. He was just as good a Churchman as ever — why not ? Just as fond of his own ideal of what a parish and a Church service ought to be — why not? But the only thought which did rise in his mind was one of utter self- abasement. " 0, how blind I have been I How I have wasted my time in laying down the law to these people ; fancying myself infallible, as if God were not as near to them as he is to me, — certainly nearer than to any book on my shelves, — offending their little prejudices, little superstitions, in my own cruel self-conceit and self-will 1 And now, the first time that I forget my own rules, the first time that I forget almost that I am a priest, even a Christian at all, that mo- ment they acknowledge me as a priest, as a Christian. The moment I meet them upon the commonest numan ground, helping them as one heathen would help another, simply because he was his own flesh and blood, that moment they soften to me, and show me how much I might have done with them twelve months ago, had I had but common sense I " BAALZEBUB'S BANQUUl. 335 He knelt down and prayed by the old man, for him and for himself. " Would it be troubling you, sir ? " said the old man, at last. " But I 'd like to take the Sacrament before I go." " Of course. Whom shall I ask in f " The old man paused a while. "I fear it's selfish ; but it seems to me — I would not ask it, but that I know I 'm going. I should like to take it with my maid once more before I die." "I'll go for her," said Frank, "the moment Thumall comes back to watch you." " What need to go yourself, sir ? Old Sarah will go and willing." Thurnall catne in at that moment. "I am going to fetch Miss Harvey. Where is she, captain ? " " At Janey Headon's, along with her two poor chil- dren." " Stay," said Tom, " that 's a bad quarter, just at the fish-house back. Have some brandy before you start ? " " No 1 no Dutch courage ! " and Frank was gone. He had a word to say to Grace Harvey, and it must be said at once. He turned down the silent street, and turned up over stone stairs, through quaint stone galleries and balconies, — such as are often huddled together on the cliff sides in fishing towns, — into a stifling cottage, the door of which had been set wide open, in the vain hope of fresh air. A woman met him, and clasped both his hands, with tears of joy. "They're mending, sir! They're mending, else I'd have sent to tell you. I never looked for you so late." There was a gentle voice in the next room. It was Grace's. " Ah, she 's praying by them now. She 'm giving them all their medicines all along 1 Whatever I should have done without her ! — and in and out all day long, too ; till one fancies at whiles the Lord must have changed her into five or six at once, to be everywhere to the same minute." Prank went in, and listened to her prayer. Her face was as pale and calm as the pale, calm faces of the two worn-out babes, whose heads lay on the pillow close to hers ; but her eyes were lit up with an intense glory, which seemed to fiU Ae room with love and light. Frank listened, but would not break the spe'fl. 336 BAALZEBUB'S BANQUET. At last she rose, looked round, and blushed. '• I beg your pardon, ;Sir, for taking the liberty. If I had known that you were about, I would have sent ; but, hear- ing that you were gone home, I thought you would not be ofi'ended if I gave thanks for them myself. They are my own, sir, as it were — " " 0, Miss Harvey, do not talk so ! While you can pray as you were praying then, he who would silence you might be silencing unawares the Lord himself ! " She made no answer, though the change in Frank's tone moved her ; and, when he told her his errand, that thought also passed from her mind. At last, "Happy, happy man 1 " she said, calmly; and, putting on her bonnet, followed Frank out of the house. " Miss Harvey," said Frank, as they hurried up the street, " I must say one word to you before we take that Sacrament together." "Sir?" " It is well to confess all sins before the Eucharist, and I will confess mine. I have been unjust to you. I know that you hate to be praised, so I will not tell you what has altered my opinion. But Heaven forbid that I should ever do so base a thing as to take the school away from one who is far more fit to rule in it than ever I shall be 1 " Grace burst into tears. " Thank God 1 And I thank you, sir 1 0, there 's never a storm but what some gleam breaks through it I And now, sir, I would not have told it you before, lest you should fancy that I changed for the sake of gain — though, perhaps, that is pride, as too much else has been. But you will never hear of me inside either of those chapels again." " What has altered your opinion of them, then ? " " It would take long to teU, sir ; but what happened this morning filled the cup. I begin to think, sir, that their God and mine are not the same. Though why should I judge them, who worshipped that other God myself till no such long time since ; and never knew, poor fool, that the Lord's name was Love." " I have found out that, too, in these last days. More shame to me than to you that I did not know it before." " Well for us both that we do know now, sir. For, if we believed Him now, sir, to be aught but perfect Love, how 30uld we look round here to-night, and not go mad ? " " Amen I " said Frank. baalzebub's banquet. 337 And how had the pestilence, of all things on earth, re- realed to those two noble souls that God is Love ? Let the reader, if he have supplied Campbell's sermon, answer the question for himself They went in, and up stairs to Willis. Grace bent over the old man, tenderly, but with no sign of sorrow. Dry-eyed, she kissed the old man's forehead ; arranged his bed-clothes, woman-like, before she knelt down, and then the three received the Sacrament together. " Don'tjauameuout," whispered Tom. " It 's no concern of mine, of course ; but you are all good creatures, and, somehow, I should likejfijie with you." So Tom staySdrT'andwhat thoughts passed through his heart are no concern of ours. Frank put the cup to the old man's lips ; the lips closed, sipped, — then opened the jaw had fallen. "Gone," said Grace, quietly. Prank paused, awe-struck. "Go on, sir," said she, in a low voice. "He hears it all more clearly than he ever did before." And, by the dead man's side, Frank finished the Communion Service. Grace rose when it was over, kissed the calm forehead, and went out without a word. " Tom," said Prank, in a whisper, " come into the next room with me." Tom hardly heard the tone in which the words were spoken, or he would, perhaps, have answered otherwise than he did. " My father takes the Communion," said he, half to him- self. " At least, it is a beautiful old — " Howsoever the sentence would have been finished, Tom stopped short — " Hey ? What does that mean ? " " At last ? " gasped Prank, gently enough. " Excuse me 1 " He was bowed almost double, crushing Thurnall's arm in the fierce gripe of pain. " Pish I — Hang it ! — Impossible ! — There, you are all right now I " " For the time. I can understand many things now. Curious sensation it is, though. Can you conceive a sword put in on one side of the waist, just above the hip-bone, and drawn through, handle and all, till it passes out at the opposite point ? " " I have felt it twice ; and, therefore, you will be pleased 29 338 baalzebub's banquet. to hold your tongue, and go to bed. Have you had any warnings ? " "Yes, — no, — that is — this morning; but I forgot. Never mind ! What matter a hundred years hence ? There it is again ! God help me I " " Humph 1 " growled Thurnall to himself. " I 'd sooner have lost a dozen of these herring-hogs, whom nobody misses, and who are well out of their life-scrape ; but the kparson, just as he was making a man 1 " There is no use in complaints. In half an hour Prank is BCieaming like a woman, though he has bitten his tongue half through to stop his screams. CHAPTEE XVIII. THE BLACK HOUND. P^H 1 Let US escape anywhere for a breath of fresh air, for even the scent of a clean turf. We have been watching saints and martyrs — perhaps not long enough for the good of our souls, but surely too long for the comfort of our bodies. Let us away up the valley, where we shall find, if not indeed a fresh healthful breeze (for the drought lasts on), at least a cool refreshing down-draught from Carcarrow Moor before the sun gets up. It is just half-past four o'clock, on a glorious August morning. We shall have three hours at least before the heavens become one great Dutch-oven again. We shall have good company, too, in our walk ; for here comes Campbell fresh from his morning's swim, swinging up the silent street toward Frank Headley's lodging. He stops, and tosses a pebble against the window-pane. In a minute or two Thumall opens the streetdoor and slips out to him. " Ah, major ! Overslept myself at last ; that sofa is won- derfully comfortable. No time to go down and bathe. I 'II get my header somewhere up the stream." "How is he?" "He? sleeping like a babe, and getting well as fast as his soul will allow his body. He has something on his mind. Nothing to be ashamed of, though, I will warrant ; for a purer, nobler fellow I never met." " When can we move him ? " " 0, to-morrow, if he will agree. You may all depart and leave me and the government man to make out the returns of killed and wounded. We shall have no more cholera. Eight days without a new case. We shall do now. I 'm glad you are coming up with us." "I will just see the hounds throw off, and then go baci and get Headley's breakfast." " No, no 1 you mustn't, sir ; you want a day's play." ^339) 340 THE BLACK HOUND. "Not half as much as you. And I am in no bunting mood just now. Do you take your fill of the woods and the streams, and let me see to our patient. I suppose you will be back by noon ? " " Certainly." And the two swing up the street, and out of the town, along the vale toward Trebooze. For Trebooze of Trebooze has invited them, and Lord Scoutbush, and certain others, to come out otter-hunting; and otter-hunting they will go. Trebooze has been sorely exercised, during the last fort- night, between fear of the cholera and desire of calling upon Lord Scoutbush — "as I ought to do, of course, as one of the gentry round ; he 's a Whig, of course, and no more to me than anybody else ; but one don't like to let politics interfere ; " by which Trebooze glosses over to himself and friends the deep flunkeydom with which he lusteth after a live lord's acquaintance, and one especially in whom he hopes to find even such a one as himself. ..." Good fellow, I hear he is, too, — good sportsman, smokes like a chim- ney," and so forth. So at last, when the cholera has all but disappeared, he comes down to Penalva, and introdtices himself, half swag- gering, half servile ; begins by a string of apologies for not having called before, — " Mrs. Trebooze so afraid of infec- tion, you see, my lord," — which is a lie ; then blunders out a few fulsome compliments to Scoutbush's courage in stay- ing ; then takes heart at a little joke of Scoutbush's, and tries the free-and-easy style ; fingers his lordship's high- priced Hudsons, and gives a broad hint that he would like to smoke one on the spot; which hint is not taken, any more than the bet of a " pony," which he offers five minutes afterwards, that he will jump his Irish mare in and out of Aberalva pound; is utterly "thrown on his haunches" (as he informs his friend Mr. Creed afterwards), by Scoutbush's praise of Tom Thurnall, as an " invaluable man, a treasure in such an out-of-the-way place, and really better company than ninety-nine men out of a hundred ; " recovers himself again when Scoutbush asks after his otter-hounds, of whicli he has heard much praise fi-om old Tardrew ; and launches out onco more into sporting conversation of that graceful and lofty stamp which may be perused and perpended in the pages of " Han dley Cross," and "Mr. Sponge's Sporting Tour," books painfully true to that uglier and baser side of eporting life, which their clever author has chosen so wilfully to portray. THE BLACK HODND. 341 So, at least, said Scoutbush to himself, when his visitoi l.-ad departed. "He's just like a page out of Sponge's Tour, though he 's not half as good a fellow as Sponge himself; for Sponge knew he was a snob, and lived up to his calling honestly ; but this fellow wants all the while to play at being a gentle- man ; and — Ugh I how the fellow smelt of brandy, and vrorse ! His hand, too, shook as if he had the palsy, and he chattered and fidgeted like a man with St. Vitus's dance." " Did he, my lord ? " quoth Tom Thurnall, when he heard the same, in a very meaning tone. And Trebooze, " for his part, could n't make out that lord — uncommonly agreeable, and easy, and all that; but shoves a fellow off, and sets him down somehow, and in such a * * * civil way, that you don't know where to have him." However, Trebooze departed in high spirits ; for Lord Scoutbush has deigned to say that he will be delighted to see the otter-hounds work any morning that Trebooze likes, and anyhow — no time too early for him. "He will bring his friend Major Campbell ? " " By all means." " Expect two or three sporting gentlemen from the neigh- borhood too. Regular good ones, my lord — though they are county bucks — very much honored to make your lord- ship's acquaintance." Scoutbush expresses himself equally honored by making their acquaintance, in a tone of bland simplicity which utterly puzzles Trebooze, who goes a step further. " Your lordship '11 honor us by taking pot-luck after- wards. Can't show you French cookery, you know, and your souffleys and glacys, and all that. Honest saddle o' mutton, and the grounds of old port. My father laid it down, and I take it up, eh ? " And Trebooze gave a wink and a nudge of his elbow, meaning to be witty. His lordship was exceedingly sorry ; it was the most unfortunate accident ; but he had the most particular engagement that very afternoon, and must return early from the otter-liunt, and probably sail the next day for Wales. " But," says the little man, who knows all about Trebooze's household, " I shall not fail to do myself the honor of calling on Mrs. Trebooze, and expressing my regret," &c. So to the otter-hunt is Scoutbush gone, and Campbell and Thurnall after him ; for Trebooze has said to himself, 29* 342 THE BLACK HOUND. " Must ask that blackguard of a doctor — hang him I 1 wish he were an otter himself; but if he 's so thick with his lordship it won't do to quarrel." For, indeed, Thuruall might tell tales. So Trebooze swallows his spite and shame, — as do many folks who caU themselves his betters, when they have to deal with a great man's hanger-on, — and sends down a note to Tom : " Mr. Trebooze requests the pleasure of Mr. Thurnall'a company with his hounds at . . . ." And Tom accepts — why not ? and chats with Campbell, as they go, on many things ; and among other things on this, — " By the by," said he, " I got an hour's shore-work yesterday afternoon, and refreshing enough it was. And I got a prize too, — the sucking barnacle which you asked for ; I was certain I should get one or two, if I could have a look at the pools this week. Jolly little dog 1 he waa paddling and spinning about last night, and enjoying him- self, ' ere age with creeping ' — what is it ? — ' hath clawed him in his clutch.' That fellow's destiny is not a hopeful analogy for you, sir, who believe that we shall rise after we die into some higher and freer state." "Why not?" " Why, which is better off, the free swimming larva, or the perfect cirrhipod, rooted forever motionless to the rock ? " " Which is better off, the roving young fellow who is sowing his wild oats, or the man who has settled down, and become a respectable landowner, with a good house over his head ? " " And begun to propagate his species ? Well, you have me there, sir, as far as this life is concerned ; but you will confess that the barnacle's history proves that all crawling grubs don't turn into butterflies." " I dare say the barnacle turns into what is best for him ; at all events what he deserves. That rule of yours will apply to him, to whomsoever it wiU not." " And so does penance for the sins of his youth, as some of us are to do in the next world ? " " Perhaps yes ; perhaps no ; perhaps neither." " Do you speak of us, or the barnacle ? " "Of both." " I am glad of that ; for, on the popular notion of oui being punished a million years hence for what we did when THE BLACK HOUND. 343 we wero lads, I never could see anything but a misery and injustice in our having come into the world at all." " I can," said the major quietly. " Of course I meant nothing rude ; but I had to buy my asperience, and paid for it dearly enough in folly." " So had I to buy mine." " Then why be punished over and above ? Why have to pay for the folly, which was itself only the necessary price of experience ? " " For being, perhaps, so foolish as not to use the expe- rience after it has cost you so dear." " And will punishment cure me of the foolishness ? " " That depends on yourself. If it does, it must needs be BO much the better for you. But perhaps you will not be punished, but forgiven." "Let off? That would be a very bad thing for me, unless I become a very different man from what I have been as yet. I am always right glad now to get a fall whenever I make a stumble. I should have gone to sleep in my tracks long ago else, as one used to do in the back-woods on a long elk-hunt." " Perhaps you may become a very different man." " I should be sorry for that, even if it were possible." " Why ? Do you consider yourself perfect ? " " No . . . But, somehow, Thomas Thurnall is an old friend of mine, the first I ever had ; and I should be sorrv to lose his company." " I don't think you need fear doing so. You have seen an Insect go through strange metamorphoses, and yet remain the same individual ; why should not you and I do BO likewise ? " " Well ? " "Well — there are some points about you, I suppose, which you would not be sorry to have altered ? " " A few," quoth Tom, laughing. " I do not consider myself quite perfect yet." " What if those points were not really any part of your character, but mere excrescences of disease ; or, if that be too degrading a notion, mere scars of old wounds, and ol the wear and tear of life ; and what if, in some future life, all those disappeared, and the true Mr. Thomas Thurnall, pure and simple, were alone left ? " " It is a very hopeful notion. Only, my dear sir, one is ^uite self-conceited enough in this imperfect state What 344 THE BLACK HOUND. intolerable coxcombs we should all be if we were perfect, and oould sit admiring ourselves for ever and ever ! " " But what if that self-conceit and self-dependenco were the very root of all the disease, the cause of all the scars, the very thing which will have to be got rid of, before oui true character and true manhood can be developed ? " " Yes, I understand. Faith and humility .... You will forgive me. Major Campbell. I shall learn to respect those virtues when good people have defined them a little more exactly, and can show me somewhat more clearly in what faith differs from superstition, and humility from hypocrisy." " I do not think any man will ever define them for you. But you may go through a course of experiences, more severe, probably, than pleasant, which may enable you at last to define them for yourself." . " Have you defined them ? " asked Tom bluntly, glancing round at his companion. " Faith ? — Yes, I trust. Humility ? — No, I fear." " I should like to hear your definition of the former, at least." " Did I not say that you must discover it for yourself? " " Yes. Well. When the lesson comes, if it does come, I suppose it will come in some learnable shape ; and till then I must just shift for myself — and if self-dependence be a punishable sin, I shall, at all events, have plenty of company whithersoever I go. There is Lord Scoutbush and Trebooze 1 " Why did not Campbell speak his mind more clearly to Thurnall ? Because he knew that with such men words are of little avail. The disease was entrenched too strongly in the very centre of the man's being. It seemed at moments as if all his strange adventures and hairbreadth escapes had been sent to do him harm, and not good ; to pamper and harden his self-confidence, not to crush it. Therefore Campbell seldom argued with him ; but he prayed for him often ; for he had begun, as all did who saw much of Tom Thurnall, to admire and respect him, in spite of all his faults. And now, turning through a woodland path, they descend toward the river, till they can hear voices below them ; Scoutbush laughing quietly, Trebooze laying down the law at the top of his voice. "How noisy the fellow is, and h )w he is hopping about ! " says Campbell. '' No wonder; he has been soaking, I hear, for the last THE BLACK HOUND. 345 fortnight, with some worthy compeers, by way c f keeping off cholera. I must have my eye on him to-day." Scrambling down through the brushwood, they found themselves in such a scene as Creswick alone knows how to paint ; though one element of beauty, which Creswick uses full well, was wanting ; and the whole place was seen, not by slant sun-rays, gleaming through the boughs, and dap- pling all the pebbles with a lacework of leaf shadows, but in the uniform and sober gray of dawn. A broad bed of shingle, looking just now more like an ill- made turnpike road than the bed of Alva stream ; above it, a long shallow pool, which showed every stone through the transparent water ; on the right, a craggy bank, bedded with deep wood sedge and orange-tipped king ferns, clus- tering beneath sallow and maple bushes already tinged with gold ; on the left, a long bar of gravel, covered with giant "butterbur" leaves; in and out of which the hounds are brushing — beautiful black-and-tan dogs, of which poor Trebooze may be pardonably proud ; while round the bur- leaf-bed dances a rough white Irish terrier, seeming, by his frantic self-importance, to consider himself the master of the hounds. Scoutbush is standing with Trebooze beyond the bar, upon a little lawn set thick with alders. Trebooze is fuss- ing and fidgeting about, wiping his forehead perpetually ; telling everybody to get out of the way, and not to inter- fere ; then catching hold of Scoutbush's button to chatter in his face ; then starting aside to put some part of his dress to rights. His usual lazy drawl is exchanged for foolish excitement. Two or three more gentlemen, tired of Tre- booze's absurdities, are scrambling over the rocks above, in search of spraints. Old Tardrew waddles stooping along the line where grass and shingle meet, his bull-dog visage bent to his very knees. " Tardrew out hunting ? " says Campbell. " Why, it ia but a week since his daughter was buried 1 " " And why not ? I like him better for it. Would ho bring her back again by throwing away a good day's sport ? Better turn out, as he has done, and forget his feelings, if he has any." " He has feeling enough, don't doubt. But you are right. There is something very characteristic in the way in which the English countryman never shows grief, never lets it interfere with business — even with pleasure." 346 TUB BLACK HOUND. "Hillol Mr. Trebooze ! " says the old fellow, looking op. " Here it is 1 " "Spraint? Spraint ? Spraint ? Where? Eh— what?" dries Trebooze. " No ; but what 's as good ; here on this alder stump, not an hour old. I thought they beauties starns were n't flem- ishing for nowt." " Here ! Here 1 Here I Here 1 Musical, Musical 1 Sweet- iips I Get out of the way ! " — and Trebooze runs down. Musical examines, throws her nose into the air, and an- swers by the rich, bell-like note of the true otter-hound ; and all the woodlands ring as the pack dashes down the shingle to her call. " Over 1 " shouts Tom. " Here 's the fresh spraint our side ! " Through the water splash squire, viscount, steward, and hounds, to the horror of a shoal of par, the only visible tenants of a pool, which, after a shower of rain, would be alive with trout. Where those trout are in the mean while is a mystery yet unsolved. Over dances the little terrier, yapping furiously, and ex- pending his superfluous energy by snapping right and left at the par. "Hark to Musical 1 hark to Sweetlips 1 Down the stream ? — No I the old girl has it ; right up the bank I " " How do, doctor ? How do. Major Campbell ? For- ward ! Forward I Forward 1 " shouts Trebooze, glad to escape a longer parley, as, with spear in his left hand, he clutches at the over-hanging boughs with his right, and swings himself up, with Peter, the huntsman, after him. Tom follows him ; and why ? Because he does not like his looks. That bull-eye is red, and almost bursting ; his cheeks are flushed, his lips blue, his hand shakes ; and Tom's quick eye has already re- marked, from a distance, over and above his new fussiness, a sudden shudder, a quick, half-frightened glance behind him ; and perceived, too, that the moment Musical gave tongue, he put the spirit-flask to his mouth. Away go the hounds at score through tangled cover, their merry peal ringing from brake and briar, clashing against the rocks, moaning musically away through distant glens aloft. Scoutbush and Tardrew "take down" the riverbed, fol- lowed by Campbell. It is in his way home ; and though the major has stuck many a pig, shot many a gaur, rhiiioc THE BLACK HOUND. Ml eroB, and elephant, he disdains not, like a true isportsman, the less dangerous but more scientific excitement of at otter-hunt. " Hark to the merry, merry Christchurch bells ! She 'a up by this time; — that don't sound like a drag now 1 " cries Tom, bursting desperately, with elbow-guarded visage, through the tangled scrub. "What's the matter, Tre- booze ? No, thanks 1 ' Modest quenchers ' won't improve the wind just now." For Trebooze has halted, panting and bathed in perspira- tion ; has been at the brandy-flask again ; and now offers Tom a " quencher," as he calls it. "As you like," says Treebooze sulkily, having meant it as a token of reconciliation, and pushes on. They are now upon a little open meadow, girdled by green walls of wood ; and along the river-bank the hounds are fairly racing. Tom and Peter hold on ; Trebooze slackens. "Your master don't look right this morning, Peter." Peter lifts his hand to his mouth, to signify the habit of drinking ; and then shakes it in a melancholy fashion, to signify that the said habit has reached a lamentable and desperate point. Tom looks back. Trebooze has pulled up, and is walk- ing, wiping still at his face. The hounds have overrun the scent, and are back again, flemishing about the plashed fence on the river brink. " Over ! over 1 over I " shouts Peter, tumbling over the fence into the stream, and staggering across. Trebooze comes up to it, tries to scramble over, mutters something, and sits down astride of a bough. " You are not well, squire ? " " Well as ever I was in my life I only a little sick — have been several times lately ; could n't sleep either — have n't slept an hour this week. Don't know what it is." " What ducks of hounds those are ! " says Tom, trying, for ulterior purposes, to ingratiate himself. " How they are working there all by themselves, like so many human beings! Perfect! — " " Yes — don't want us — may as well sit here a minute Awfully hot, eh ? What a splendid creature that Miss St Just is ! I say, Peter ! " ' Yes, sir," shouts Peter, from the other side. " Those hounds an't right ! " with an oath. " Not right, sir ? " 31:8 THE BLACK HOUND. " Did n't I tell you ? — five couple and a half — no, fiva couple — no, six. Hang it 1 I can't see, I think ! How many hounds did I tell you to bring out ? " ""Five couple, sir." " Then * * * * ^hy did you bring out that other ? " " Which other ? " shouts Peter, while Thurnall eyes Tre booze keenly. ,' "Why, that! He 's none o' mine I J^aty^lack cur, how did he get here ? " " Where ? There 's never no cur here ! " "You lie, you oaf — no — why — doctor — How many hounds are there here ? " "I can't see," says Tom, "among those bushes." "Can't see, eh? Why don't those brutes hit it off?" says Trebooze, drawling, as if he had forgotten the matter, and, lounging over the fence, drops into the stream, followed by Tom, and wades across. The hounds are all round him, and he is couraging them on, fussing again more than ever ; but without success. " Gone to holt somewhere here," says Peter. "***!" cries Trebooze, looking round with a sudden shudder, and face of terror. " There 's that black brute again ! there, behind me 1 Hang it, he '11 bite me next ! " and he caught up his leg, and struck behind him with hia spear. There was no dog there. Peter was about to speak ; but Tom silenced him by a look, and shouted, — " Here we are I Gone to holt in this alder root I " " Now then, little Carlingford 1 Out of the way, pup- pies 1 " cries Trebooze, righted again for the moment by the excitement, and thrusting the hounds right and left, he stoops down to put in the little terrier. Suddenly he springs up, with something like a scream, and then bursts out on Peter with a volley of oaths. "Did n't I tell you to drive that cur away ? " " Which cur, sir ? " cries Peter, trembling and utterly confounded. "That cur ! * * * Can't I believe my own eyes ? Will you tell me that the beggar did n't bolt between my legs this moment, and went into the hole before the terrier?" Neither answered. Peter from utter astonishment ; Tom because he saw what was the matter. " Don't stoop, squire. You '11 make the blood fly to yom head. Let me — " THE BLACK HOUND. 346 Bflt Trebooze thrust him back with curses. "I'll have the brute out, and send the spear through Ivim 1 " and, flinging himself on his knees again, Trebooze began tearing madly at the roots and stones, shouting to the half-buried terrier to tear the intruder. Peter looked at Tom, and then wrung his hands in des- pair. " Dirty work — beastly work 1 " muttered Trebooze. " Nothing but slugs and evats ! — Toads, too, — hang the toads 1 What a plague brings all this vermin ? Curse it 1 " shrieked he, springing back, "there 's an adder 1 and he 's gone up my sleeve 1 Help me 1 Doctor I Thurnall 1 or I 'm a dead man I " Tom caught the arm, thrust his hand up the sleeve, and seemed to snatch out the snake, and hurl it back into the river. " All right now ! — a near chance, though I " Peter stood open-mouthed. " I never saw no snake ! " cried he. Tom caught him a buffet which sent him reeling. " Look after your hounds, you blind ass 1 How are you now, Tre- booze ? " And he caught the squire round the waist, for he was reeling. " The world ! The world upside down I rocking and swinging I Who 's put me feet upwards, like a fly on a ceiling! I'm falling off, falling off into the clouds — into hell-fire — Hold me ! — Toads and adders ! and wasps — to go to holt in a wasp's nest 1 Drive 'em away, — get me a green bough 1 I shall be stung to death I " And, tearing off a green bough, the wretched man rushed into the river, beating wildly right and left at his fancied tormentors. "What is it?" cry Campbell and Scoutbush, who have run up breathless. " Delirium tremens. Campbell, get home as fast as you can, and send me up a bottle of morphine. Peter, take the hounds home. I must go after him." " I '11 go home with Campbell, and send the bottle up by a man and horse," cries Scoutbush ; and away the two trot, at a gallant pace, for a cross-country run home. " Mr. Tardrew, come with me, there 's a good man ! I Bhall want help." Tardrew made no reply, but dashed through the river at his heels. Trebooze had already climbed the plashed fence, and was 30 350 THE BLACK HOUND. running wilcJy across the meadow. Tom dragged Tardre-w up it after him. " Thank 'ee, sir," but nothing more. The two had nol met. since the cholera. Trebooze fell, and lay rolling, trying in vain to shield hia face from the phantom wasps. They lifted him up and spoke gently to him. " Better get home to Mrs. Trebooze, sir," said Tardrew, with as much tenderness as his gruff voice could convey. " Yes, home ! home to Molly I My Molly 's always kind. She won't let me be eaten up alive. Molly, Molly I " And, shrieking for his wife, the wretched man started tj run again. " Molly, I 'm in hell ! Only help me ! you 're always right I only forgive me ! and 1 '11 never, never again — " And then came out hideous confessions ; then fresh hide- ous delusions. ***** Three weary up-hill miles lay between them and the house ; but home they got at last. Trebooze dashed at the house-door, tore it open ; slammed and bolted it behind him, to shut out the pursuing fiends. "Quick, round by the back-door!" said Tom, who had not opposed him, for fear of making him furious, but dreaded some tragedy if he were left alone. But his fear was needless. Trebooze looked into the breakfast-room. It was empty; she was not out of bed yet. He rushed up stairs into her bed-room, shrieking her name. She leaped up to meet him ; and the poor wretch buried his head in that faithful bosom, screaming to her to save him from he knew not what. She put her arms round him, soothed him, wept over him sacred tears. " My William 1 my own William ! Yes, I will take care of you I Nothing shall hurt you, — my own, own ! " Vain, drunken, brutal, unfaithful. Yes ; but her husband etiU. Tlipre was a knock at the door. " Who is that ? " she cried, with her usual fierceness, ter- rified for his character, not terrified for herself. " Mr. Thumall, madam. Have you any laudanum in the house ? " " Yes, here 1 0, come in I Thank God you are come ! What is to be done ? " THE BLACK HOUND. 351 Tom looked for the laudanum bottle, and poured out a heavy dose. '•' Make him take that, madam, and put him to bed. 1 will wait down stairs a while." " Thurnall, Thuraall I " calls Trebooze ; " don't leave me, old fellow ! you are a good fellow. I say, forgive and forget. Don't leave me 1 Only don't leave me, for the room is as full of devils as " T* *P sp ■!■ "P An hour after, Tom and Tardrew were walking home together. " He is quite quiet now, and fast asleep." " Will he mend, sir ? " asks Tardrew. " Of course he will ; and perhaps in more ways than one. Best thing that could have happened, — will bring him to his senses, and he '11 start fresh." " We '11 hope so, — he 's been mad, 1 think, ever since he heard of that cholera." "So have others; but not with brandy," thought Tom. But he said nothing. " I say, sir," quoth Tardrew, after a while, " how 's Par- son Headley ? " " Getting well, I 'm happy to say." " Glad to hear it, sir. He 's a good man, after all ; though we did have our differences. But he 's a good man, and worked like one." "He did." Silence again. " Never heard such beautiful prayers, in all my life, as he made over my poor maid." "1 don't doubt it," said Tom. "He understands his business at heart, though he may have his fancies." " And so do some others," said Tardrew, in a gruff tone, as if half to himself, "who have no fancies Tell you what it is, sir, — you was right this time ; and that 's plain truth. I 'm sorry to hear talk of your going." " My good sir," quoth Tom, " I shall be very sorry to go I have found place and people here as pleasant as man could wish ; but go I must." " Glad you 're satisfied, sir ; wish you was going to stay," says Tardrew. " Seen Miss Harvey this last day or two, sir ? " " Yes. You know she 's to keep her school ? " " I know it. Nursed my girl like an angel." " Like what she is," said Tom 352 THE BLACK HOUND. "You said one true word once ; that she was too good for us." " For this world," said Tom ; and fell into a great musing. By those curt and surly utterances did Tardrew, in true British bull-dog fashion, express a repentance too deep for words ; too deep for all confessionals, penances, and emo- tions or acts of contrition ; the repentance not of the excit- able and theatric southern, unstable as water, even in his most violent remorse ; but of the still, deep-hearted northern; whose pride breaks slowly and silently, but breaks once for all ; who tells to God what he will never tell to man ; and, having told it, is a new creature from that day forth fot- ever. OHAPTER XIX. BEDDGELERT. The pleasant summer voyage is over. The Wateiwitcl. is lounging off Port Madoc, waiting for her crew. The said crew are busy on shore drinking the ladies' healths, with a couple of sovereigns which Valencia has given them, in her sister's name and her own. The ladies, under the care of Elsley, and the far more practical care of Mr. Bowie, are rattling along among children, maids, and boxes, over the sandy flats of the Traeth Mawr, beside the long reaches of the lazy stream, with the blue surges of the hills in front, and the silver sea behind. Soon they begin to pass wooded knolls, islets of rock in the alluvial plain. The higher peaks of Snowdon sink down behind the lower spurs in front ; the plain narrows ; closes in, walled round with woodlands clinging to the steep hill-sides ; and, at last, they enter the narrow gorge of Pont-Aberglaslyn, — pretty enough, no doubt, but much over-praised ; for there are in Devon alone a dozen passes far grander, both for form and size. Soon they emerge again on flat meadows, mountain- cradled ; and the grave of the mythic greyhound, and the fair old church, shrouded in tall trees ; and last, but not least, at the famous Leek Hotel, where ruleth Mrs. Lewis great and wise, over the four months' Babylon of guides cars, chambermaids, tourists, artists, and reading-parties camp-stools, telescopes, poetiy-books, blue uglies, red potli- coats, and parasols of every hue. There they settle down in the best rooms in the house, aud all goes as merrily as it can, while the horrors which they have left behind them hang, like a black background, to all their thoughts. However, both Scoutbush and Camp- bell send as cheerful reports as they honestly can; and, gradually, the exceeding beauty of the scenery, and the amusing bustle of the village, make them forget, perhaps a good deal which they ought to have remembered. 30* (353^ 354 BEDDGELERT. As for poor Lucia, no one will complain of her for being happy ; for feeling that she has got a holiday, the first for now four years, and trying to enjoy it to the utmost. She has no household cares. Mr. Bowie manages everything, and does so, in order to keep up the honor of the family, on a somewhat magnificent scale. The children, in that bracing air, are better than she has ever seen them. She has Valen- cia all to herself ; and Elsley, in spite of the dark fancies over which he has been brooding, is better behaved, on the M hole, than usual. He has escaped — so he considers — escaped from Camp- bell, above all from Thurnall. Prom himself, indeed, he has not escaped ; but the company of self is, on the whole, more pleasant to him than otherwise just now. For though he may turn up his nose at tourists and reading-parties, and long for contemplative solitude, yet there is a certain pleas- ure to some people, and often strongest in those who pre- tend most shyness, in the " digito monstrari, et dicier, hie est : " in taking for granted that everybody has read his poems ; that everybody is saying in their hearts, " There goes Mr. Vavasour, the distinguished poet. I wonder what he is writing now ? I wonder where he has been to-day, and what he has been thinking of." So Elsley went up Hebog, and looked over the glorious vista of the vale, over the twin lakes, and the rich sheets of woodland, with Aran and Moel Meirch, guarding them right and left, and the graystone glaciers of the Glyder wall- ing up the valley miles above. And they went up Snow- don, too, and saw little beside fifty fog-blinded tourists, five- and-twenty dripping ponies, and five hundred empty porter- bottles ; wherefrom they returned, as do many, disgusted, and with great colds in their heads. But most they loved to scramble up the crags of Dinas Emyrs, and muse over the ruins of the old tower, " where Merlin taught Vortigern the courses of the stars ; " till the stars set and rose as they had done for Merlin and his pupil, behind the four great peaks of Aran, Siabod, Cnicht, and Hebog, which point to the four quarters of the heavens ; or to lie by the side of the boggy spring, which once was the magic well of the magic castle, till they saw in fancy the white dragon and the red rise from its depths once more, and fight high in the air the battle which foretold the fall of the Cymry be- fore the Sassenach invader. One thing, indeed, troubled Elsley, — that Claude was his only companion ; for Valencia avoided carefully anj BEDDGELEET. 355 moK! t§te-k-tSte walks with him. She had found out her mistake, and devoted herself now to Lucia. She had a fair excuse e/iough, for Lucia was not just then in a state foi rambles and scrambles ; and of that Elsley certainly had no right to complain ; so that he was forced to leave them both at home, with as good grace as he could muster, and to wander by himself, scribbling his fancies, while they lounged and worked in the pleasant garden of the hotel, with Bowie fetching and carrying for them all daylong, and intimating pretty roundly to Miss Clara his " opeeenion," that he " was very proud and thankful of the office ; but he did think ho had to do a great many things for Mrs. Vava- sour every day which would come with a much better grace from Mr. Vavasour himself; and that, when he married, he should not leave his wife to be nursed by other men." Which last words were spoken with an ulterior object, well understood by the hearer ; for between Clara and Bowie there was one of those patient and honorable attachments so common between worthy servants. They had both "kept company," though only by letter, for the most part, for now five years ; they had both saved a fair sum of money ; and Clara might have married Bowie when she chose, had she not thought it her duty to take care of her mistress ; while Bowie considered himself equally indispensable to the wel- fare of that " puir feckless laddie," his master. So they waited patiently, amusing the time by little squab- bles of jealousy, real or pretended ; and Bowie was faith- ful, though Clara was past thirty now, and losing her good looks. "So ye '11 see your lassie, Mr. Bowie ! " said Sergeant MacArthur, his intimate, when he started for Aberalva that summer. " I 'm thinking ye 'd better put her out of her pain soon. Five years is ower lang courting, and she 's na pullet by now, saving your pardon." " Hoooo — ," says Bowie; "leave the green gooseber- ries to the lads, and gi' me the ripe fruit, sergeant." However, he found love-making in his own fashion so pleasant, that, not content with carrying Mrs. Vavasour's babies about all day long, he had several times to be gently turned out of the nursery, where he wanted to assist in washing and dressing them, on the ground that an old sol- dier could turn his hand to anything. So slipped away a fortnight and more, during which Valencia was the cynosure of all eyes, and knew it also ; "bi Claude Mellct, half to amuse her, and half to tease 356 BEDDGELEKT. Elsley, made her laugh many a time by retailing little say- ings and doings, in. her praise and dispraise, picked up from I'ich Manchester gentlemen, who would fain have married her without a penny, and from strong-minded Manchester ladies, who envied her beauty a little, and set her down, of course, as an empty-minded worldling, and a proud aristo- crat. The majority of the reading-parties, meanwhile, thought a great deal more about Valencia than about their books. The Oxford men, it seemed, though of the same mind as the Cambridge men, in considering her the model of all perfection, were divided as to their method of testi- fying the same. Two or three of them, who were given to that simpering and flirting tone with young ladies to which Oxford would-be-fine gentlemen are so pitiably prone, hung about the inn-door to ogle her ; contrived always to be walk- ing in the garden when she was there, dressed out as if for High-street at four o'clock on a May afternoon ; tormented Claude by fruitless attempts to get from him an introduc- tion, which he had neither the right nor the mind to give ; and at last (so Bowie told Claude one night, and Claude told the whole party next morning) tried to bribe and flat- ter Valencia's maid into giving them a bit of ribbon, or a cast-ofi" glove, which had belonged to vhe idol. Whereon that maiden, in virtuous indignation, told Mr. Bowie, and complained, moreover (as maids are bound to do to valets for whom they have a penchant), of their having dared to compliment her on her own good looks ; by which act she succeeded, of course, in making Mr. Bowie understand that other people still thought her pretty, if he did not ; and alsc in arousing in him that jealousy which is often the best helpmate of sweet love. So Mr. Bowie went forth in his might that very evening, and, finding two of the Oxford men, informed them in plain Scotch, that, " Gin he caught them, or any ither such skellums, philandering after his leddies, or his leddies' maids, he 'd jist knock their empty pows togither." To which there was no reply but silence ; for Mr. Bowie stood six feet four without his shoes, and had but the week before performed, for the edification of the Cambridge men, who held him in high honor, a few old Guards' feats ; such as cutting in two at one sword-blow a suspended shoulder of mutton ; lifting a long table by his teeth ; squeezing a quart pewter pot flat between his fin- gers ; and other little recreations of those who are " born anto Kapha."- But the Cantabs, and a couple of gallant Oxfc/rd boating HEDDGELEET. 357 men who had fraternized with them, testified their own ad- miration, in their simple honest way, by putting down their pipes whenever they saw Valencia coming, and just lifting their hats when they met her close. It was taking a liberty, no doubt. " But I tell you, Mellot," said Wynd, as brave and pure-minded a fellow as ever pulled in the University eight, " the Arabs, when they see such a creature, saj , ' Praise Allah for beautiful women I ' and quite right ; they may remind some fellows of worse things, but they always remind me of heaven and the angfels ; and my hat goes off to her by instinct, just as it does when I go into a church." That was all ; simple, chivalrous admiration, and delight in her loveliness, as in that of a lake, or a mountain sun- set ; but nothing more. The good fellows had no time, indeed, to fancy themselves in love with her, or her with them, for every day was too short for them ; what with reading all the morning, and starting out in the afternoon in strange garments (which became shabbier and more ragged very rapidly as the weeks slipped on) upon all man- ner of desperate errands ; walking unheard-of distances, and losing their way upon the mountains ; scrambling clifFs, and now and then falling down them; camping all night by unpronounceable lakes, in the hope of catching myth- ical trout ; trying in all ways how hungry, thirsty, dirty, and tired a man could make himself, and how far he could go without breaking his neck, — any approach to which catas- trophe was hailed (as were all other mishaps) as " all in the day's work," and " the finest fun in the world," by that unconquerable English " lebensgliickseligkeit," which is a perpetual wonder to our sober German cousins. Ah, glorious twenty-one, with your inexhaustible powers of doing and enjoying, eating and hungering, sleeping and sitting up, reading and playing I Happy are those who still possess you, and can take their fill of your golden cup, steadied but not saddened by the remembrance that foi all things a good and loving God will bring them into judg- ment 1 Happier still those who (like a few) retain in body and soul the health and buoyancy of twenty-one on to the very verge of forty, and, seeming to grow younger-hearted as they grow older-headed, can cast off care and work at a moment's warning, laugh and frolic now as they did twentj years ago, and say with Wordsworth — " So was it when I was a boy. So let it be when I am oldi Or let me die ! " B5S BEDDGELERT. Unfortunately, as will appear hereafter, Elsley's (special betes noirs were this very Wynd and his inseparable com- panion, Naylor, who happened to be not only the best men of the set, but Mellot's especial friends. Both were Eugby men, now reading for their degree. Wynd was a Shrop- shire squire's son, a lissome fair-haired man, the handiest of boxers, rowers, riders, shots, fishermen, with a noisy superabundance of animal spirits, which maddened Elsley Yet Wynd had sentiment in his way, though he took good care never to show it to Elsley ; could repeat Tennyson from end to end ; spouted the Mort d' Arthur up hill and down dale, and chanted rapturously, "Gome into the gar- den, Maud ! " while he expressed his opinion of Maud's lover in terms more forcible than delicate. Naylor, fidus Achates, was a Gloucestershire parson's son, a huge, heavy- looking man, with a thick curling lip, and a sleepy eye ; but he had brains enough to become a first-rate classic , and in that same sleepy eye and heavy lip lay an infinity of quiet humor ; racy old-country stories, quaint scraps of out- of-the-way learning, jovial old ballads, which he sang with the mellowest of voices, and a slang vocabulary, which made him the dread of all bargees from Newnham-pool to TJpware. Him also Elsley hated, because Naylor looked always as if he was laughing at him, which indeed he was. And the worst was that Elsley had always to face them both at once. If Wynd vaulted over a gale into his very face, with a " How d'e do, Mr. Vavasour ? Had any verses this morning ? " in the same tone as if he had asked, " Had any sport?" Naylor's round face was sure to look over the stone wall, pipe in mouth, with a " Don't disturb the gen- tleman, Tom ; don't you see he 's a composing of his rhymes?" in a strong provincial dialect, put on for the nonce. In fact, the two young rogues, having no respect whatsoever for genius, perhaps because they had each of them a little genius of their own, made a butt of the poet, as soon as they found out that he was afraid of them. But worse betes noirs than either Wynd or Naylor were on their way to fill up the cup of Elsley's discomfort. And, at last, without a note of warning, appeared in Beddgelert a phenomenon which rejoiced some hearts, but perturbed also the spirits not only of the Oxford " philanderers," but those of Elsley Vavasour, and, what is more, of Valencia herself. She was sitting one evening at the window with Lucia, looking out into the village and the pleasure-grounds before BEDDGELEET. 359 the hotel. They were both langhiflg and chatting over the groups of tourists in their pretty Irish way, just as they had done when they were girls ; for Lucia's heart was ex- panding under the quiet beauty of the place, the freedom from household care, and, what was more, from money anx- ieties ; for Valencia had slipped into her hand a check for fifty pounds from Scoutbush, and assured her that he would be quite angry if she spoke of paying the rent of the rooms ; Blsley was mooning down the river by himself; Claude was entertaining his Cambridge acquaintances, as he did every night, with his endless fun and sentiment. Gradually the tourists slipt in one by one, as the last rays of the sun faded off the peaks of Aran, and the mist settled down upon the dark valley beneath, and darkness fell upon that rock-girdled paradise ; when up to the door below there drove a car, at sight whereof out rushed, not waiters only and landlady, but Mr. Bowie himself, who helped out a very short figure in a pea-jacket and a shining boating-hat, and then a very tall one in a wild shooting-coat and a military cap. " My brother, and mon Saint Pere I Lucia I too delight- ful ! This is why they did not write." And Valencia sprang up, and was going to run down stairs to them, when she paused at Lucia's call. " Wlio have they with them ? Val., come and look I Who canTTbe ? '*- ' Campbell and Bowie were helping out carefully a tall man, covered up in many wrappers. It was too dark to see the face ; but a fancy crossed Valencia's mind which made her look grave, in spite of her pleasure. lie ,-was-.evLdently weak, as from recent illness ; for his two supporters led hirS up tlie st&ps-,~aird'~'Srcoutbiisir" seemed full of directions and inquiries, and fussed about with the landlady, till she was tired of curtseying to " my lord." A minute afterwards Bowie threw open the door grandly. " My lord, my ladies I " and in trotted Scout- bush, and began kissing them fiercely, and then dancing about. " 0, my dears I Here at last — out of that horrid city of the plague ! Such, sights as I have seen — " and then he paused. "Do you know, Val. and Lucia, I'm glad .I've seen it ; I don't know, but I feel as if I should be a better man all my life ; and those poor people, how well they did behave I And the major, he 's an angel I And so 's that brick of a doctor, and the mad schoolmistress, and the curate 360 BEDDGELERT. Everybody, I think, but me. Hang it, Val. ! but your words shan't come true t I will be of some use yet before I die 1 But I 've — " and Valencia went up to him and kissed him, while he ran on, and Lucia said — " You have been of use already, dear Fred. You have sent me and the dear children to this sweet place, where we have been safer and happier than — " (she checked her- self) ; "and your generous present too. I feel quite a girl again, thanks to you. Val. and I have done nothing but laugh all day long ; " and she began kissing him too. " How happy could I be with either. Were t' other dear charmer away ! " broke out Scoutbush. " What a pity it is, now, that 1 should have two such sweet creatures making love to me, and can't marry either of them ! Why did ye go and be my father's daughters, mavourneen ? I 'd have made a peeress of the one of ye, if ye 'd had the sense to be any- body else's sisters." At which they all laughed, and laughed, and chattered broad Irish together, as they used to do for fun in old Kilan- baggan Castle, before Lucia was aweary wife, and Valencia a worldly fine lady, and Scoutbush a rackety guardsman, breaking half of the ten commandments every week, rather from ignorance than vice. " Well, I 'm glad ye 're pleased with me, asthore," said he at last to Lucia; "but I've done another little good deed, I flatter myself ; for I 've brought away the poor spalpeen of a priest, and have got him safe in the house." Valencia stopped short in her fun. " Why, what have ye to say against that, Miss Val. ? " " Why, won't he be a little in the way ? " said Valencia, not knowing what to say. " Faith, he need n't trouble you ; and I shall take very good care — I wonder when the supper is coming — that neither he nor any one else troubles me. But really," said he, in his natural voice, and with some feeling, " I was ashamed to go away and leave him there. He would have died if we had. He worked day and night. Talk of saints and martyrs ! Campbell himself said he was an idler by the side of him." " 0, I hope Major Campbell has not over-exerted him self!" " He ! nothing hurts him. He 's as hard as his owt BEDDGELEET. 361 sword. But th£L,pQor curate worked on, till he got the . ghnlera. h jmfiplf He always expected it — longed for it; Campbell said — wanted to die. Some love affair, I sup- pose, poor fello'wrr— and a terrible bout he had for eight- and-forty hours. Thurnall' thought him gone again and again ; but he pulled the poor fellow through, after all ; and we got some one (that is, Campbell did) to take his duty, aod brought him away, after a good deal of persua- sion, for he would not move as long .as there was a fresh case in the town ; — that is why we never wrote. We did not know till the last hour when we should start ; and we expected to be with you in two days, and give you a pleasant surprise. He was half dead when we got him on board, but the week's sea-air helped him through ; so 1 must not grumble at these northerly breezes. ' It 's an ill-wind that blows nobody good,' they say ! " Valencia heard all this as in a dream, and watched her chatteiing brother with a stupefied air. She comprehended all now ; and bitterly she blamed herself. He had really loved her, then ; set himself manfully to die at his post, that he might forget her in a better world. How shamefully she had trifled with that noble heart 1 How should she ever meet — how have courage to look him in the face ? And not love, or anything like love, but sacred pity and self-abasement filled her heart, as his fair, delicate face rose up before her, all wan and shrunken, with sad upbraiding eyes ; and round it such a halo, pure and pale, as crowns, in some old German picture, a martyr's head. " He has had the cholera I he has been actually dying ? " asked she, at last, with that strange wish to hear over again bad news, which one knows too well already. " Of course he has. Why, you are not going away, Valencia? You need not be afraid of infection. Campbell, and Thurnall, too, say that 's all nonsense ; and they must know, having seen it so often. Here comes Bowie at last with supper ! " " Has Mr. Headley had anything to eat ? " asked Valen- cia who longed to run away to her own room, but dared not. "He is eating now, like any ged, ma'am ; and Major Campbell 's making him eat, too." "He must be very ill," thought she, "for mon Saint Pere never to have come near us yet ; " and then she thought with terror that her Saint Pere might have guessed the 31 362 BEDD«ELEET. ti-uth, and be angry with her. And yet she trusted it Frank's secrecy. He would not betray her. Take care, Valencia. When a woman has to trust a man not to betray her, and does trust him, she may soon find it not only easy, but necessary, to do more than trust him. However, in five minutes Campbell came in. Valencia tjaw at once that there was no change in his feelings to her ; but he could talk of nothing but Headley, his sell-devotion, courage, angelic gentleness, and humility ; and every word of his praise was a fresh arrow in Valencia's conscience ; at last, — "One knows well enough what is the matter," said he, almost bitterly ; " what is the matter, I sometimes thisjk, with half the noblest men in the world, and nine tenths of the noblest women ; and with many a one, too, God help them ! who is none of the noblest, and, therefore does not know how to take the bitter cup, as he knows — " " What does the philosopher mean, now ? " asked Scout- bush, looking up from the cold lamb. Valencia knew but too well what he meant. "He has a history, my dear lord." " A history ? What I is he writing a book ? " Campbell laughed a quiet under-laugh, half sad, half humorous. " I am very tired," said Valencia ; " I really think I shal) go to bed." She went to her room, but to bed she did not go ; — she sat down and cried till she could cry no more, and lay awake the greater part of the night, tossing miserably She would have done better if she had prayed ; but prayer, about such a matter, was what Valencia knew nothing of She was regular enough at church, of course, and said her prayers and confessed her sins in a general way, and prayed about her "soul," as she had been taught to do — unless she was too tired ; but to pray really, about a real sorrow, a real sin like this, was a thought which never entered hei mind ; and, if it had, she would have driven it away again, ■just because the anxiety was so real, practical, human, it was a matter which had nothing to do with religion, which It seemed impertinent, almost wrong, to lay before the throne of God. So she came down stairs next morning, pale, restless, unrefreshed in body or mind ; and her peace of mind was not improved by seeing, seated at the breakfast-table, Frank BEDDGELERT. 363 Qeadley, whom Lucia and Scoutbush were stuffing with all manner of good things. She blushed scarlet — do what she would she could not help it — when he rose and bowed to her. Half choked, she came forward and offered her hand. She was " so shocked to hear that he had been so dangerously ill, — no one had even told them of it, — it had come upon them so suddenly ; " and so forth. She spoke kindly, but avoided the least tone of tender- ness ; for she felt that, if she gave way, she might be only too tender, and to reawaken hope in his heart would be only cruelty. And, therefore, and for other reasons also, she did not look him in the face as she spoke. He answered so cheerfully, that she was half disappointed, in spite of her remorse, at his not being as miserable as she had expected. Still, if he had overcome the passion, it was so much better for him. But yet Valencia hardly wished that he should have overcome it, so self-contradictory is woman's heart ; and her pity had sunk to half-ebb, and her self-complacency was rising with a flowing tide, as he chatted on quietly, but genially, about the voyage, and the scenery, and Snowdon, which he had never seen, and which he would ascend that very day. " You will do nothing of the kind, Mr. Headley I " cried Lucia. " Is he not mad. Major Campbell, quite mad ? " " I know I am mad, my dear Mrs. Vavasour ; I have been so a long time ; but Snowdon ponies are in their sober senses, and I shall take one of them." " Fulfil the old pun ? Begin beside yourself, and end beside your horse ! I am sure he is not strong enough to sit over those rocks. No, you shall stay at home comfort- ably here ; Valencia and I will take care of you." " And mon Saint Pere, too ? I have a thousand things to say to him." " And so has he to Queen Whims." So Scoutbush sent Bowie for "John Jones Clerk," the fisherman (may his days be as many as his salmon, and as good as his flies !), and the four stayed at home, and talked over the Aberalva tragedies, till, as it befell, both Lucia and Campbell left the room a while. Immediately Frank rose, and, walking across to Valencia, laid the fatal ring on the arm of her chair, and returned tc his seat without a word. "You are very . I hope that it ." stammered Valencia. 3G4 BEDDGELERT. " You hope that it was a comfort to me ? It was, and 1 Bhall be always grateful to you for it." Valencia heard an emphasis on the "was." It checked the impulse (foolish enough) which rose in her, to bid him keep the ring. So, prim and dignified, she slipped it into its place on hor finger, and went on with her work, merely saying, " I need not say that I am happy that anything which I could do should have been of use to you in such a fearful time." " It was a fearful time ! but, for myself, I cannot be too glad of it. God grant that it may have been as useful to others as to me ! It cured me of a great folly. Now I look back, I am astonished at my own absurdity, rudeness, presumption. You must let me say it ! I do not know how to thank you enough. I cannot trust myself with the fit words, they would be so strong ; but I owe this confes- sion to you, and to your exceeding goodness and kindness, when you would have been justified in treating me as a madman. I was mad, I believe ; but I am in my right mind now, I assure you," said he, gayly. " Had I not been, I need hardly say you would not have seen me here. What a prospect this is ! " And he rose and looked out of the window. Valencia had heard all this with downcast eyes and un- moved face. Was she pleased at it ? Not in the least, the naughty child that she was ; and, more, she grew quite angry with herself, ashamed of herself, for having thought and felt so much about him the night before. "How silly of me 1 He is very well, and does not care for me. And who is he, pray, that I should even look at him ? " And, as if in order to put her words into practice, she looked at him there and then. He was gazing out of the window, leaning gracefully and yet feebly against the shut- ter, with the full glory of the forenoon sun upon his sharp- cut profile and rich chestnut locks ; and, after all, having looked at him once, she could not help looking at him again. He was certainly a most gentleman-like man, ele- gant from head to foot ; there was not an ungraceful line about him, to his very boots, and the white nails of his slender fingers ; even the defects of his figure — the too great length of the neck and slope of the shoulders — in- creased his likeness to those saintly pictures with which he had been mixed up in her mind the night before. He was ftt one extreme pole of the difierent types of manhood, ancj BBDDGELERT. 3G5 that burly doctor who had saved his life at the other ; but her Saint Pere alone perfectly combined the two. There was nobody like him, after all. Perhaps her wisest plan, as Headley had forgotten his fancy, was to confess all to the Saint Pere (as she usually did her little sins), and get some sort of absolution from him. However, she must say something in answer. " Yes, it is a very lovely view ; but, really. I must say one more word about this matter. I have to thank you, you know, for the good faith which you have kept with me." He looked round, seemingly amused. " Cela va sans dire 1 " and he bowed ; " pray do not say any more about the matter ; " and he looked at her with such humble and thankful eyes, that Valencia was sorry not to hear more from him than — "Pray tell me — for of course you know — the name of this exquisite valley up which I am looking." " Gwynnant. You must go up it when you are well enough, and see the lakes ; they are the only ones in Snow- don from the banks of which the primeval forest has not disappeared." " Indeed ? I must make shift to go there this very after- noon, for — do not laugh at me — but I never saw a lake in my life." " Never saw a lake ? " " No. I am a true Lowlander ; bom and bred among bleak Norfolk sands and fens, — so much the worse for this chest of mine, — and this is my first sight of mountains. It is all like a dream to me, and a dream which I never expected to be realized." "Ah, j'ou should see our Irish lakes and mountains, — you should see Killarncy I " "I am content with these ; I suppose it is as wrong to break the tenth commandment about scenery, as about anything else." "Ah, but it seems so hard that you, who, I am sure, would appreciate fine scenery, should have been debarred from it, while hundreds of stupid people run over the Alps and Italy every summer, and come home, as far as I can see, rather more stupid than they went ; having made con- fusion worse confounded, by filling their poor brains with hard names out of Murray." " Not quite so hard as that thousands, every day, who would onjoy a meat dinner, should have nothing but dpv 31* 366 BEDDGELEET. bread, and not enough of that. I fancy, sometimes, that in some mysterious way that want will be made up to them in the next life ; and so with all the beautiful things which travelled people talk of — I comfort myself with the fancy, that I see as much as is good for me here, and that, if I make good use of that, I shall see the Alps and the Andes in the world to come, or something much more worth seeing. Tell me, now, how far may that range of crags be from us ? I am sure that I could walk there after luncheon, this mountain air is strengthening me so." " Walk thither ? I assure you they are at least four miles off." "Four? And I thought them one I So clear and sharp as they stand out against the sky, one fancies that one could almost stretch out a hand and touch those knolls and slabs of rock, as distinct as in a photograph ; and yet so soft and rich withal, dappled with pearly-gray stone and purple heath. Ah ! — So it must be, I suppose. The first time that one sees a glorious thing, one's heart is lifted up towards it in love and awe, till it seems near to one — ground on which one may freely tread because one appreci- ates and admires ; and so one forgets the distance between its grandeur and one's own littleness." The allusion was palpable ; but did he intend it ? Surely not, after what he had just said. And yet there was a sad- ness in the tone which made Valencia fancy that some feel- ing for her might still linger ; but he evidently had been speaking to himself, forgetful, for the moment, of her pres- ence ; for he turned to her with a start and a blush — " But now — I have been troubling you too long with this stupid tete-k-tgte sentimentality of mine. I will make my bow, and find the major. I am afraid, if it be possible for him to for- get any one, he has forgotten me in some new moss or other." He went out, and to Valencia's chagrin she saw him no more that day. He spent the forenoon in the garden, and the afternoon in lying down, and at night complained of fatigue, and stayed in his own room the whole evening, while Campbell read him to sleep. Next morning, however, ho made his appearance at breakfast, well and cheerful. " I must play at sick man no more, or I shall rob you, I see, of Major Campbell's company ; and I owe you all for too much already." " Unless you are better than you were last night, you must play at sick man," said the major. " I cannot conceive BBDDGELERT. 361 wbai exhausted you so. Unless you ladies are better nurses, I must let no one come near him but myself. If you had been scolding him the whole morning, instead of praising him as he desei-ves, be could not have been more tired last night." "Pray do not!" cried Frank, evidently much pained; " I had such a delightful morning, and every one is so kind ' — you only make me wretched, when I feel all the trouble 1 am giving." " My dear fellow," said Scoutbush en grand serieux, " after all that you have done for our people at Aberalva, I should be very much shocked if any of my family thought any service shown to you a trouble." " Pray do not speak so," said Frank, " I am fallen among angels when I least expected." " Scoutbush as an angel I " shrieked Lucia, clapping her hands. " Elsley, don't you see the wings sprouting already, under his shooting-jacket ? " " They are my braces, I suppose, of course," said Scout- bush, who never understood a joke about himself, though he liked one about other people ; while Elsley, who hated all jokes, made no answer — ^at least none worth recording. In fact, as the reader may have discovered, Elsley, save t§te-k-tSte with some one who took his fancy, was somewhat of a silent and morose animal, and, as little Scoutbush con- fided to Mellot, there was no getting a rise out of him. All which Lucia saw as keenly as any one, and tried to pass off by chattering nervously and fussily for him, as well as for herself; whereby she only made him the more cross, for he could not the least understand her argument — " Why, my dear, if you don't talk to people, I must! " " But why should people be talked to ? " " Because they like it, and expect it I " "The more foolish they. Much better to hold their tongues and think." " Or, read your poetry, I suppose ? " And then would begin a squabble. Meanwhile, there was one, at least, of the party, who was watching Lucia with most deep and painful interest. Lord Scoutbush was too busy with his own comforts, especially with his fishing, to think much of this moroseness of Elsley. "If he suited Lucia, very well. His taste and hers dif- fered ; but it was her concern, not his " — was a very easy way of freeing himself from all anxiety on the matter ; but not so with M^jor^Oajcsbiell. He saw all this ; and knew 368 BEDDGELEET. enough o*" human nature to suspect that the self-seeking which showed as moroseness in company, might show as . downright bad temper in private. Longing to know more of Elsley, if pos^je, to guide and EeTp~btm7tartl'ie3~to be" ultimate with him, as he had tried at Aberalva ; paid him court, asked his opinion, talked to him on all subjecta which he thought would interest him. His conclusion was more favorable to Elsley's head than to his heart. He saw that Elsley was vain, and liked his attentions ; and that lowered him in his eyes ; but he saw too that Elsley shrank from him. At first he thought it pride, but he soon found that it was fear ; and that lowered him still more in his eyes. Perhaps Campbell was too hard on the poet ; but his own purity itself told against Elsley. " Who am I, that any one should be afraid of me, unless they have done something wrong ? " So, with his dark suspicions roused, he watched intently every word and every tone of Elsley to his wife ; and here he came to a more unpleasant conclusion still. He saw that they were, sometimes at least, not happy together ; and from this he took for granted, too hastily, that they were never happy together ; that Lucia was an utterly ill- used person ; that Elsley was a bad fellow, who ill-treated her ; and a black and awful indignation against the man grew up within him, — all the more fierce because it seemed utterly righteous, and because, too, it had, under heavy penalties, to be utterly concealed beneath a courteous and genial manner, — till many a time he felt inclined to knock Elsley down for little roughnesses to her, which were really the fruit of mere gaucherie ; and then accused himself for a hypocrite, because he was keeping up the courtesies of life with such a man. For Campbell, like most men of his tem- perament, was over-stern, and sometimes a little cruel and unjust, in demanding of others the same lofty code which he had laid down for himself, and in demanding it, too, of some more than of others, by a very questionable exercise of private judgment. On the whole, he was right, no doubt, in being as indulgent as he dared to the publicans -and sin- ners like Scoutbush ; and in being as severe as he dared on all Pharisees and pretentious persons whatsoever ; but he was too much inclined to draw between the two classes one of those strong lines of demarcation which exist only in the fancies of the human brain ; for sins, like all diseased mat- ters, are complicated and confused matters ; many a seem- ing Pharisee is at heart a self-condemned publican, and ought to be comforted, and not cursed ; while many a pub- BEDDGELERT. 36S lican is, in the midst of all his foul sins, a thorough exclu- sive and self-complacent Pharisee, and needs not the right hand of mercy, but the strong arm of pui-ishment. Campbell, like other men, had his faults ; and his were those of a man wrapped up in a pure and stately, but an austere and lonely creed, disgusted with the world in all its forms, and looking down upon men in general nearly as much as Thurnall did. So he set down Elsley for a bad man, to whom he was forced by hard circumstances to behave as if he were a good one. ^ The only way, therefore, in which he could vent his feel- f ing, was by showing to Lucia that studied attention which sympathy and chivalry demand of a man toward an injured woman. Not that he dared, or wished, to conduct himself with her as he did with Valencia, even had she not been a married woman. He did not know her as intimately as he did her sister ; but still he had a right to behave as the most intimate friend of her family, and he asserted that right ; and all the more determinedly because Elsley seemed now and then not to like it. " I will teach him how to behave to a charming woman," said he to himself; and , perhaps he had been wiser if he had not said it ; but every ,' man has his weak point, and chivalry was Major Camp-' ^ bell's. " What do you think of that poet, Mellot ? " said he once, on returning from a pic-nic, during which Elsley had never noticed his wife ; and, at last, finding Valencia engaged with Headley, had actually gone off, 'pov/r pis aller, to watch Lord Scoutbush fishing. " 0, clever enough, and to spare ; and as well-read a man as I know. One of the Sturm-und-drang party, of course; — the express locomotive school, scream-and-go- ahead ; and thinks me, with my classicism, a benighted pagan. Still, every man has a right to his opinion. Live and let live." " I don't care about his taste," said the major, impatiently. " What sort of man is he ? — man, Claude ? " " Ahem, humph ! 'Irritabile genus poetarum.' But one is so accustomed to that among literary men, one never expects them to be like anybody else, and so takes theii whims and oddities for granted." " And their sins too, eh ? " " Sins ? I know of none on hia part." " Don't you call temper a sin ? " " No ; 1 call it a determination of blood to the head, oi 370 BEDDGELERT. of animal spirits to the wrong place, or — my dear major, 1 am no moralist. I take people, you know, as I find them. But he is a bore ; and I should not wonder if that sweet little woman had found it out ere now." Campbell ground something between his teeth. He fancied himself full of righteous wrath ; he was really in a very unchristian temper. Be it so ; perhaps there were excuses for him (as there are for many men), of which we know nothing. Elsley, meanwhile, watched Campbell with fast lowering brow. Losing a woman's affections ? He who does so deserves his fate. Had he been in the habit of paying prop- er attention to Lucia, he would have liked Campbell all the more for his conduct. There are a few greater pleas- ures to a man who is what he should be to his wife, than to Bee other men admiring what he admires, and trying to rival him, where he knows that he can have no rival. Let them worship as much as they will. Let her make herself as charming to them as she can. What matter ? He smiles at them in his heart ; for, has he not, over and above all the pretty things which he can say and do ten times as well aa they, a talisman — a dozen talismans which are beyond their reach ? — in the strength of which he will go home and laugh over with her, amid sacred caresses, all which makes mean men mad ? But Elsley, alas for him, had neglected Lucia himself, and therefore dreaded comparison with any other man ; and the suspicions which had taken root in him at Aberalva grew into ugly shape and strength. However, he was silent, and contented himself with coldness and all but rudeness. There were excuses for him. In the first place, it would have been an ugly thing to take notice of any man's atten- tions to a wife ; it could not be done but upon the strongest grounds, and done in a way which would make a complete rupture necessary, eo breaking up the party in a sufficiently unpleasant way. Besides, to move in the matter at all would be to implicate Lucia ; for, of whatsoever kind Camp- bell's attentions were, she evidently liked them ; and a quarrel with her on that score was more than Elsley dared face. He was not a man of strong moral courage ; he hated i scene of any kind ; and he was afraid of being worsted in any really serious quarrel, not merely by Campbell, but by Lucia. It may seem strange that he should be afraid of her, though not so that he should be afraid of Campbell. But the truth is, that the man, who bullies his wife very BEDDGELERT. 371 »ften, dues so — as Elsley had done more than once — shnply to prove to himself his own strength, and hide his fear ol her. He knew well that woman's tongue, when once the " fair beast " is brought to bay, is a weapon far too trench- ant to be faced by any shield but that of a very clear con- science toward her ; which was more than Elsley had. Besides — and it is an honor to Elsley Vavasour, amid all his weakness, that he had justice and chivalry enough left to know what nine men out of ten ignore — behind all, let the worst come to the worst, lay one just and terrible rejoinder, which he, though he had been no worse than the average of men, could only answer by silent shame, — " At least, sir, I was pure when I came to you 1 You best know whether you were so likewise." And yet even that, so all-forgiving is woman, might have been faced by some means ; but the miserable complication about the false name still remained. Elsley believed that he was in his wife's power ; that she could, if she chose, turn upon him, and proclaim him to the world as a scoundrel and an impostor. And, as it is of the nature of man to hate those whom he fears, Elsley began to have dark and ugly feelings toward Lucia. Instead of throwing them away, as a strong man would have done, he pampered them almost without meaning to do so. For he let them run riot through his too vivid imagination, in the form of possible speeches, possible scenes, till he had looked and looked through a hundred thoughts which no man has a right to entertain foi a moment. True ; he had entertained them with horror ; but he ought not to have entertained them at all ; he ought to have kicked them contemptuously out and back to the devil, from whence they came. It may be, again, that this is impossible to man ; that prayer is the only refuge against that Walpurgis-dance of the witches and the fiends, which will, at hapless moments, whirl unbidden through a mortal brain ; but Elsley did not pray. So, leaving these fancies in his head too long, he soon became accustomed to them ; and accustomed, too, to the Nemesis which they bring with them, of chronic moodiness and concealed rage. Day by day he was lashing himself up into fresh fury, and yet day by day he was becoming more careful to conceal that fury. He had many reasons : moral cowardice, which made him shrink from the tremen- dous consequences of an explosion — equally tremendous were he right or wrong. Then the secret hope, perhaps the secret consciousness, that he was wrong, and was only 372 BEDDGELERT. saying to God, like the self-deceiving prophet, " I do welJ to be angry ; " then the honest fear of going too far; ol being surprised at last into some hideous and irreparable speech or deed, which he might find out too late was utterly unjust; then at moments (for even that would cross him) the devilish notion, that, by concealment, he might lure Lucia on to give hiin a safe ground for attack. All these, and more, tormented him for a wretched fortnight, during which he became, at such an expense of self-control as he had not exercised for years, courteous to Campbell, more than courteous to Lucia ; hiding, under a smiling face, wrath which increased with the pressure brought to bear upon it. Campbell and Lucia, Mellot, Valencia, and Frank, utterly deceived, went on more merrily than ever, little dreaming that they walked and talked daily with a man who was fast becoming glad to flee to the pit of hell, but for the fear that " God would be there also." They, meanwhile, chatted on, enjoying, as human souls are allowed to do at rare and precious moments, the mere sensation of being ; of which they would talk at times in a way which led them down into deep matters ; for in- stance — " How pleasant to sit here forever 1 " said Claude, one afternoon, in the inn garden at Beddgelert, " and say, not with Descartes, ' I think, therefore I exist ; ' but, simply, ' I enjoy, therefore I exist.' I almost think those Emerso- nians are right at times, when they crave the ' life of plants, and stones, and rain.' Stangrave said to me once, that his ideal of perfect bliss was that of an oyster in the Indian seas, drinking the warm salt water motionless, and trou- bling himself about nothing, while nothing troubled itself about him." " Till a diver came and tore him up for the sake of his pearls ? " said Valencia. " He did not intend to contain any pearls. A pearl, you know, is a disease of the oyster, the product of some irrita- tion. He wished to be the oyster pure and simple, a part of nature." " And to be of no use ? " asked Frank. " Of none whatsoever. Nature had made him what he was, and all beside was her business, and not his. I don't deny that I laughed at him, and made him wroth by telling him that his doctrine was ' the apotheosis of loafing.' Bu^ my heart went with him, and with the jolly oyster too H aEDDGELEET. 373 It IB very beautiful after all, that careless nymph and sh'^p- hfcrd-life i)f the old Greeks, and that Marquesas romance of Herman Melville's — to enjoy the simple fact of living, like a Neapolitan lazzaroni, or a fly upon a wall." "But the old Greek heroes fought and labored to till the land, and rid it of giants and monsters," said Frank. " And, as for the Marquesas, Mr. Melville found out, did he not — as you did once — that they were only petting and fattening him for the purpose of eating him ? There is a dark side to that pretty picture, Mr. Mellot." " Tantpis pour eux I But that is an unnecessary append- age to the idea, surely. It must be possible to realize such a simple, rich, healthy life, without wickedness, if not with- out human sorrow. It is no dream, and no one shall rob me of it. I have seen fragments of it scattered up and down the world ; and I believe they will all meet in Para- dise — where and when I care not ; but they will meet. I was very happy in the South Sea Islands, after that, when nobody meant to eat me ; and I am very happy here, and do not intend to be eaten, unless it will be any pleasure to Miss St, Just. No ; let man enjoy himself when he can, and take his fill of those flaming red geraniums, and glossy rhododendrons, and feathered crown-ferns, and the gold green lace of those acacias tossing and whispering overhead, and the purple mountains sleeping there aloft, and the mur- mur of the brook over the stones ; and drink in scents with every breath ; — what was his nose made for, save to smell ? I used to torment myself once by asking them all what they meant. Now, I am content to have done with symbolisms, and say, ' What you all mean, 1 care not ; all 1 know is that I can draw pleasure from the mere sight of you, as, perhaps, you do from the mere sight of me ; so let us sit together, Nature and I, and stare into each other's eyes like two young lovers, careless of the morrow and its griefs.' I will not even take the trouble to paint her. Why make ugly copies of perfect pictures ? Let those who wish to see her take a railway ticket, and save us academicians colors and canvas. Quant a moi, the public must go to the moun- tains, as Mahomet had to do ; for the mountains shall not come to the public." ' One of your wilful paradoxes, Mr. Mellot ; why, you arb photographing them all day long." " Not quite all day long, madam. And, after all, il faui vivre: I want a few luxuries ; I have no capacity for keep ing a shop ; photographing pays better than painting 32 B74 BEDDGELERT. consideriug the time it takes ; and it is only Nature repro diicing herself, not caricaturing her. But if any one will ensure me a poor two thousand a year, I will promise to photograph no more, but vanish to Sicily or Calabria, and sit with Sabina in an orchard all my days, twining rose- garlands for her pretty head, like Theocritus and his friends, while the ' pears drop on our shoulders, and the apples by our side.' " . " What do you think of all this ? " asked Valencia of Frank. " That I am too like the Emersonian oyster here, very happy, and very useless ; and, therefore, very anxious to be gone." " Surely you have earned the right to be idle a while ? " " No one has a right to be idle." " ! " groaned Claude ; " where did you find that elev- enth commandment ? " " I have done with all eleventh commandments ; for I find it quite hard work enough to keep the ancient ten. But I find it, Mellot, in the deepest abyss of all ; in the very depth from which the commandments sprang. But we will not talk about it here." " Why not ? " asked Valencia, looking up. " Are we so very naughty as to be unworthy to listen ? " " And are these mountains," asked Claude, " so ugly and ill-made, that they are an unfit pulpit for a sermon ? No ; tell me what you mean. After all, I am half in jest." " Do not courtesy, pity, chivalry, generosity, self-sacri- fice, — in short, being of use, — do not our hearts tell us that they are the most beautiful, noble, lovely things in the- world?" " I suppose it is so," said Valencia. " Why does one admire a soldier? Not for his epaulets and red coat, but because one knows that, coxcomb though he be at home here, there is the power in him of that same self-sacrifice that, when he is called, he will go and die that he may be of use to his country. And yet — it may seem invidious to say so just now — but there are other sorts of self sacrifice, less showy, but even more beautiful." " 0, Mr. Headley, what can a man do more than die for Us countrymen ? " " Live for them. It is a longer work, and therefore a more difficult and a nobler one." Frank spoke in a somewhat sad and abstracted tone. BEDUGELEET. 375 "But, tell me," she said, "what all this has to do wit! — with the deep matter of which you spoke ? " " Simply that it is the law of all earth, and heaven, and Him who made them. That God is perfectly powerful, because He is perfectly and infinitely of use ; and perfectly good, because He delights utterly and always in being of use ; and that, therefore, we can become like God — as the very heathens felt that we can, and ought to become — only in proportion as we become of use. I did not see it once. [ tried to be good, not knowing what good meant. 1 tried to be good, because I thought it would pay me in the world to come. But, at last, I saw that all life, all devotion, all piety, were only worth anything, only divine, and God- like, and God-beloved, as they were means to that one end — to be of use." " It is a noble thought, Headley," said Claude ; but Valen cia was silent. " It is a noble thought, Mellot ; and all thoughts become clear in the light of it ; even that most difficult thought of all, which so often torments good people, when they feel, ' I ought to love God, and yet I do not love Him.' Easy to love Him, if one can once think of Him as the concentration, the ideal perfection, of all which is most noble, admirable, lovely in human character ! And easy to work, too, when one once feels that one is working for such a Being, and with such a Being, as that ! The whole world round us, and the future of the world too, seem full of light even down to its murkiest and foulest depths, when we can but remember that great idea, — an infinitely useful God over all, who is trying to make each of us useful in his place. If that be not the beatific vision of which old Mystics spoke so raptur- ously, one glimpse of which was perfect bliss, I at least know none nobler, desire none more blessed. Pray forgive me, Miss St. Just ! I ought not to intrude thus I " "Go on 1 " said Valencia. "I — I really have no more to say. I have said too much. I do not know how I have been betrayed so far," stammered Prank, who had the just dislike of his school of anything like display on such solemn matters. " Can you tell us too much truth ? Mr. Headley is right, Mr. Mellot, and you are wrong." " It will not be the first time, Miss St. Just. But what [ spoke in jest, he has answered in earnest." " He was quite right. We are none of us half eamesl 376 BEDDGELERT. enough. There is Lucia with the children." And she ntse,, and walked across the garden. " You have moved the fair trifler somewhat," said Claude. " Grod grant it I but I cannot think what made me." " Why think ? You spoke out nobly, and I shall not for- get your sermon." " I was not preaching at you, most affectionate and kindly of men." " And laziest of men, likewise. What can I do now, at this moment, to be of use to any one ? Set me my task." But Frank was following with his eyes Valencia, as she went hurriedly across to Lucia. He saw her take two of the children at once off her sister's hands, and carry them away down a walk. A few minutes afterwards he could hear her romping with them ; but he could not have guessed, from the silver din of those merry voices, that Valencia's heart was heavy within her. For her conscience was really smitten. Of what use was she in the world ? Major Campbell had talked to her often about her duties to this person and to that, of this same necessity of being useful ; but she had escaped from the thought, as we have seen her, in laughing at poor little Scoutbush on the very same score. But why had not Major Campbell's sermons touched her heart as this one had ? Who can tell ? Who is there among us to whom an oft- heard truth has not become a tiresome and superfluous common-place, till one day it has flashed before us utterly new, indubitable, not to be disobeyed, written in letters of fire across the whole vault of heaven ? All one can say is, that her time was not come. Besides, she looked on Major Campbell as a being utterly superior to herself ; and that very superiority, while it allowed her to be as familiar with him as she chose, excused her in her own eyes from opening to him her real heart. She could safely jest with him, let him pet her, play at being his daughter, while she felt that between him and her lay a gulf as wide as between earth and heaven ; and that very notion comforted her in her naughtiness ; for in that case, of course, his code of morals was not meant for her ; and while she took his warnings (as many of them at least as she chose), she thought herself by no means bound to follow his examples. She all but wor- shipped him as her guardian angel ; but she was not meant for an angel herself ; so she could indulge freely in those 'ittle escapades and frivolities for which she was born, and then, whenever frightened, run for shelter under his wings BEDDGELEBT. 371 But to hear the same, and even loftier words, from the lips of the curate, whom she had made her toy, almost her butt. Was to have them brought down unexpectedly and painfully to her own level. If this was his ideal, why ought it not to be hers? Was she not his equal, perhaps his supeiior? And so her very pride humbled her, as she said to heiseif, " Then I too ought to be useful. I can be ; I will be I " "Lucia," asked she, that very afternoon, "will you let me take the children off your hands while Clara is iDusy in the morning ? " " 0, you dear good creature ! but it would be such a gene I They are really stupid, I am afraid, sometimes, or else I am. They make me so miserably cross at times." " I will take them. It would be a relief to you, would it not ? " " My dear ! " said poor Lucia, with a doleful smile, which seemed to Valencia's accusing heart to say, " Have you only now discovered that fact ? " From that day Valencia courted Headley's company more and more. To fall in love with him was of course absurd; and he had cured himself of his passing fancy for her. There • could'tie no harm, then, in her making the most of conversa- tion so different from what she heard in the world, and which in her heart of hearts she liked so much better. For it was with Valencia as with all women ; in this common fault of frivolity, as in most others, the men rather than they are to blame. Valencia had cultivated in herself those qualities which she saw admired by the men whom she met, and some one of whom, of course, she meant to marry ; and, as their female ideal was a butterfly ideal, a butterfly she became. But beneath all lay, deep and strong, the woman's love of nobleness and wisdom, the woman's longing to learn and to be led, which has shown itself in every age in so many a fantastic and even ugly shape, and which is their real excuse for the flirting with "geniuses," casting themselves at the feet of directors ; which had tempted her to coquette vrith Elsley, and was now bringing her into "undesirable" inti- macy with the poor curate. She had heard that daj', with some sorrow, his announce- ment that he wished to be gone ; but, as he did not refer to it again, she left the thought alone, and all but forgot it. The subject, however, was renewed about a week after' wards. " When you return to Aberalva," she had said, in reference to some commission. " I shall never return to Aberalva." 32* ^ 378 BEDDGELERT. " Not return ? " " No ; I have already resigned the curacy. I believe youi uncle has appointed to it the man whom Campbell found for me ; and an excellent man, I hear, he is. At least he will do better there than I." " But what could have induced you ? How sorry all the people will be I " " I am not so sure of that," said he, with a smile. " I did what I could at last to win back at least their respect, and to leave at least not hatred behind me ; but [ am unfit for them. I did not understand them. I meant— no matter what I meant ; but I failed. God forgive me 1 I shall now go somewhere where I shall have simpler work to do ; where 1 shall at least have a chance of practising the lesson which I learnt there. I learnt it all, strange to say, fi-om the two people in the parish from whom I expected to learn least." " Whom do you mean ? " " The doctor and the schoolmistress." " Why from them less than from any in the parish ? She BO good, and he so clever ? " " That I shall never tell to any one now. Suffice it that I was mistaken." Valencia could obtain no further answer ; and so the days ran on, every one becoming more and more intimate, till a certain afternoon, on which they were all to go and pic-nic, under Claude's pilotage, above the lake of Gwynnant. Scout- bush was to have been with them ; but a heavy day's rain in the mean while swelled the streams into fishing order ; so the little man ordered a car, and started at three in the morning for Bettws with Mr. Bowie, who, however loath to give up the arrangement of plates and the extraction of champagne corks, considered his presence by the river-side a natural necessity. "My dear Miss Clara, ye see, there'll be nobody to see that his lordship pits on dry stockings ; and he 's always getting over the tops of his water-boots, being young and daft, as we 've all been, and no offence to you ; and, to tell you truth, I can stand all' temptations — in moderation, that m — save an' except the chance o' cleiking a fish." CHAPTER XX. BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. The spot •which Claude had chosen for the pic-nic was on jne of the lower spurs of that great mountain of The Maid- en's Peak, which bounds the vale of Gwynnant to the south. Above, a wilderness of gnarled volcanic dykes, and purple heather ledges ; below, broken into glens, in which still linger pale green ashwoods, relics of that primeval forest in which, in Bess's days, great Leicester used to rouse the hart with hound and horn. Among these Claude had found a little lawn, guarded by great rocks, out of every cranny of which the aslies grew aa freely as on flat grouid. Their feet were bedded deep in sweet fern and wild raspberries, and golden-rod, and purple scabious, and tall blue campanulas. Above them, and be- fore them, and below them, the ashes shook their green fili- gree in the bright sunshine ; and through them glimpses were seen of the purple cliffs above, and, right in front, 'of the great cataract of Nant Gwynnant, a long snow-white line zig-zagging down coal-black cliffs for many a hundred feet, and above it, depth beyond depth of purple shadow away into the very heart of Snowdon, up the long valley of Cwm-dyli, to the great amphitheatre of Clogwyn-y-Garnedd ; while over all the cone of Snowdon rose, in perfect symme- try, between his attendant peaks of Lliwedd and Crib Coch. There they sat, and laughed, and talked, the pleasant summer afternoon, in their pleasant summer bower; and never regretted the silence of the birds, so sweetly did Valencia's song go up, in many a rich sad Irish melody ; while the lowing of the milch kine, and the wild cooing of the herd-boys, came softly up from the vale below, " and all the air was filled with pleasant noise of waters." Then Claude must needs photograph them all, as thoy sat, and group them first according to his fancy ; and among his fancies was one, that Valencia should sit as queen, with Headley and the major at her feet. And Headley lounged (379^ 380 . BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. there, and looked into the grass, and thought it well foi him could he lie there forever. Then Claude must photograph the mountain itself ; and all began to talk of it. "See the breadth of light and shadow," said Claude; " how the purple depth of the great lap of the mountain is thrown back by the sheet of green light on Lliwedd, and the red glory on the cliffs of Crib Coch, till you seem to look away into the bosom of the hill, mile after mile." " And so you do," said Headley. " I have learnt to dis- tinguish mountain distances since I have been here. That peak is four miles from us now ; and yet the shadowed cliffs at its foot seem double that distance." "And look, look,",said Valencia, "at the long line of glory vnth which the western sun is gilding the edge of the left-hand slope, bringing it nearer and nearer to us every moment, against the deep blue sky 1 " " But what a form 1 Perfect lightness, perfect symme- try I " said Claude. " Curve sweeping over curve, peak towering over peak, to the highest point, and then sinking down again as gracefully as they rose. One can hardly help fancying that the mountain moves, that those dancing lines are not instinct with life." " At least," said Headley, " that the mountain is a leap- ing wave, frozen just ere it fell." "Perfect!" said Valencia. "That is the very expres- sion ! So concise, and yet so complete 1 " And Headley, poor fool, felt as happy as if he had found a gold mine. "To me," said Elsley, "the fancy rises of some great Eastern monarch sitting in royal state ; with ample shoul- ders sloping right and left, he lays his purple-mantled arms upon the heads of two of those Titan guards who stand on either side his footstool." " While from beneath his throne," said Headley, " as Eastern poets would say, flow everlasting streams, life- giving, to fertilize broad lands below." " I did not know that you, too, were a poet," said Valencia. "Nor I, madam. But if such scenes as these, and in such company, cannot inspire the fancy even of a pooi country curate to something of exaltation, he must be dull indeed." " Why not put some of these thoughts into poetiy ? " " What use ? " answered he, in so low, sad,' and meaning BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON A'^ ONCE. S81 a tone, meant only for her ear, that Valencia looked down at him ; but he was gazing intently upon the glorious scene. Was he hinting at the vanity and vexation of spirit of poor Elsley's versifying? Or did he mean that he had now no purpose in life, no prize for which it was worth while to win honor ? She did not answer him ; but he answered himself — per- haps to explain away his own speech, — " No, madam 1 God has written the poetry already, and there it is before me. My business is, not to re-write it clumsily, but to read it humbly, and give Him thanks for it." More and more had Valencia been attracted by Headley during the last few' weeks. Accustomed to men who tried to make the greatest possible show of what small wits they possessed, she was surprised to find one who seemed to think it a duty to keep his knowledge and taste in the background. She gave him credit for more talent than appeared ; for more, perhaps, than he really had. She was piqued, too, at his veiy modesty and self-restraint. Why did not he, like the rest who dangled about her, spread out his peacock's train for her eyes, and try to show his wor- ship of her by setting himself off in his brightest colors? And yet this modesty awed her into respect of him, for she could not forget that, whether he had sentiment much or little, sentiment was not the staple of his manhood ; she could not forget his cholera work ; and she knew that, under that delicate and bashful outside lay virtue and hero- ism, enough and to spare. "But, if you put these thoughts into words, you would teach others to read that poetry." " My business is to teach people to do right ; and, if I cannot, to pray G-od to find some one who can." "Right, Headley I" said Major Campbell, laying Ms hand on the curate's shoulder. " God dwells no more in books written with pens than in temples made with hands ; and the sacrifice which pleases Him is not verse, but right- eousness. Do you recollect, Queen Whims, what I wroto once in your album ? ' Be good, sweet maid, and let who will be cleTer, Do noble things, not dream them, all day long ; So making life, death, and that yast forever. One grand, sweet song.' " *' But, you naughty, hypocritical Saint Pere, you wr'ts poetry yourself, and beautifully." 382 BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. " Yes, as I smoke my cigar, to comfort my poor rheumatia old soul. But if I lived only to write poetry I should think myself as wise as if I lived only to smoke tobacco." Valencia's eyes could not help glancing at Elsley, who had wandered away to the neighboring brook, and was gaz- ing with all his eyes upon a ferny rock, having left Lucia to help Claude with his photographing. Frank saw her look, and read its meaning, and answered her thoughts, perhaps too hastily, — " And what a really well-read and agreeable man he is, all the while 1 What a mine of quaint learning, and beauti- ful old legend 1 If he would but bring it into the common stock, for every one's amusement, instead of hoarding it up for himself 1 " " Why, what else does he do but bring it into the common stock, when he publishes a book which every one can read? " said Valencia, half out of the spirit of contradiction. " And few understand," said Headley, quietly. " You are very unjust ; he is a very discerning and agree- able person, and I shall go and talk to him." And away went Valencia to Elsley, somewhat cross. Woman-like, she allowed, for the sake of her sister's honor, no one but herself to depreciate Vavasour, and chose to thiok it imper- tinent on Headley's part. Headley began quietly talking to Major Campbell about botany, while Valencia, a little ashamed of herself all the while, took her revenge on Elsley by scolding him for his unsocial ways, in the very terms which Headley had been using. At last Claude, having finished his photographing, de- parted downward to get some new view from the road below, and Lucia returned to the rest of the party. Valencia joined them at once, bringing up Elsley, who was not in the best of humors after her diatribes ; and the whole party wan- dered about the woodland, and scrambled down beside the torrent-beds. At last they came to a point where they could descer d uo further ; for the stream, falling over a cliff, had worn itself a narrow chasm in the rock, and thundered down it into a deep narrow pool. Lucia, who was basking in the sunshine and the flowers as simply as a child, would needs peep over the brink, and made Elsley hold her while she looked down. A quiet hap- piness, as of old recollections, came into her eyes, as she watched the sparkling and foaming water : BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. 383 " And beauty, born of murmuring sound, Did pass into her face." Campbell started. The Lucia of seven years ago seemed to bloom out again in that pale face and wrinkled foiehead ; and a smile came over his face, too, as he looked. " Just like the dear old waterfall at Kilanbaggan. Yon recoUoct it, Major Campbell ? " Elsley always disliked recollections of Kilanbaggan ; rec- ollections of her life before he knew her ; recollections of pleasures in which he had not shared ; especially recollec- tions of her old acquaintance with the major. " I do not, I am ashamed to say," replied the major. " Why, you were there a whole summer. Ah ! I sup- pose you thought about nothing but your salmon-fishing. If Elsley had been there he would not have forgotten a rock or a pool ; would you, Elsley ? " " Keally, in spite of all salmon, I have not forgotten a rock or a pool about the place which I ever saw ; but at the waterfall I never was." "So he has not forgotten ? What cause had he to remember so carefully ? " thought Elsley. " 0, Elsley, look ! What is that exquisite flower, like a ball of gold, hanging just over the water ? " If Elsley had not had the evil spirit haunting about him, he would have joined in Lucia's admiration of the beautiful creature, as it drooped into the foam from its narrow ledge, with its fan of palmate leaves bright green, against the black mosses of the rock, and its golden petals glowing like a tiny sun in the darkness of the chasm. As it was, he answered, — " Only a buttercup." " I am sure it's not a buttercup! It is three times as large, and a so much paler yellow I Is it a buttercup, now, Major Campbell ? " Campbell looked down. " Very nearly one, after all ; but its real name is the globe flower. It is common enough here in spring ; you may see the leaves in every pasture. But I suppose this plant, hid- den from the light, has kept its flowers till the autumn." " And till I came to see it, darling that it is 1 I should like to reward it by wearing it home." " I dare say it would be very proud of the honor ; espe- cially if Mr. Vavasour would embalm it in verse, after it had done service to you." 384 BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. " It is doing good enough service where it is," said Els- ley. " Why pluck out the very eye of that perfect picture ? " "Strange," said Lucia, "that such a beautiful thing should be born there all alone upon these rocks, with no one to look at it." " It enjoys itself suflSciently without us, no doubt," said Elsley. " Yes ; but I want to enjoy it. 0, if you could but get it for me ! " Elsley looked down. There was fifteen feet of somewhat slippery rock, then a ragged ledge a foot broad, in a crack of which the flower grew, then the dark boiling pool. Els- ley shrugged his shoulders, and said, smiling, as if it were a fine thing to say : " Keally, my dear, all men are not knight errants enough to endanger their necks for a bit of weed ; and I cannot say that such rough tours de force are at all to my fancy." Lucia turned away ; but she was vexed. Campbell could see that a strange fancy for the plant had seized her. As she walked from the spot, he could hear her talking about its beairtyto^Valencia. ^Qampbell's blood boiled. To be asked by that woman — by any woman — to get her that flower, — and to be afraid I It was bad enough to be ill-tempered ; but to be a coward, and to be proud thereof! He yielded to a temptation which he had much better have left alone, seeing that Lucia had not asked him, swung himself easily enough down the ledge, got the flower, and put it, quietly bowing, into Mrs VavasSuf'sTiatni. He was frightened when he had done it ; for he saw, to his surprise, that she was frightened. She took the flower, smiling thanks, and expressing a little common-place horror and astonishment at his having gone down such a danger- ous cliff; but she took it to Elsley, drew his arm through hers, and seemed determined to make as much of him as possible for the rest of the afternoon. " The fellow was jealous, then, in addition to his other sins 1 " And Camp- lell, who felt that he had put himself unnecessarily forward between husband and wife, grew more and more angry ; and somehow, unlike his usual wont, refused to confess himself in the wrong, because he was in the wrong. Cer- tainly it was not pleasant for poor Elsley ; and so Lucia felt, and bore with him when he refused to be comforted, and rendered blessing for railing when he said to her more BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. 386 than one angry word ; but she had become accustomed tc angry words by this time. All might have passed off, but for that careless Valencia, who had not seen the details of what had passed, and so advised herself to ask where Lucia got that beautiful plant? " Major Campbell picked it for her from the cliff," said Elsley, dryly. " Ah ? at the risk of his neck, I don't doubt. He is the most matchless cavalier servente." "1 shall leave Mrs. Vavasour to his care, then, that is, for the present," said Elsley, drawing his arm from Lucia's. "I assure you," answered she, roused in her turn by his determined bad temper, "I am not the least afraid at being left in the charge of so old a friend." Elsley made no answer, but sprang down through the thickets, calling loudly to Claude Mellot. It was very naughty of Lucia, no doubt ; but even a worm will turn, and there are times when people who have not courage to hold their peace must say something or other, and do not always, in the hurry, get out what they ought, but only what they have time to think of. And she forgot what she had said the next minute, in Major Camp- bell's question, — " Am I, then, so old a friend, Mrs. Vavasour ? " " Of course ; who older ? " Campbell was silent a moment. If he was inclined to choke, at least Lucia did not see it. " I trust I have not offended your — Mr. Vavasour ? " "0!" she said with forced gayety, "only one of his poetic fancies. He wanted so much to see Mr. Mellot photograph the waterfall. I hope he will be in time to find him." "I am a plain soldier, Mrs. Vavasour, and I only ask because I do not understand. What are poetic fancies ? " Lucia looked up in his face, puzzled, and saw there an expression so grave, pitying, tender, that her heart leaped up toward him, and then sank back again. " Why do you ask ? Why need you know ? You are no poet." " And for that very cause I asked you." "0, but," said she, guessing at what was iq his mind, and trying, woman-like, to play purposely at cross purposes, and to defend her husband at all risks ; " he has an extraor- dinary poetic faculty ; all the world agrees to that, Majoi Campbell." 33 886 BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. "' What matter ? " said he. Lucia would have been veij angry, and, perhaps, ought to have been so ; for what busi- ness of Campbell's was it whether her husband were kind 10 her or not ? But there was a deep sadness, almost despair, in the tone, which disarmed her. " 0, Major Campbell, is it not a glorious thing to be a poet ? And is it not a glorious thing to be a poet's wife ? 0, for the sake of that — if I could but see him honored, appreciated, famous, as he will be dome day ! Though I think" (and she spoke with all a woman's pride) "he is somewhat famous now, is he not ? " " Famous ? Yes," answered Campbell, with an abstracted voice, and then rejoined, quickly, " if you could but see that, what then ? " " Why, then," said she, with a half smile (for she had nearly entrapped herself in an admission of what she was determined to conceal), "why, then, I should be still more what I am now, his devoted little wife, who cares for nobody and nothing but putting his study to rights, and bringing up his children." "Happy children !" said he, after a pause, and half to himself, " who have such a mother to bring them up." "Do you really think so? But flattery used not to be one of your sins. Ah, I wish you could give me some advice about how I am to teach them." " So it is she who has the work of education, not he I " thought Campbell to himself; and then answered, gayly, — " My dear madam, what can a confirmed old bachelor like me know about children ? " " 0, don't you know " (and she gave one of her pretty Irish laughs) " that it is the old maids who always write the children's books, for the benefit of us poor ignorant married women ? But" (and she spoke earnestly again) " we all know how wise and good you are. I did not know it in old times. I am afraid I used to torment you when I was young and foolish." "Where on earth can Mellot and Mr. Vavasour be ? " asked Campbell. " 0, never mind ; Mr. Mellot has gone wandering dowD the glen with his apparatus, and my Elsley has gone wan- dering after him, and will find him in due time, with hia head in a black bag, and a great bull just going to charge him from behind, like that hapless man in ' Punch.' I always tell Mr. Mellot that will be his end." Campbell was deeply shocked to hear the light tone in BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. 381 which ahe talked of the passionate temper of a man whom she so surely loved. How many outbursts of it therdi must have tieen ; how many paroxysms of astonishment, shame, grief, — p.-^rhaps, alas ! counter-bursts of anger, — ere that heart could have become thus proof against the ever-lower- ing thunderstorm 1 " Well I " he said, " all we can do is to walk down to the car, and let them follow ; and, meanwhile, I will give you my wise opinion about this education question, whereof I know nothing." " It will be all oracular to me, for I know nothing either ; " and she put her arm through his, and walked on. "Did you hurt yourself then? I am sure you are in pain." " I ? Never less free from it, with many thanks to you. What made you think so ? " " I heard you breathe so hard, and quite stamp your feet, I thought. I suppose it was fancy." It was not fancy, nevertheless. Major Campbell was stamping down something ; and succeeded, too, in crush ing it. They walked on towards the car, Valencia and Headley following them ; ere they arrived at the place where the-' were to meet it, it was quite dark ; but, what was morn important, the car was not there. " The stffpid man must have mistaken his orders, and gone home." " Or let his horse go home of itself, while he was asleep inside. He was more than half tipsy when we started." So spoke the major, divining the exact truth. There was nothing to be done but to walk the four miles home, and let the_two truants follow as they could. " We shall have plenty of time for our educational lecture," said Lucia. "Plenty of time to waste, then, my dear lady." " 0, I never talk with you five minutes — I do not know why — without feeling wiser and happier. I envy Valencia for having seen so much of you of late." Little thought poor Lucia, as she spoke those innocent words, that within four yards of her, crouched behind the wall, his face and every limb writhing with mingled curiosity and rage, was none other but her husband. He had given place to the devil ; and the devil (for the "superstitious" and "old-world" notion which attributes Buch frenzies to the devil has not yet been superseded by a S88 BOTH SIDES OP THE MOON AT ONCE. better one) had entered into him, and concentral ed all thfl evil habits and passions which he had indulged for yoara into one flaming hell within him. Miserable man ' Ilis torments were sevenfold ; and, if ne had sinned, he was at least punished. Not merely by all which a huebtind has a right to feel in such a case, vt fancies that he has a right ; not merely by tortured vanity and self-conceit, by the agony of seeing any man preferred to him, which, to a man of Blsley's character, was of itsell unbearable ; not merely by the loss of trust in one whom he had once trusted utterly ; but, over and above all, and worst of all, by the feeling of shame, self-reproach, and self- hatred, which haunts a jealous man, and which ought to haunt him, — for few men lose the love of women who have once loved them, save by their own folly or baseness ; by the recollection that he had traded on her trust ; that he had drugged his own conscience with the fancy that she must love him always, let him do what he would ; and had neglected and insulted her affection, because he had fancied, in his conceit, that it was inalienable. And with the loss of self-respect came recklessness of it, and drove him on, aa it has jealous men in all ages, to meannesses unspeakable, which have made them for centuries, poor wretches, the butts of worthless playwrights, and the scorn of their fellow- men. Elsley had wandered, he hardly knew how or whither, — for his calling to Mellot was the merest blind, — stumbling over rocks, bruising himself against tree-trunks, to this wall. He knew they must pass it. He waited for them, and had his reward. Blind with rage, he hardly waited for the sound of their footsteps to die away, before he had sprung into the road, and hurried up it in the opposite direc- tion, — anywhere, everywhere, to escape from them and from self. Whipt by the furies, he fled along the road and up the vale, he cared not whither. And what were Headley and Valencia, who, of necessity, had paired off together, doing all the while ? They walked on silently side by side for ten minutes ; then Frank said, — "I have been impertinent. Miss St. Just, and I beg youi pardon." " No, you have not," said she, quite hastily. " You were right, too right ; has it not been proved in the last dve minutes ? My poor sister ! What can be done to BOTH SIDES OP THE MOON AT ONCE. 389 inend Mr. Vavasour's temper? I wish you could ialk to him, Mr. Headley." " He is beyond my art. His age, and his talents, and his --his consciousness of them," said Frank, using the mildest term he could find, " would prevent so insignificant a person as me having any influence. But what I cannot do, God's grace may." " Can it change a man's character, Mr. Headley ? It may make good men better — but can it cure temper ? " " Major Campbell must have told you that it can do any- thing." " Ah, yes ; with men as wise, and strong, and noble as he is ; but with such a weak, vain man — " " Miss St. Just, I know one who is neither wise, nor strong, nor noble, but as weak and vain as any man, in whom God has conquered — as He may conquer yet in Mr. Vavasour — all which makes man cling to life." " What, all ? " asked she, suspecting, and not wrongly, that he spoke of himself. " All, I suppose, which it is good for them to have crushed. There are feelings which last on, in spite of all struggles to quench them — I suppose, because they ought to last ; because, while they torture, they will ennoble. Death will quench them ; or, if not, satisfy them ; or, if not, set them at rest somehow." " Death ? " answered she, in a startled tone. " yes. Our friend, Major Campbell's friend. Death. We have been seeing a good deal of him together lately, and have come to the conclusion that he is the most useful, pleasant, and instructive of all friends." " 0, Mr. Headley, do not speak so I Are you in ear- nest ? " " So much in earnest, that I have resolved to go out as an army chaplain ; to see in the war somewhat more of my new friend." " Impossible 1 Mr. Headley ; it will kill you 1 All that hoiTible fever and cholera ! " " And what possible harm can it do me, if it does kill me, Miss St. Just ? " " Mr. Headley, this is madness I I — we cannot allow you to throw away your life thus — so young, and — and such prospects before you 1 And there is nothing that my brother would not do for you, were it only for your \ieroism at Aberalva. There is not one of the family who 33* 390 BOTH SrDE3 OF THE MOON AT ONCE. does not love and respect yon, and long to see all ihi world appreciating you as we do ; and your poor mother — " " I have told my mother all. Miss St. Just. And she has said, ' Go ; it is your only hope.' She has other sons to comfort her. Let us say no more of it. Had I thought thai you would have disapproved of it, I would never have men- tioned the thing." "Disapprove of — your going to die? You shall not! And for me, too ; for I guess all — all is my fault 1 " " All is mine," said he, quietly ; " who was fool enough to fancy that I could forget you — conquer my love for you ; " and, at these words, his whole voice and manner changed in an instant into wildest passion. " I must speak 1 — now and never more — I love you still, fool that I am 1 Would God I had never seen you ! No, not that. Thank God for that to the last ; but would God I had died of that cholera ! that I had never come here, conceited fool that I was, fancying that it was possible, after having once — No 1 Let me go, go anywhere, where I may burden you no more with my absurd dreams 1 You, who have had the same thing said to you, and in finer words, a hun- dred times, by men who would not deign to speak to me I " And, covering his face in his hands, he strode on, as if to escape. " I never had the same thing said to me ! " " Never ? How often have fine gentlemen, noblemen, sworn that they were dying for you ? " " They never have said to me what you have done." " No — I am clumsy, I suppose — " " Mr. Headley, indeed you are unjust to yourself — unjust to me I " "I — to you ? Never! I know you better than you know yourself — see in you what no one else sees. 0, what fools they are who say that love is blind I Blind ? He sees souls with God's own light ; not as they have become ; but as they ought to become — can become — are already in the sight of Him who made them I " 1 " And what might I become ? " asked she, half frightened by the new earnestness of his utterance. " How can I tell ? Something infinitely too high for me, at least, who even now am not worthy to kiss the dust oif your feet." "0, do not speak so; little do you know — ! No, Mr Headley, it is you who are too good for me ; too noble, BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. 391 Bingle-eyed, solf-sacrificing, to endure my vanity and meau< ness fir a day. ' "Madam, do not speak thus! Give me no word which my folly can distort into a ray of hope, unless you wish to drive me mad. No 1 it is impossible ; and, were it possible, what but ruin tc my soul 1 I should live for you, and not for my work. I should become a schemer, ambitious, intriguing, in the vain hope of proving myself to the world worthy of you. No ; let it be. ' Let the dead bury their dead, and follow thou me.' " She made no answer — what answer was there to make f And he strode on by her side in silence for full ten minutes. At last she was forced to speak. " Mr. Headley, recollect that this conversation has gone too far for us to avoid coming to some definite under- standing — " " Then it shall. Miss St. Just. Then it shall, once and for all ; formally and deliberately, it shall end now. Sup- pose — I only say suppose — that I could, without fail- ing in my own honor, my duty to my calling, make myself such a name among good men that, poor parson though I be, your family need be ashamed of nothing about me, save my poverty ? Tell me, now and forever, could it be possible — " He stopped. She walked on, silent, in her turn. " Say no, as a matter of course, and end it I " said he, bit- terly. She drew a long breath, as if heaving off a weight. " I cannot — dare not say it." " It ? Which of the two ? yes, or no ? " She was silent. He stopped, and spoke slowly and calmly. " Say that 9,gain, and tell me that I am not dreaming. You ? the ad- mired ! the worshipped 1 the luxurious I — and no blame to you that you are what you were born — could you endure a little parsonage, the teaching village school-children, tend- ing dirty old women, and petty cares for all the whole yeai round ? " " Mr. Headley," answered she, slowly and calmly, in her turn, " I could endure a cottage, — a prison, I fancy, at moments, — to escape from this world, of which I am tired,, which will soon be tired of me ; from women who envy me, impute to me ambitions as base as their own ; from men who admire — not me, for they do not know me, and never will «■ - but what in me — I hate them I — will givo them pleas- 392 BOTH SIDES CF THE MOON AT ONCE. ure. I hate it all, despise it all ; despise myself for it ail every morning when I wake 1 What does it do for me, but rouse in me the very parts of my own character which are most despicable, most tormenting ? If it goes on, I feel I could become as frivolous, as mean, ay, as wicked as the worst. Tou do not know — you do not know — . I have envied the nuns their convents. I have envied Selkirk his desert island. I envy now the milkmaids there below ; any- thing to escape and be in earnest, anything for some one to teach me to be of use ! Yes, this cholera, — and this war ■ — though only, only its coming shadow has passed over me, — and your words too," — cried she, and stopped and hesitated, as if afraid to tell too much — "they have wakened me — to a new life — at least to the dream of a new life ! " " Have you not Major Campbell ? " said Headley, with a terrible effort of will. " Yes ; but has he taught me ? He is dear, and good, and wise ; but he is too wise, too great for me. He plays with me as a lion might with a mouse ; he is like a grand angel far above in another planet, who can pity and advise, but who cannot — What am I saying ? " and she covered her face with her hand. She dropped her glove as she did so. Headley picked it up and gave it to her ; as he did so their hands met, and their hands did not part again. " You know that I love you, Valencia St. Just I " " Too well I too well I " " But you know, too, that you do not love me." " Who told you so ? What do you know ? What do I know ? Only that I long for some one to make me — to make me as good as you are I " A^d she burst into tears. — " Valencia, will you trust me ? " " Yes 1 " cried khe, looking up at him suddenly ; " if you will not go to the war." " No — no — no I Would you have me turn traitor and coward to God ; and now, of all moments in my life ? " "Noble creature!" said she ; " you will make me lova you whether I wish or not." What was it, after all, by which Prank Headley won Valencia's love ? I cannot tell. Can you tell, sir, how you won the love of your wife ? As little as you can tell of that still greater miracle — how you have kept her love eince she found out what n^^/iner jf man you were. BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. 393 So they paced homeward, hand in hand, beside the shin- jig ripples, along the Dinas shore. The birches breathed fragrance on them ; the night-hawk churred softly round their path ; the stately mountains smiled above them in the moonlight, and seemed to keep watch and ward over their love, and to shut out the noisy world, and the harsh babble and vain fashions of the town. The summer lightning flickered to the westward ; but round them the rich soft night seemed full of love, — as full of love as their own hearts were, and, like them, brooding silently upon its joy. At last the walk was over ; the kind moon sank low behind the hills ; and the darkness hid their blushes as they paced into the sleeping village, andjheir hands parted unwillingly at last. When they came into the hall, through the group of lounging gownsmen and tourists, they found Bowie arguing with Mrs. Lewis, in his dogmatic Scotch way, — " So ye see, madam, there 's no use defending the drunken loon any more at all ; and here will my leddies have just walked their bonny legs off, all through that carnal sin of drunkenness, which is the curse of your Welsh populaaa- tion." " And not quite unknown north of Tweed either, Bowie," said Valencia, laughing. "There now, say no more about it. We have had a delightful walk, and nobody is the least tired. Don't say any more, Mrs. Lewis ; but tell them to get us some supper. Bowie, so my lord has come in ? " " This half-hour good 1 " " Has he had any sport ? " "Sport! ay, troth! Five fish in the day. That's a river indeed at Bettws ! Not a pawky wee burn, like this Aberglaslyn thing." " Only five fish ? " said Valencia, in a frightened tone. "Pish, my leddy, not trouts, I said. I thought ye knew better than that by this time." " 0, salmon ? " cried Valencia, relieved. " Delightful ! I'll go to him this moment." And up stairs to Scoutbush's room she went. He was sitting in dressing-gown and slippers, sipping his claret, and fondling his fly-book (the only one he ever studied con amove), with a most complacent face. .She came in and stood demurely before him, holding her broad hat in both haids before her knees, like a school-girl, her face half-hiddei) in the black curls. Scoutbush looked up 394 BOTE SIDES OP THE MOON AT ONCE. and smiled affectionately, as he caught the light of her eyes and the arch play of her lips. " Ah ! there you are, at a pretty time of night I How beautiful you look, Val. I I wish my wife may be half aa pretty I " Valencia made him a prim curtsey. " I am delighted to hear of my lord's good sport. He will choose to be in a good humor, I suppose." " Good humor ? ga va sans dire! Three stone of fish in ' three hours ! " " Then his little sister is going to do a very foolish thing, and wants his leave to do it ; which if he will grant, she will let him do as many foolish things as he likes, without scolding him, as long as they both shall live." " Do it then, I beg. What is it ? Do you want to go up Snowdon with Headley to-morrow, to see the sun rise ? You '11 kill yourself I" " No," said Valencia very quietly ; " I only want to marry him." " Marry him I " cried Scoutbush, starting up. " Don't try to look majestic, my dear little brother, for you are really not tall enough ; as it is, you have only hooked all your flies into your dressing-gown." Scoutbush dashed himself down into his chair again. "I '11 be shot if you shall!" " You may be shot just as surely whether I do or not," said she softly ; and she knelt down before him, and put her arms round him, and laid her head upon his lap. " There, you can't run away now ; so you must hear me quietly. And you know it may not be often that we shall be together again thus ; and 0, Scoutbush 1 brother 1 if anything was to happen to you — I only say if — in this horrid war, you would not like to think that you had refused the last thing that your little Val. asked for, and that she was miserable and lonely at home ? " " I '11 be shot if you shall 1 " was all the poor viscount could get out. " Yes, miserable and lonely ; you gone away, and mon Saint Pere too ; and Lucia, she has her children — and I am so wild and weak — I must have some one to guide me and protect me — indeed I must 1 " " Why, that was what I always said 1 That was why I wanted you so to marry this season I Why did you not take Chalkclero, or half a dozen good matches who were BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. 395 dying for you, and not this confounded black parson, of all birds in the air ? " " I did not take Lord Chalkclere for the very reason that I do take Mr. Headley. I want a husband who will guide me, not one whom I must guide." " Guide ? " said Scoutbush bitterly, with one of -^hose little sparks of practical shrewdness which sometimes fell from him. " Ay, I see how it is I These intriguing rascals of parsons — they begin as father-confessors, like so many popish priests ; and one fine morning they blossom out into lovers, and so they get all the pretty women, and all the good fortunes, — the sneaking, ambitious, low-bred — " " He is neither 1 You are unjust, Scoutbush 1 " cried Valencia, looking up. " He is the very soul of honor. • He might be rich now, and have had a fine living, if he had not been too conscientious to let his uncle buy him one ; and that offended his uncle, and he would allow him nothing. And as for being low-bred, he is a gentleman, as you know ; and if his uncle be in business, his mother is a lady, and he will be well enough off one day." " You seem to know a great deal about his affairs." "He told me all, months ago — before there was any dream of this. And, my dear," she went on, relapsing into her usual arch tone, " there is no fear but his uncle will be glad enough to patronize him again, when he finds that he has married a viscount's sister." Scoutbush laughed. " You scheming little Irish rogue 1 But I won't ! I 've said it, and I won't I It 's enough to have one sister married to a poor poet, without having another married to a poor parson. 1 what have I done that I should be bothered in this way ? Is n't it bad enough to be a landlord, and to have an estate, and be responsible for a lot of people that will die of the cholera, and have to vote in the house about a lot of things I don't understand, nor anybody else, I believe, but that, over and above, I must be the head of the family, and answerable to all the world for whom my mad sisters marry ? I won't, I say ! " "Then I shall just go and marry without your leave! I 'm of age, you know, and my fortune 's my own ; and then we shall come in as the runaway couples do in a play, while you sit there in your dressing-gown as the stern father, — won't you borrow a white wig for the occasion, my lord? — and we shall fall down on our knees, so " -- and she put herself in the prettiest attitude in the world, — " and beg your blessing — Please forgive us thit time, and 596 BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. we '11 never do so any more ! And then you will turn youi face away, like the baron in the ballad, • And brushed away the springmg tear He proudly strove to hide,' Et cetera, et cetera. Finish the scene for yourself, with a — ' Bless ye, my children ; bless ye 1 ' " " Go along, and marry the cat, if you like 1 You are mad ; and I am mad ; and all the world 's mad, I think." "There," she said, "I knew that he would be a good boy at last I " And she sprang up, threw her arms round his neck, and, to his great astonishment, burst into the most violent^fit of crying. " Good graeitjusy Valencia ! do be reasonable ! You '11 go into a fit, or somebody will hear you 1 You know how 1 hate a scene. Do be good, there 's a darling ! Why did n't you tell me at first how much you wished for it, and I would have said yes in a moment ? " " Because I didn't know myself," cried she, passionately. " There, I will be good, and love you better than all the world except one. And if you let those horrid Russians hurt you, I will hate you as long as I live, and be misera- ble all my life afterwards." " Why, Valencia, do you know that sounds very like a bull?" " Am I not a wild Irish girl ? " said she, and hurried out, leaving Scoutbush to return to his flies. She bounded into Lucia's room, there to pour out a burst- ing heart — and stopped short. Lucia was sitting on the bed, her shawl and bonnet tossed upon the floor, her head sunk on her bosom, her arras sunk by her sides. " Lucia, what is it ? Speak to me, Lucia ! " She pointed faintly^ a letter ou the floor — Valencia caught it up — Lucia made a gesture as if to stop her. " No, you must not read it. Too dreadful ! " But Valencia read it, while Lucia covered her face in lier hands, and uttered a long, low, shuddering moan of bitter agony. Valencia read, with flashing eyes and bursting brow. It was a hideous letter. The words of a man trying to supply the place of strength by virulence. A hideous letter, unfit to be written here. '^ — "Valencia! Valencia I It is false — a mistake. He ia BOTH SIDES OP THE MOON AT ONCE. 397 dreaming You know it is false 1 You will not leave me too ?" Valenci % dashed it on the ground, clasped her sister iu her arms, and covered her head with kisses. "My Lucia I My own sweet, good sister 1 Base, cow- ardly ! " sobbed she, in her rage ; while Lucia's agony began to find a vent in words, and she moaned on, — " What have I done ? All that flower, that horrid flower ! but who would have dreamed — and Major Campbell, too, of all men upon earth ? Valencia, it is some horrid delusion of the devil. Why, he was there all the while — and you too. Could he think that I should before his very face 1 What must he fancy me ? 0, it is a delusion of the devil, and nothing else I " " He is a wretch ! I will take the letter to my brother ; he shall right you 1 " " Ah no I no! never! Let me tear it to atoms — hide it ! It is all a mistake 1 He did not mean it ! He will recollect himself to-morrow, and come back." "Let him come back if he dare ! " cried Valencia, in a tone which said, " I could kill him with my own hands I " " 0, he will come back 1 He cannot have the heart to leave his poor little Lucia. 0, cruel, cowardly, not to have said one word — not one word to explain all — but it was all my fault, my wicked, odious temper ; and after I had seen how vexed he was, too I — 0, Elsley, Elsley, come back, only come back, and I will beg your pardon on my knees ! anything 1 Scold me, beat me, if you will 1 I de- serve it all ! Only come back, and let me see your face, and hear your voice, instead of leaving me here all alone, and the poor children too I what shall I say to them to-morrow, when they wake and find no father ? " Valencia's indignation had no words. She could only sit on the bed, with Lucia in her arms, looking defiance at all the world above that fair head which one moment drooped on her bosom, and the next gazed up into her face iu pitiful child-like pleading. " 0, if I but knew where he was gone ! If I could but Slid him I One word — one word would set all right. It always did, Valencia, always 1 He was so kind, so dear in a moment, when I put away my naughty, naughty temper, and smiled in his face like a good wife. Wicked creaturn that I was I and this is my punishment. 0, Elsley, one word, one word ! I must find him if I went barefoot ove? the mountains — I mu&t go, I must — " 34 398 BOTH SIDES OF THK MOON AT ONCE. And she tried to rise ; but Valencia held her down, while she entreated piteously, — " I will go, and see about finding him 1 " she said at last, as her only resource. " Promise me to be quiet here, and I will." " Quiet ? Yes ! quiet here I " and she threw herself upon ker face on the floor. She looked up eagerly. " You will not tell Scoutbush ? " "Why not? " " He is so — so hasty. He wiU kill him 1 Valencia, he will kill him I Promise me not to tell him, or I shall go mad I " And she sat up again, pressing her hands upon her head, and rocking from side to side. " 0, Valencia, if I dared only scream I but keeping it in kills me. It is like a sword through my brain now I " " Let me call Clara." " No, no ! not Clara. Do not tell her. I will be quiet ; indeed I will ; only come back soon, soon ; for I am all alone, alone ! " And she threw herself down again upon her face. Valencia went out. Certain as she was of her sister's innocence, there was one terrible question in her heart which must be answered, or her belief in all truth, good- ness, religion, would reel and rock to its very foundations. And till she had an answer to that, she could not sit stilj by Lucia. She walked hurriedly, with compressed lips, but quivering limbs, down stairs, and into the sitting-room. Scoutbush WHS gone to bed. Campbell and Mellot sat chatting still. " Where is my brother ? " " Gone to bed, as some one else ought to be ; for it is past twelve. Is Vavasour come in yet ? " " No." " Very odd," said Claude ; " I never saw him after I left you." " He said certainly that he was going to find you," said Campbell. " There is no need for speculating," said Valencia, quiet- ly ; "my sister has had a note from Mr. Vavasour, at Pen- y-gwryd." " Pen-y-gwryd ? " cried both men at once. " Yes. Major Campbell, I wish to show it to you." Valencia's tone and manner was significant enough to make Claude Mellot bid them both good-night BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON AT ONCE. 399 Wlien he had shut the door behind him, Valencia put the letter into the major's hand. He was too much absorbed in it to look up at her ; but, if he had done so, he would have been startled by the fear- ful capacity of passion which changed, for the moment, that g-ay Queen Whims into a terrible Roxana, as she stood, leaning against the mantel-piece, but drawn up to her full height, her lips tight shut, eyes which gazed through and through him in awful scrutiny, holding her very breath, while a nervous clutching of the little hand said, "If you have tampered with my sister's heart, better for you that you were dead 1 " He read it through, once, twice, with livid face ; then dashed it on the floor. " Fool I — curl — liarl — she is as pure as God's sun- light." " You need not tell me that," said Valencia, through her closed teeth. " Fool I — fool 1 " And then, in a moment, his voice changed from indignation to the bitterest self-reproach. " And fool I ; thrice fool 1 Who am I, to rail on him ? 0, God ! what have I done ? " And he covered his face with his hands. " What have you done ? " literally shrieked Valencia. " Nothing that you or man can blame, Miss St. Just I Can you dream that, sinful as I am, I could ever harbor a thought toward her of which I should be ashamed before the angels of God ? " He looked up as he spoke, with an utter humility, and an intense honesty, which unnerved her at once. " 0, my Saint Pere ! " and she held out both her hands. " Forgive me, if — only for a moment." " I am not your Saint Pere, nor any one's I I am a poor, weak, conceited, miserable man, who, by his accursed impertinence, has broken the heart of the being whom he loves best on earth." Valencia started ; but, ere she could ask for an explana- tion, he rejoined, wildly, — " How is she ? " Tell me only that, this once 1 Has it killed her ? Does she hate him ? " " Adores him more than ever. 0, Major Campbell I it is too piteous, too piteous." He covered his face with his hands, shuddering. " Thank God I yes, thank God ! So it should be. Let her love him to the last, and win her martyr's crown I Now, Valencia 400 BOTH SIDES OF THE MOON KT ONCE. St. Just, sit down, if but for five minutes ; and listen, onheap was silent now, save for the roar of Og- wen, as he swirled and bubbled down, rich coffee-brown from last night's rain. On, past rich woods, past trim cottages, gardens gay with flowers ; past rhododendron shrubberies, broad fields of golden stubble, sweet clover, and gray swedes, with Ogwen making music far below. The sun is up at last, and Colonel Pennant's grim slate castle, towering above black woods, glitters metallic in its rays, like Chaucer's house of fame. He stops, to look back once. Far up the vale, eight miles away, beneath a roof of cloud, the pass of Nant Prancon gapes high in air between the great jaws of the Carnedd and the Glyder, its cliff marked with the upright white line of the waterfall. He is clear of the mountains ; clear of that cursed place, and all its cursed thoughts ! On, past Llandegai and all its rose-clad cottages ; past yellow quar- rymen walking out to their work, who stare as they pass at his haggard face, drenched clothes, and streaming hair. He does not see them. One fixed thought is in his mind, and that is, the railway station at Bangor. He is striding through Bangor streets now, beside the summer sea, from which fresh scents of shore-weed greet bim. He had rather smell the smoke and gas of the Strand. The station is shut. He looks at the bill outside. There is no train for full two hours ; and he throws himself, worn out with fatigue, upon the door-step. Now a new terror seizes him. Has he monejj enough to reach London ? Has he his purse at all ? Too idreadful to find himself stopped shor'', on the very brink of deliverance nature's melodrama. 419 A cold perspiration breaks from his forehead, as he feels in eveiy pocket. Yes, his purse is there ; but he turns sick as he opens it, and dare hardly look. Hurrah ! Five pounds, six — eight ! That will take him as far as Paris. He can walk ; beg the rest of the way, if need be. What will he do now ? Wander over the town, and gaze vacantly at one little object and another about the house- fronts. One thing he will not look at ; and that is the bright summer sea, all golden in the sun-rays, flecked with gay white sails. From all which is bright, and calm, and cheer- ful, his soul shrinks as from an impertinence ; he longs for the lurid gas-light of London, and the roar of the Strand, and the everlasting stream of faces, among whom he may wander free, sure that no one will recognize him, the dis- graced, the desperate. The weary hours roll on. Too tired to stand longer, he sits down on the shafts of a cart, and tries not to think. It is not diflScult. Body and mind are alike worn out, and his brain seems filled with uniform dull mist. A shop-door opens in front of him ; a boy comes out. He sees bottles inside, and shelves, the look of which he knows too well. The bottle boy, whistling, begins to take the shutters down. How often, in Whitbury of old, had Elsley done the same I Half amused, he watched the lad, and wondered how he spent his evenings, and what works he read, and whether he ever thought of writing poetry. And, as he watched, all his past life rose up before him, ever since he served out medicines fifteen years ago ; — his wild aspirations, heavy labors, struggles, plans, brief tri- umphs, long disappointments ; and here was what it had all come to, — a failure, — a miserable, shameful failure 1 Not that he thought of it with repentance, with a single wish that he had done otherwise ; but only with disappointed rage. " Yes I " he said bitterly to himself — « We poets in our youth begin in gladness, Bat after come despondency and madness.' This is the way of the world with all who have nobler feel- ings in them than will fit into its cold rules. Curse the world ! — what on earth had I to do with mixing myself up in it, and mariying a fine lady ? Fool that I was I I might have known from the first that she cov.ld not understand me ; that she would go back to her own 1 Let her go 1 1 420 nature's melodrama. will forget her, and the world, and everything — and 1 know how!" And, springing up, he walked across to the druggist's shop. Years before, Elsley had tried opium, and found, unhap- pily for him, that it fed his fancy without inflicting those tortures of indigestion which keep many, happily for them, from its magic snare. He had tried it more than once of late ; but Lucia had had a hint of the fact fi'om Thurnall, and in just terror had exacted from him a solemn promise never to touch opium again. Elsley was a man of honor, and the promise had been kept. • But now — " I promised her, and therefore I will break my promise I She has broken hers, and I am free I " And he went in and bought his opium. He took a little on the spot, to allay the cravings of hunger. He reserved a full dose for the railway-carriage. It would bridge over the weary gulf of time which lay between him and town. He took his second-class place at last ; not without stares and whispers from those round at the wild figure which was starting for London, without bag or baggage. But as the clerks agreed, "If he was running away from his creditors, it was a shame to stop him. If he was running from the police, they would have the more sport the longer the run. At least, it was no business of theirs." There was one thing more to do, and he did it. He wrote ^to Campbell a short note. j "If, as I suppose, you expect from me 'the satisfaction I of a gentleman,' you will find me at * * * * Adelphi. I am 1 not escaping from you, but from the whole world. If, by I shooting me, you can quicken my escape, you will do me ! the first and lust favor which I am likely to ask for from you." I He posted^is letter, settled himseltin a corner of the car- i riage, and tookr^Ms second dose of opium. From that mo- ment he recollected— Httle more. "A confused whirl of I hedges and woods, rattling stations, screaming and flashing trains, great red towns, white chalk cuttings ; while the everlasting roar and rattle of the Carriages shaped them- selves in his brain into a hundred snatches of old tunes, all full of a strange merriment, as if mocking at his misery, striving to keep him awake and conscious of who and what he was. He closed his eyes, and shut out the hateful garish world ; but that sound he could not shut out. Too tired to sleep, too tired even to think, he could do nothing but sub- mit to the ridiculous torment ; watching in spite of himself natuee's melodrama. 421 every note, as one jig-tune after another was fiddled by all the imps close to his ear, mile after mile, and county aftei county, for all that weary day, which seemed full seven years long. At Euston Square the porter called him several times ere he could rouse him. He could hear nothing for a while but that same imps' melody, even though it had stopped. At last he got out, staring round him, shook himself awake by one strong effort, and hurried away, not knowing whither he went. Wrapt up in self, he wandered on till dark, slept on a door-step, and woke, not knowing at first where he was. Gradually all the horror came back to him, and with the horror the craving for opium wherewith to forget it. He looked round to see his whereabouts. Surely this must be Golden Square ? A sudden thought struck him. He went to a chemist's shop, bought a fresh supply of his poison, and, taking only enough to allay the cravings of his stomach, hurried tottering in the direction of Drury Lann CHAPTER XXII. FOND, YET NOT FOOLISH. Next moraing, only Claude and Campbell made theii appearance at breakfast. Frank came in ; found that Valencia was not down • and, too excited to eat, went out to walk till she should appear. Neither did Lord Scoutbush come. Where was he? Ignorant of the whole matter, he had started at four o'clock to fish in the Traeth Mawr ; half for fishing's sake, half (as he confessed) to gain time for his puzzled brains before those explanations with Prank Headley, of which he stood in mortal fear. Mellot and Campbell sat down together to breakfast ; but in silence. Claude saw that something had gone very wrong ; Campbell ate nothing, and looked nervously out of the window every now and then. At last Bowie entered with the letters and a message. There were two gentlemen from Pen-y-gwryd must speak with Mr. Mellot immediately. He went out, and found Wynd and Naylor. What they told him we know already. He returned instantly, and met Campbell leaving the room. "I have news of Vavasour," whispered he. "I have a letter from him. Bowie, order me a car instantly for Ban- gor. I am off to London, Claude. You and Bowie will take care of my things, and send then after me." " Major Cawmill has only to command," said Bowie, and vanished down the stairs. " Now, Claude, quick ; read that, and counsel me. I ought to ask Scoutbush's opinion ; but the poor dear fellow is out, you see." Claude read the note written at Bangor. " Fight him I will not 1 I detest the notion ; a soldier should never fight a duel. His life is the Queen's, and not his own. And yet, if the honor of the family has been com- N22) 423 piomised by my folly, I must pay the penalty, if Scoutbush thinks it proper." ~ So said (Campbell, who, in the over-sensitiveness of hia conscience,Tiad actually worked himself round during tlio past night into this new fancy, as a chivalrous act of utter self-abasement. The proud self-possession of the man -was gone, and nothing but self-distrust and shame remained. " In the name of all wit and wisdom, what is the meaning of all this?" " You do not know, then, what passed last night ? " " I ? I can only guess that Vavasour has had one of his rages." "Then you must know," said Campbell, with an effort, " for you must explain all to Scoutbush when he returns; and I know no one more fit for the office." And he briefly told him the story. Mellot was much affected. " The wretched ape ! Camp- bell, your first thought was the true one ; you must not fight that cur. After all, it 's a farce : you won't fire at him, and he can't hit you — so leave ill alone. Beside, for Scout- bush's sake, her sake, every one's sake, the thing must be hushed up. If the fellow chooses to duck under into the Lon- don mire, let him lie there, and forget him ! " " No, Claude ; his pardon I must beg, ere I go out to the war ; or I shall die wTEh a sin upon my soul." " My dear, noble old fellow 1 if you must go, I go with you. I must see fair play between you and that madman ; and give him a piece of my mind, too, while I am about it. He is in my power ; or, if not quite that, I know one in wliose power he is ; and to reason he shall be brought." " No ; you must stay here. I cannot trust Scoutbush's head, and these poor dear souls will have no one to look to but you. I can trust you with them, I know. Me you perhaps will never see again." " You can trust me I " said the affectionate little painter, the tears starting to his eyes, as he wrung Campbell's hand. " Mind one thing 1 If that Vavasour shows his teeth, there is a spell will turn him to stone. Use it 1 " " Heaven forbid ! Let him show his teeth. It is I who am in the wrong. Why should I make him more my enemy than he is ? " " Be it so. Only if the worst comes to the worst, call him not Elsley Vavasour, but plain John Briggs — and see what follows." Valencia entered 424 FOND, YET NOT FOOLISH. " The post is come in ! 0, dear Major Campbell, io there a letter ? " He put the note into her hand in silence. She read it, and darted back to Lucia's room. " Thank God that she did not see that I was going ! One more pang on earth spared 1 " said Campbell to himself. Valencia hurried to Lucia's door. She was holding it ajar, and looking out with pale face, and wild, hungry eyes. " A letter ? Don't be silent, or I shall go mad 1 Tell me the worst ! Is he alive ? " " Yes ! " She gasped, and staggered against the door-post. " Where I Why does he not come back to me ? " asked she in a confused, abstracted way. It was best to tell the truth, and have it over. " He is gone to London, Lucia. He will think over it all there, and be sorry for it, and then all will be well again." But Lucia did not hear the end of that sentence. Mur- muring to herself, " To London ! to London ! " she hurried back into the room. " Clara ! Clara I have the children had their breakfast ? " " Yes, ma'am ! " says Clara, appearing from the inner room. " Then help me to pack up quick I Your master is gone to London on business ; and we are to follow him immedi- ately." And she began bustling about the room. " My dearest Lucia, you are not fit to travel now 1 " " I shall die if I stay here ; die if I do nothing I I must find him ! " whispered she. " Don't speak loud, or Clara will hear. I can find him, and nobody can but me 1 Why don't you help me to pack, Valencia ? " " My dearest ! but what will Scoutbush say when ho comes home, and finds you gone ? " " What right has he to interfere ? I am Elsley's wife, am I not? and may follow my husband if I like ; " and she went on desperately collecting, not her own things, but Elsley's. Valencia watched her with tear-brimming eyes ; collectiug all his papers, counting over his clothes, murmuring to her- self that he would want this and that in London. Hei sanity seemed failing her, under the fixed idea tliat she had only to see him, and set all right with a word. "I will go and got you some breakfast," said sh'i at last, POND, YET NOT FOOLISH. 425 " I want none. I am too busy to eat. Why don't you help me ? " Valencia had not the heart to help, believing, as she did, that Lucia's journey would be as bootless as it would be dangerous to her health. " I will bring you some breakfast, and you must try ; then I will help you to pack ; " and utterly bewildered she went out ; and the thought uppermost in her mind was, — " 0, that I could find Prank Headley I " Happy was it for Frank's love, paradoxical as it may seem, that it had conquered just at that moment of terrible distress. Valencia's acceptance of him had been hasty, founded rather on sentiment and admiration than on deep affection ; and her feeling might have faltered, waned, died away in self-distrust of its own reality, if giddy amuse- ment, even if mere easy happiness, had followed it. But now the fire of affliction was branding in the thought of him upon her softened heart. Living at the utmost strain of her character, Campbell gone, her brother useless, and Lucia and the children depending utterly on her, there was but one to whom she could look for comfort while she needed it most utterly ; and happy for her and for her lover that she could go to him. " Poor Lucia I Thank God that I have some one who will never treat me so ! who will lift me up and shield me, instead of crushing me ! — dear creature! — that I may find him 1 " And her heart went out after Frank with a gush of tenderness which she had never felt before. " Is this, then, love ? " she asked herself; and she found time to slip into her own room for a moment and arrange her dishevelled hair, ere she entered the breakfast-room. Frank was there, luckily alone, pacing nervously up and down. He hurried up to her, caught both her hands in his, and gazed into her wan and haggard face with the intensest tenderness and anxiety. Valencia's eyes looked into the depths of his, passive and confiding, till they failed before the keenness of his gaze, and swam in glittering mist. " Ah 1 " thought she ; " sorrow is a light price to pay for the feeling of being so loved by such a man I " ' Ydu are tired, — ill ? What a night you must hare had ? Mellot has told me all." '0, my poor sister 1 " and wildly she poured out to 36* 426 FOND. YET NOT FOOLISH. Frauk her wrath against Elsley, her inability to comlo.n Lucia, and all the misery and confusion of the past night. " This is a sad dawning for the day of my triumph I " thought Frank, who longed to pour out his heart to her on a thousand very different matters ; but he was content ; it was enough for him that she could tell him all, and confide in him, — a truer sign of afiection than any selfish love- making ; and he asked, and answered, with such tender- ness and thoughtfulness for poor Lucia, with such a deep comprehension of Elsley's character, pitying while he blamed, that he won his reward at last. " ! it would be intolerable, if I had not through it all the thought — " and blushing crimson, her head drooped on her bosom. She seemed ready to drop with exhaustion. " Sit down, sit down, or you will fall ! " said Frank, leading her to a chair ; and, as he le4 her, he whispered with fluttering heart, new to its own happiness, and long- ing to make assurance sure, " What thought ? " She was silent still ; but he felt her hand tremble in his. "The thought of me?" She looked up in his face ; how beautiful I And in another moment, neither knew how, she was clasped to his bosom. He covered her face, her hair, with kisses ; she did not move ; from that moment she felt that he was her husband. " 0, guide me I counsel me ! pray for me ! " sobbed she. " I am all alone, and my poor sister, she is going mad, I think, and I have no one to trust but you ; and you — you will leave me to go to those dreadful wars ; and then, what will become of me ? 0, stay ! only a few days ! " and hold- ing him convulsively, she answered his kisses with her own. Frank stood as in a dream, while the room reeled round and vanished ; and he was alone for a moment upon earth with her and his great love. " Tell me," said he, at last, trying to awaken himself U action ; " tell me 1 Is she really going to seek him ? " " Yes, selfish and forgetful that I am I You must help me ! She will go to London — nothing can stop her ; — and it will kill her ! " " It may drive her mad to keep her hero." "It will! and that drires me mad also. What can I choose ? " " Follow where God leads. It is she, after all, irho mu6.1 reclaim hiu. Leave her in God's hands, and go with het to London." " But my brother 1 " " Mellot or I will see him. Let it be me. Mellot shall go with you to London." " that you were going 1 " " that I were 1 I will follow, though. Do you think that I can be long away from you ? . . . . But I must tell your brother. I had a very different matter on which to Bpcak to him this morning," said he, with a sad smile ; " but better as it is. He shall find me, I hope, reasonable an i. trustworthy in this matter ; perhaps enough so to have my Valencia committed to me. Precious jewel ! I must learn to be a man now, at least ; now that I have you to care for." " And yet you go and leave me ? " - "Valencia! Because God has given us to each other, shall our thank-offering be to shrink cowardly from His work ? " He spoke more sternly than he intended, to awe into obe- dience rather himself than her ; for he felt, poor fellow, his courage failing fast, while he held that treasure in his arms. She shuddered in silence. " Forgive mel " he cried ; " I was too harsh, Valencia ! " " No 1 " she cried, looking up at him with a glorious smile. " Scold me I Be harsh to me ! It is so delicious now to be reproved by you I " And as she spoke she felt as if she would rather endure torture from that man's hand than bliss from any other. How many strange words of Lucia's that new feeling explained to her ; words at which she had once grown angry, as doting weaknesses, unjust and degrading to self-respect. Poor Lucia ! She might be able to comfort her now, for she had learnt to sympathize with her by expe- rience the very opposite to hers. Yet there must have been a time when Lucia clung to Elsley as she to Frank. How horrible to have her eyes opened thus 1 To be torn and flung away from the bosom where she longed to rest ! It could never happen to her. Of course her Frank was true, though all the world were false ; but poor Lucia ! She must go to her. This was mere selfishness at such a moment. " You will find Scoutbush then ? " " This moment. I will order the car now, if you will only eat. You must I " And he rang the bell, and then made her sit down and eat, almost feeding her with his own hand. That, too, was 428 FOND, YET NOT FOOLISH. a new experience ; and one so strangely pleasant, that when Bowie entered, and stared solemnly at the pair, she only looked up smiling, though blushing a little. " Get a car instantly," said she. " For Mrs. Vavasour, my lady ? She has ordered hera already." " No ; for Mr. Headley. He is going to find my lord Frank, pour me out a cup of tea for Lucia." Bowie vanished, mystified. " It 's no concern of mine ; but better tak' up wi' a godly meenister than a godless pawet," said the worthy warrior to himself as he marched down stairs. " Tou see that I am asserting our rights already before all the world," said she looking up. "I see that you are not ashamed of me." " Ashamed of you ? " " And now I must go to Lucia." "And to London." Valencia began to cry like any baby ; but rose and car- ried away the tea in her hand. " Must I go ? and before you come back, too ? " " Is she determined to start instantly ? " " I cannot stop her. Tou see she has ordered the car." " Then go, my darling I My own ! my Valencia ! 0, a thousand things to ask you, and no time to ask them in 1 I can write ? " said Frank, with an inquiring smile. "Write ? Yes ; every day, — twice a day. I shall live upon those letters. Good-by I " And out she went, while Frank sat himself down at the table, and laid his head upon his hands, stupefied with delight, till Bowie entered. "The car, sir." "Which? Who ?" asked Frank, looking up as from a dream. "The car, sir." Frank rose, and walked down stairs abstractedly. Bowie Kept close to his side. " Ye '11 pardon me, sir," said he, in a low voice, "but I see how it is, — the more blessing for you. Ye '11 be pleased, I trust, to take more care of this jewel than othora have of that one ; or — " " Or you '11 shoot me yourself, Bowie ? " said Frank, half amused, half awed, too, by the stern tone of the guardsman " I '11 give you leave to do it if I deserve it." "It's no my duty, either as a soldier or as a valet 429 And, indeed, I've that opeenion of you, sir, that I don'i think it '11 need to be any one's else's duty either." And so did Mr. Bowie signify his approbation of the new family romance, and went off to assist Mrs. Clara in getting the trunks down stairs. Clara was in high dudgeon. She had not yet completed her flirtation with Mr. Bowie, and felt it hard to have her one amusement in life snatched out of her hard-worked hands. " I 'm sure I don't know why we 're moving. I don't believe it 's business. Some of his tantrums, I dare say. I heard her walking up and down the room all last night, I '11 swear. Neither she nor Miss Valencia have been to bed. He '11 kill her at last, the brute 1 " "It's no concern of either of us, that. Have ye got another trunk to bring down ? " "No concern? Just like your hard-heartedness, Mr. Bowie. And, as soon as I 'm gone, of course you will be flirting with these impudent Welshwomen, in their horrid hats." " May be, yes ; may be, no. But flirting 's no marrying, Mrs. Clara." "True for you, sir I Men were deceivers ever," quoth Clara, and flounced up stairs '; while Bowie looked after her with a grim smile, and caught her, when she came down again, long enough to give her a great kiss, the only language which he used in wooing, and that but rarely. " Dinna fash, lassie. Mind your lady and the poor bairns, like a godly handmaiden, and I '11 buy the ring when the sawmon fishing 's over, and we '11 just be married ere I start for the Crimee." " The sawmon 1 " cried Clara. " I '11 see you turned into a mermaid first, and married to a sawmon I " "And ye won't do anything o' the kind," said Bowie to himself, and shouldered a valise. In ten minutes the ladies were packed into the carriage, and away, under Mellot's care. Frank watched Valencia looking back, and smiling through her tears, as they rolled through the village ; and then got into his car, and rattled down the southern road to Pont Aberglaslyn, his hand stiU tingling with the last pressure of Valencia's, CHAPTER XXIIl. THE BROAD STONE OP HONOR. But where has Stan grave been all this while ? Where any given bachelor has been, for any given mGnth, B diflBcult to say, and no man's business but his own. But where be happened to be on a certain afternoon in the firsi week of October, on which he had just heard the news of Alma, was — upon the hills between Ems and Coblentz. Walking over a high table-land of stubbles, which would be grass in England ; and yet, with all its tillage, is, perhaps, not worth more than English grass would be, thanks to that small-farm system much be-praised by some who know not wheat from turnips. Then along a road, which might be a Devon one, cut in the hill-side, through authentic " Devonian " slate, where the deep chocolate soil is lodged on the top of the upright strata, and a thick coat of mosa and wood sedge clusters about the oak-scrub roots, round which the delicate and rare oak-fern mingles its fronds with great blue campanulas; while the "white admirals" and silver-washed " fritillaries " flit round every bramble-bed, and the great "purple emperors" come down to drink in the road puddles, and sit fearless, flashing off their velvet wings a blue as of that empyrean which is "dark by excess of light." Down again, through cultivated lands, corn and clover, fiax and beet, and all the various crops with which the industrious German yeoman ekes out his little patch of soil. Past the thrifty husbandman himself, as he guides the two milch-kine in his tiny plough, and stops at the furrow's end, to greet you with the hearty German smile and bow ; while the little fair-haired maiden, walking beneath the shade of standard cherries, walnuts, and pears, all gray with fruit, fills the cows' mouths with chiccory, and wild carnations, and pink saintfoin, and many a fragrant weed which richer England wastes. Down once more, into a glen ; but such a glen as neither (430) THK BEOAD STONE OF HONOR. 431 England nor America has ever seen, or, please God, ever will see, glorious as it is. Stangrave, who knew all Europe well, had walked that path before ; but he stopped then, as he had done the first time, in awe. On the right, slope up the bare slate downs, up to the foot of cliffs ; but only half of those cliffs God has made. Above the gray slate ledges rise cliffs of man's handiwork, pierced with a hundred square black embrasures, and above them the long barrack-ranges of a soldiers' town, which a foeman stormed once, when it was young ; but what foeman will ever storm it again ? What conqueror's foot will ever tread again upon the " broad stone of honor," and call Ehrenbreitstein his ? On the left, the clover and the corn range on, beneath the orchard boughs, up to yon knoll of chestnut and acacia, tall poplar, feathered larch ; — but what is that stonework which gleams gray between their stems ? A summer-house for some great duke, looking out over the glorious Rhine vale, and up the long vineyards of the bright Moselle, from whence he may bid his people eat, drink, and take their ease, for they have much goods laid up for many years ? — Bank over bank of earth and stone, cleft by deep embras- ures, from which the great guns grin across the rich gar- dens, studded with standard fruittrees, which clothe the glacis to its topmost edge. And there, below him, lie the vineyards ; every rock-ledge and narrow path of soil tossing its golden tendrils to the sun, gray with ripening clusters, rich with noble wine ; but what is that wall which winds among them, up and down, creeping and sneaking over every ledge and knoll of vantage ground, pierced with eyelet-holes, backed by strange stairs and galleries of stone, till it rises close before him, to meet the low round tower full in his path, from whose deep casemates, as from dark scowling eye-holes, the ugly cannon-eyes stare up the glen ? Stangrave knows them all — as far as any man can know. The wards of the key which locks apart the nations ; the yet maiden Troy of Europe ; the greatest fortress of the world. He walks down, turns into the vineyards, and lies down beneath the mellow shade of vines. He has no sketch-book — article forbidden ; his passport is in his pocket ; and he speaks all tongues of German men. So, fearless of gen- darmes and soldiers, he lies down, in the blazing German afternoon, upon the shaly soil, and watches the bright- eyed lizards hunt 'flies along the roasting walls, and the great locusts buzz and pitch and leap ; green locusts with 432 THE BROAD STONE OF HONOE. red wings, and gray locusts with blue wings ; he notes the species, for he is tired and lazy, and has so many thoughts within his head, that he is glad to toss them all awaj', and give up his soul, if possible, to locusts and lizards, vines and shade. And far below him iieets the mighty Rhine, rich with the memories of two thousand stormy years ; and on its further bank the gray-walled Coblentz town, and the long arches of the Moselle-bridge, and the rich flats of Kaiser Franz, and the long, poplar-crested uplands, which look so gay, and are so stern ; for everywhere between the poplar sterna the saw-toothed outline of the western forts cuts the blue sky. And far beyond it all sleeps, high in air, the Eifel with its hundred crater peaks ; blue mound behind blue mound, melting into white haze. Stangrave has walked upon those hills, and stood upon the crater-lip of the great Moselkopf, and dreamed beside the Laacher See, beneath the ancient abbey walls ; and his thoughts flit across the Moselle flats toward his ancient haunts, as he asks himself. How long has that old Eifel lain in such soft sleep ? How long ere it awake again ? It may awake, geologists confess, — why not ? — and blacken all the skies with smoke of Tophet, pouring its streams of boihng mud once more to dam the Rhine, whelm- ing the works of men in flood, and ash, and fire. Why not ? The old earth seems so solid at first sight ; but look a little nearer, and this is the stuff of which she is made 1 The wreck of past earthquakes, the leavings of old floods, the washings of cold cinder heaps ^ which are smouldering still oelow. Stangrave knew that well enough. He had climbed Vesu- vius, Etna, Popocatepetl. He had felt many an earthquake shock ; and knew how far to trust the everlasting hills. And was old David right, he thought that day, when he held the earthquake and the volcano as the truest symbols of the his- tory of human kind, and of the dealings of their Maker with them ? All the magnificent Plutonic imagery of the Hebrew poets, had it no meaning for men now ? Did the Lord still uncover the foundations of the world, spiritual as well as physical, with the breath of his displeasure 't Was the sol- fatara of Tophet still ordained for tyrants ? And did the tiord still arise out of his place to shake terribly the earth ? Or, had the moral world grown as sleepy as the physical jue had seemed to have done ? Would anything awful, THE BROiD STONE OF HONOK. 433 anexpected, tragical, ever burst forth again from tlie heart of earth, or from the heart of man ? Surprising question 1 What can ever happen henceforth, ciuve infinite railroads and crystal palaces, peace and plenty, Cockaigne and dillettantism, to the end of time ? Is it not full sixty whole years since the first French revolution, and six whole years since the revolution of all Europe ? Bah ! — change is a thing of the past, and tragedy a myth of oui forefathers ; war a bad habit of old barbarians, eradicated by the spread of an enlightened philanthropy. Men know now how to govern the world far too well to need any divine I'isitations, much less divine punishments ; and Stangrave was an Utopian dreamer, only to be excused by the fact that he had in his pocket the news that three great nations were gone forth to tear each other as of yore. Nevertheless, looking round upon those grim earth-mounds and embrasures, he could not but give the men who put them there credit for supposing that they might be wanted. Ah ! but that might be only one of the direful necessities of the decaying civilization of the old world. What a contrast to the unarmed and peaceful prosperity of his own country ! Thank Heaven, New England needed no fortresses, military roads, or standing armies ! True ; but why that flush of contemptuous pity for the poor old world, which could only -hold its own by such expensive and ugly methods ? He asked himself that very question, a moment after, an- grily ; for he was out of humor with himself, with his coun- try, and indeed with the universe in general. And across his mind flashed a memorable conversation at Constantinople long since, during which he had made some such unwise re- mark to Thurnall, and received from him a sharp answer, which parted them for years. It was natural enough that that conversation should come back to him just then ; for, in his jealousy, he was thinking of Tom Thurnall often enough every day ; and in spite of his enmity, ho could not helpsuspecting more and more that Thurnall had had some right on his side in the quarrel. He had been twitting Thurnall with the miserable condi- tion of the laborers in the south of England, and extolling his own country at the expense of ours. Tom, unable to deny the fact, had waxed all the more wroth at having it pressed on him ; and at last had burst forth, — " Well, and what right have you to crow over us on that score ? I suppose, if you could hire a man in America foi eighteen-pence a day, instead of a dollar and a half, you 31 -434 THE BROAD STONE OF HONOH. would do it ? You Americans are not accustomed tu give more for a thing than it 's worth in the market, are you ? " "But," Stangrave had answered, "the glory of America is, that you cannot get the man for less than the dollar and a half ; that he is too well fed, too prosperous, too well edu- cated, to be made a slave of." "And therefore makes slaves of the niggers instead ? I '11 tell you what, I am sick of that shallow fallacy — the glory of America ! Do you mean by America, the country, or the people ? You boast, all of you, of your country, as if you had made it yourselves ; and quite forget that God made America, and America has made you." " Made us, sir ? " quoth Stangrave, fiercely enough. "Made you!" replied Thumall, exaggerating his half truth from anger. "To what is your comfort, your high feeding, your very education, owing, but to your having a thin population, a virgin soil, and unlimited means of emi- gration ? What credit to you if you need no poor laws, when you pack off your children, as fast as they grow up, to clear more ground westward ? What credit to your yeo- men that they have read more books than our clods have, while they can earn more in four hours than our poor fellows in twelve ? It all depends on the mere physical fact of your being in a new country, and we in an old one ; and as for moral superiority, 1 shan't believe in that while I see the whole of the northern states so utterly given up to the ' almighty dollar,' that they leave the honor of their country to be made ducks and drakes of by a few southern slave- holders. Moral superiority ? We hold in England that an honest man is a match for three rogues. If the same law holds good in She United States, I leave you to settle whether Northerners or Southerners are the honester men." Whereupon (and no shame to Stangrave) there was a heavy quarrel, and the two men had not met since. But now, those words of Thurnall's, backed by far bitterer ones of Marie's, were fretting Stangrave's heart. What if they were true ? They were not the whole truth. There was beside, and above them all, a nobleness in the Ameri- can heart, which could, if it chose, and when it chose, give the lie to that bitter taunt ; but had it done so already ? At least, he himself had not. ... If Thumall and Marie were unjust to his nation, they had not been unjust to him. He, at least, had been making, all his life, mere outward blessings causes of selfgratulation, and not of humility. THE BROAD STONE OF HONOR. 433 lie had been priding himself on wealth, ease, luxury, culti- vation, without a thought that these were God's gifts, and that God would require an account of them. If Thurnail were right, was he himself too truly the typical American ? And bitterly enough he accused at once himself and hia people. " Noble ? Marie is right I We boast of our nobleness ; better to take the only opportunity of showing it which we . .ave had since we have become a nation 1 Heaped with e very blessing which God could give ; beyond the reach of sorrow, a check, even an interference ; shut out from all the world in God's new Eden, that we might freely eat of all the trees of the garden, and grow and spread, and enjoy ourselves like the birds of heaven — God only laid on us one duty, one command, to right one simple, confessed, conscious wrong. . . . " And what have we done ? — what have even I done 'I We have steadily, deliberately cringed at the feet of the wrong-doer, even while we boasted our superiority to him at every point, and at last, for the sake of our own selfish ease, helped him to forge new chains for his victims, and received as our only reward fresh insults. White slaves ? We, perhaps, and not the English peasant, are the white slaves ! At least, if the Irishman emigrates to England, or the Englishman to Canada, he is not hunted out with blood- hounds, and delivered back to his landlord to be scourged and chained. He is not practically out of the pale of law, unrepresented, forbidden ever the use of books ; and, even if he were, there is an excuse for the old country ; for she was founded on no political principles, but discovered what she knows step by step — a sort of political Topsy, as Claude Mellot calls her, who has ' kinder growed,' doing from hand to mouth what seemed best. But that we, who professed to start as an ideal nation, on fixed ideas of justice, free- dom, and equality, — that we should have been stultifying ever since every great principle of which we so loudly boast I " " The old Jew used to say of his nation, ' It is God that hath made us, and not we ourselves.' We say, ' It is we that have made ourselves, while God ? ' Ah, yes ; 1 recollect. God's work is to save a soul here and a soul there, and to leave America to be saved by the Americans who made it. We must have a broader and deeper creed than that if we are to work out our destiny The battle 436 THE BROAD STONE OF HONOR against Middle Age slavery was fought by the old Catholic Church, which held the Jewish notion, and looked on the Deity as the actual King of Christendom, and every man in it as God's own child. I see now ! No wonder that the battle in America has as yet been fought by the Quakers, who believe that there is a divine light and voice in every man ; while the Calvinist preachers, with their isolating and individualizing creed, have looked on with folded hands, content to save a negro's soul here and there, whatsoever might become of the bodies and the national future of the whole negro race. No wonder, while such men have the teaching of the people, that it is necessary still in the nine- teenth century, in a Protestant country, amid sane human beings, for such a man as Mr. Sumner to rebut, in sober earnest, the argument that the negro was the descendant of Canaan, doomed to eternal slavery by Noah's curse ! " :jc :{: ^: :}: :(: He would rouse himself. He would act, speak, write, as many a noble fellow-countryman was doing. He had avoided them of old as bores and fanatics who would needs wake him from his luxurious dreams. He had even hated them, simply because they were more righteous than he. He would be 4 new man henceforth. He strode down the hill through the cannon-guarded vineyards, among the busy groups of peasants. " Yes, Marie was right. Life is meant for work, and not for ease ; to labor in danger and in dread ; to do a little good ere the night comes when no man can work ; instead of trying to realize for one's self a Paradise ; not even Bun- yan's shepherd-paradise, much less Fourier's Casino-parar disc ; and, perhaps, least of all, because most selfish and isolated of all, my own art-paradise — the apotheosis of loafing, as Claude calls it. Ah, Tennyson's Palace of Art is a true word — too true, too true I " Art ? What if the most necessary human art, next to tae art of agriculture, be, after all, the art of war ? It has teen so in all ages. What if I have been befooled — what if all the Anglo-Saxon world has been befooled, by forty years of peace ? We have forgotten that the history of the world has been as yet written in blood ; that the story of the human race is the story of its heroes and its martyrs — the slayers and the slain. Is it not becoming such once more in Europe now ? And what divine exemption can we claim from the law ? What right have we to suppose that it will be aught else, as long as there are wrongs unrc THE BROAD STONE OF HONOR. 437 dressed on earth ; as long as anger and ambition, cupidity and wounded pride, canker the hearts of men ? What if the wise man's attitude, and the wise nation's attitude, is that of the Jews rebuilding their ruined walls, — the tool in one hand, and the sword in the other ; for the wild Arabs are close outside, and the time is short, and the storm has only lulled a while in mercy, that wise men may prepare for the next thunder-burst ? It is an ugly fact ; but I have thrust it away too long, and I must accept it now and henceforth. This, and not luxurious Broadway ; this, and not the comfortable New England village, is the normal type of human life ; and this is the model city I Armed industry, which tills the corn and vine among the cannons' mouths ; which never forgets . their need, though it may mask and beautify their terror ; but knows that as long as cruelty and wrong exist on earth, man's destiny is to dare and suffer, and, if it must be so, to die. * * * * " Yes, I will face my work ; my danger, if need be. I will find Marie. ' I will tell her that I accept her quest ; not for her sake, but for its own. Only I will demand the right to work at it as I think best, patiently, moderately, wisely if I can ; for a fanatic I cannot be, even for her sake. She may hate these slaveholders, — she may have her reasons, — but I cannot. I cannot deal with them as /eras naturce. I cannot deny that they are no worse men than I ; that I should have done what they are doing, have said what they are saying, had I been bred up, as they have been, with irresponsible power over the souls and bodies of human beings. God 1 I shudder at the fancy 1 The brute that I might have been — that I should have been 1 . " Yes ; one thing at least I have learnt, in all my experi- ments on poor humanity, — never to see a man do a wrong thing, without feeling that I could do the same in his place. I used to pride myself on that once, fool that I was, and call it comprehensiveness. I used to make it an excuse for sitting by, and seeing the devil have it all his own way, and call that toleration. I will see now whether I cannot turn the said knowledge to a better account, as common sense, patience, and charity ; and yet do work of which neither I nor my country need be ashamed." He walked down, and on to the bridge of boats. They opened in the centre ; as he reached it a steamer was pass- ing. He lounged on the rail as the boat passed through, looking carelessly at the groups of tourists. Two ladies were standing on the steamer, close to him, .ST* 438 THE BROAD STONE OP HONOR. looking up at Ehrenbreitstein ^Vas it? — yes, it was Sabina, and Marie by her ! But, ah, how changed I The cheeks were pale and hollow ; dark rings — he could see them but too plainly as the face was lifted up toward the light — were round those great eyes, bright no longer. Her face was listless, careworn ; looking all the more sad and impassive by the side of Sabi- na's, as she pointed, smiling and sparkling up to the fortress, and seemed trying to interest Marie in it, but in vain. He called out. He waved his hand wildly, to the amuse- ment of the oflScers and peasants who waited by his side ; and who, looking first at his excited face, and then at the two beautiful women, were not long in making up theii minds about him ; and had their private jests accordingly. They did not see him, but turned away to look at Cob- lentz ; and ^he^teamer swept-by. ~~ Stangrave stamped with rage — upon a Prussian ofiScer's thin boot. " Ten thousand pardons ! " " You are excused, dear sir, you are excused," says the good-natured German, with a wicked smile, which raises a blush on Stangrave's cheek. " Your eyes were dazzled ; why not ? It is not often that one sees two such suns together in the same sky. But calm yourself; the boat stops at Coblentz." Stangrave could not well call the man of war to account for his impertinence ; he had had his toes half crushed, and had a right to indemnify himself as he thought fit. And, with a hundred more apologies, Stangrave prepared to dart across the bridge as soon as it was closed. Alas ! after the steamer, as the fates would have it, came lumbering down one of those monster timber-rafts ; and it was a full half hour before Stangrave could get across, having sufiered all the while the torments of Tantalus, as he watched the boat sweep round to the pier, and discharge its freight, to be scattered whither he knew not. At last he got across, and went in chase to the nearest hotel ; but they were not there ; thence to the next, and the next, till he had hunted half the hotels in the town ; but hunted all in vain. He is rushing wildly back again, to try if lie can obtain any clue at the steamboat pier, through the narrow, dirty street at the back of the Rhine Cavalier, when he is stopped short by a mighty German embrace, and a German kiss on THE BROAD STONE OF HONOR. 439 either cheek, as the kiss of a housemaid's broom ; wLile a jolly voice shouts in English : — " Ah, my dear, dear friend I and you would pass me 1 Wliither the hangman so fast are you runnLnff in the mud?" " My dear Salomon I But let me go, I beseech ; I am in search — " "In search?" cries the jolly Jew banker, — "for the philosopher's stone ? You had all that man could want a week since, except that. Search no more, but come homn with me ; and we will have a night as of the gods 01 Olympus 1 " " My dearest fellow, I am looking for two ladies I " " Two ? ah, rogue 1 shall not one suflSce ? " " Don't, my dearest fellow 1 I am looking for two Eng- lish ladies." " Potz 1 You shall find two hundred in the hotels, ugly and fair ; but the two fairest are gone this two hours." " When ? — which ? " cries Stangrave, suspecting at once. " Sabina Mellot, and a Sultana — I thought her of The Nation, and would have offered my hand on the spot ; but Madame Mellot says she is a Gentile." " Gone ? And you have seen them ! Where ? " " To Bertrich. They had luncheon with my mother, and then started by private post." " I must follow." " Ach lieber ? But it will be dark in an hour 1 " " What matter ? " " But you shall find them to-morrow just as well as to- day. They stay at Bertrich for a fortnight more. They have been there now a month, and only left it last week for a pleasure tour, across to the Ahrthal, and so back by Andernach." " Why did they leave Coblentz, then, in such hot haste ? " " Ah, the ladies never give reasons. There were letters waiting for them at our house ; and no sooner read, but they leaped up, and would forth. Come home now, and go by the steamer to-morrow morning ! " " Impossible I most hospitable of Israelites." "To go to-night, — for see the clouds 1 Not a postilion will dare to leave Coblentz, under that quick-coming allge' mein und ungeheuer henker-hund-undteiifel's-geuyitkr." t40 THE BROAD STONE OF HOJTOH. Stangrave looked up, growling ; and gave in. A Ubine- storm was rolling up rapidly. " They will be caught in it." "No. They are far beyond its path by now, while you shall endure the whole visitation ; and, if you try to proceed, pass the night in a flea-pestered post-house, or iu a ditch of water." So Stangrave went home with Herr Salomon, and heard from him, amid clouds of Latakia, of wars and rumors of wars, distress of nations, and perplexity, seen by the light, notof the Gospel, but of the stock-exchange ; while the storm fell without in lightning, hail, rain, of right Bhenish potency. CHAPTER XXIV. THE THIETIETH OP SEPTEMBER. We must go back a week or so, to England, and to ttia last day of September. The world is shooting partridges, and asking nervously, when it comes home, what news from the Crimea ? The flesh who serves it is bathing at Margate. The devil is keeping up his usual correspondence with both. Eaton Square is a desolate wilderness, where dusty sparrows alone disturb the dreams of frowzy charwomen, who, like anchorites amid the tombs of the Thebaid, fulfil the contemplative life each in her subterranean cell. Be- neath St. Peter's spire the cabman sleeps within his cab, the horse without ; the waterman, seated on his empty bucket, contemplates the untrodden pavement beneath his feet, and is at rest. The blue butcher's boy trots by, with empty cart, five miles an hour, instead of full fifteen, and stops to chat with the red postman, who, his occupation gone, smokes with the green gatekeeper, and reviles the Czar. Along the whole north pavement of the square only one figure moves, and that is Major Campbell. His face is haggard and anxious ; he walks with a quick, excited step ; earnest enough, whoever else is not. For in front of Lord Scoutbush's house the road is laid with straw. There is sickness there, — anxiety, bitter tears. Lucia has not found her husband, but she has lost her child. Trembling, Campbell raises the muffled knocker, and Bowie appears. " What news to-day ? " he whispers. " As well as can be expected, sir, and as quiet as a lamb nnw, they say. But it has been a bad time, and a bad man is he that caused it." " A bad time, and a bad man. How is Miss St. Just ? " " Just gone to lie down, sir. Miss Clara is on the stairs, if you 'd like to see her." " No ; tell Miss St. Just that I have no news yet." And the colonel turns wearily away. Clara, who has seen him from above, hurries down after 442 THE THIETIETH OF SEPTEMBER. him into the street, and coaxes him to come in. " 1 am sur< you have had no breakfast, sir; and you' look so ill and worn. And Miss St. Just will be so vexed not to see you. She will get up the moment she hears you are here." " No, my good Miss Clara," says Campbell, looking down with a weary smile. " I should only make gloom more gloomy. Bowie, tell his lordship that I shall be at the afternoon train to-morrow, let what will happen." " Ay, ay, sir. We 're a' ready to march. The major looks very ill. Miss Clara. I wish he 'd have taken your counsel. And I wish ye 'd take mine, and marry me ere I march, just to try what it 's like." " I must mind my mistress, Mr. Bowie," says Clara. " And how should I interfere with that, as I 've said twenty times, when I 'm safe in the Crimee ? I '11 get the license this day, say what ye will ; and then ye would not have the heart to let me spend two pounds twelve and six- pence for nothing ? " Whether the last most Caledonian argument conquered or not, Mr. Bowie got the license, was married before break- fast the next morning, and started for the Crimea at four o'clock in the afternoon ; most astonished, as he confided in the train to Sergeant Mac Arthur, " to see a lassie that never gave him a kind word in her life, and had not been married but barely six hours, greet and greet at his going, till she vanished away into hystericals. They 're a very unfathom- able species, sergeant, are they women ; and if they were taken out o' man, they took the best part of Adam wi' them, and left us to shift with the worse." But to return to Campbell. The last week has altered him frightfully. He is no longer the stern, self-possessed warrior which he was : he no longer even walks upright ; his cheek is pale, his eye dull ; his whole countenance sunken together. And now that the excitement of anxiety is past, he draws his feet along the pavement slowly, his hands clasped behind him, his eyes fixed on the ground, as if the life was gone from out of him, and existence was a weight, " She is safe, at least, then ! One burden ofl" my mind. And yet had it not been better if that pure spirit had returned to Him who gave it, instead of waking again to fresh misery ? I must find that man I Why, I have been saying so to myself for seven days past, and yet no ray of light. Can the coward have given me a wrong address f Vet why give me an address at all, if he meant to hidefrons THE THIRTIETH OP SEPTEMBER. 443 Die ? Why, I have been saying that to myself every day for the last week I Over and over again the same dreary round of possibilities and suspicions. However, I must be quiet now, if I am a man. I can hear nothing before the detective comes at two. How to pass the weary, weary time ? For I am past thinking, — almost past praying, — though not quite, thank God ! " He paces up still noisy Piccadilly, and then up silent Bond- street ; pauses to look at some strange fish on Groves's coun- ter — anything to while away the time ; then he plods on toward the top of the street, and turns into Mr. Pillischer's shop, and up stairs to the microscopic club-room. There, at least, he can forget himself for an hour. He looks round the neat, pleasant little place, with its cases of curiosities, and its exquisite photographs, and bright brass instruments ; its glass vases stocked with delicate water-plants and animalcules, with the sunlight gleaming through the green and purple seaweed fronds, while the air is fresh and fragrant with the seaweed scent ; a quiet, cool little hermitage of science amid that great, noisy, luxurious west-end world. At least, it brings back to him the thought of the summer sea, and Aberalva, and his shore- studies ; but he cannot think of that any more. It is past ; and may God forgive him I At one of the microscopes on the slab opposite him stands a sturdy-bearded man, his back toward the major ; while the wise little German, hopeless of customers, is leaning over him in his shirt-sleeves. " But I never have seen its like ; it had just like a paint- er's easel in its stomach yesterday I " " Why, it 's an Echinus Larva ; a sucking sea-urchin I Hang it, if I had known you had n't seen one, I 'd have brought up half a dozen of them I " " May I look, sir?" asked the major; "I, too, never have seen an Echinus Larva.'' T-he_beardedjnan looks^up— " Major_Oampbell ! " " Mr. Thurnall ? I thought I could not be mistaken in the voice." " This is too pleasant, sir, to renew our watery loves together here," said Tom ; but a second look at the major's face showed him that he was in no jesting mood. " How is the party at Beddgelert ? I fancied you with them Btill." 444 THE THIRTIETH OF SEPTEMBER. " They are all in London, at Lord Scoutbush's house, it Eaton Sqjare." " In London, at this dull time ? I trust that nothing un- pleasant has brought them here." "Mrs. Vavasour is very ill. We had thoughts of send- ing for you, as the family physician was out of town ; but she was out of danger, thank God, in a few hours. Now let me ask in turn after you. I hope no unpleasant busi- ness brings you up three hundred miles from your prac- tice ? " " Nothing, I assure you. Only I have given up my Abe- ralva practice. I am going to the East." " Like the rest of the world." " Not exactly. You go as a dignified soldier of her Majesty's ; I as an undignified Abel Drugger, to dose Bashi- Bazouks." "Impossible! and with such an opening as you had there 1 You must excuse me ; but my opinion of your pru- dence must not be so rudely shaken." " Why do you not ask the question which Balzac's old Tourangeois asks, whenever a culprit is brought before him, — ' Who is she ? ' " " Taking for granted that there was a woman at the bot- tom of every mishap ? I understand you," said the major, with a sad smile. " Now, let you and I walk a little to- gether, and look at the Echinoid another day — or when I return item Sevastopol. " — Tom went out with him. A new ray of hope had crossed the major's mind. His meeting with Thurnall might be providential ; for he recollected now, for the first time, Mellot's parting hint. " You knew Elsley Vavasour well ? " " No man better." " Did you think that there was any tendency to madness in him ? " " No more than in any other selfish, vain, irritable man with a strong imagination left to run riot." " Humph I you seem to have divined his character. May I ask if you knew him before you met him at Abe- ralva ? " Tom looked up sharply in the major's face. " You would ask, what cause I have for inquiring ? I will tell you presently. Meanwhile I may say, that Mellot told me frankly that you had some power over him ; and THE THIRTIETH OP SEPTEMBER. 446 menticE ed, mysteriously, a name — John^riggs^I thiuk — _ which it appears that he ODCe assume321., ^ " If Mellot thOTigEt fit io tell you anything, I may frankly tell you all. John Briggs is his real name. I have known him from childhood." And then Tom poured into the ears of the surprised and somewhat disgusted major all he bad to tell. " You have kept your secret mercifully, and used it wisely, sir ; and I and others shall be always your debtors for it. Now I dare tell you, in turn, in strictest confidence of C0'JT93 — " " I am too poor to afford the luxury of babbling." And the major told him what we all knew. " I expected as much," said he, dryly. " Now, I sup- pose that you wish me to exert myself in finding the man ? " " I do." " Were Mrs. Vavasour only concerned, I should say — Not I ! Better that she should never set eyes on him again." "Better, indeed!" said he, bitterly; "but it is I who must see him, if but for five minutes. I must I " " Major Campbell's wish is a command. Where have you searched for him f " " At his address, at his publisher's, at the houses of vari- ous literary friends of his, and yet no trace." " Has he gone to the Continent ! " " Heaven knows ! I have inquired at every passport office for news of any one answering his description ; indeed, I have two detectives, I may tell you, at this moment, watching every possible place. There is but one hope, if he be alive. Can he have gone home to his native town ? " " Never 1 Anywhere but there ! " "Is there^Myjjld friend of_the-lo-wer class with whom he may have taken Lodgings ? " Tom^ndered. "There was a fellow, a noisy blackguard, whom Briggs was asking after this very summer — a fellow who went off from Whitbury with some players. I know Briggs used to' go to the theatre with him as a boy — what was his name ? He tried acting, but did not succeed ; and then became a scene-shifter, or something of the kind, at the Adelphi.' He has some complaint, I forget what, which made him an out-patient at St. Mumpsimus's, some months every year F know that he was there this Rummer for I wrote to ask 38 446 THE THIRTIETH OF SEPTEMBEK. Bt Briggs's request, and Briggs sent him a sovereign through me." " But what makes you fancy that he can have taken shel- ter with such a man, and one who knows his secret ? " " It is but a chance ; but he may have done it from the mere feeling of loneliness — just to hold by some one whom he knows in this great wilderness ; especially a man in whose eyes he will be a great man, and to whom he hap done a kindness ; still it is the merest chance." "We will take it, nevertheless, forlorn hope though it be." They took a cab to the hospital, and, with some trouble, got the man's name and address, and drove in search of him. They had some difficulty in finding his abode, for it was up an alley at the back of Drury Lane, in the top of one of those foul old houses which hold a family in every room ; but, by dint of knocking at one door and the other, and bearing meekly much reviling consequent thereon, they arrived, "per modum tollendi," at a door which must be the right one, as all the rest were wrong. " Does J®lm_JBarker live here ? " asked Thurnall, put- ting his head in cautiously for fear of drunken Irishmen who might be seized with the national impulse to " slate " him. "What's that to you?" answers a shrill voice from among soapsuds and steaming rags. "Here is a gentleman wants to speak to him." " So do a many as won't have that pleasure, and would be little the bettei for it if they had. Get along with you ; I knows your laj ." " We really want to speak to him, and to pay him, if he will — " " Go along ! I 'm up to the something-to-your-advantage dodge, and to the mustachio dodge too. Do you fancy I don't know a bailiff, because he 's dressed like a swell ? " " But, my good woman I " said Tom, laughing. " You put your crocodile foot in here, and I '11 hit the hot water over the both of you ! " and she caught up the pan of soapsuds. " My dear soul 1 I am a doctor belonging to the hospital which your husband goes to ; and have known him since he was a boy, down in Berkshire." " You ? " and she looked keenly at him. " My name is Thurnall. I was a medical man once in Whitbury, where your husband was bom " THE THIRTIETH OP SEPTEMBEE. 447 "Tou ? " said she again, in a softened tone. " I knows tLat name well enough." " You do. What was your name, then ? " said Tom, Who recognized the woman's Berkshire accent beneath its coat of cockneyism. " Never you mind ; I 'm no credit to it, so I '11 let it be. But come in, for the old county's sake. Can't offer you a chair, he 's pawned 'em all. Pleasant old place it was down there, when I was a young girl ; they say its grow'd a grand place now, wi' a railroad. I think many times I 'd like to go down and die there." She spoke in a rough, sullen, careless tone, as if life-weary. " My good woman," said Major Campbell, a little impa- tiently, "can you find your husband for us ? " " Why, then ? " asked she, sharply ; her suspicion seem- ing to return. "If he will answer a few questions, I will give him five shillings. If he can find out for me what I want, I will give him five pounds." " Should n't I do as well ? If you gi' it he, it 's little out of it I shall see, but he coming home tipsy when it 's spent. Ah, dear ! it was a sad day for me when I first fell in with they play-goers ! " " Why should she not do it as well ? " said Thurnall. " Mrs. Barker, do you know anything of a person named Briggs — John Briggs, the apothecary's son, at Whit- bury ? " She laughed a harsh, bitter laugh. " Know he ? yes, and too much reason. That was where it all begun, along of that play-going of he 's and my mas- ter's." " Have you seen him, lately ? " asked Campbell, eagerly. " I seen 'un ? I 'd hit this water over the fellow, and all his play-acting merryandrews, if ever he sot a foot here 1 " " But have you heard of him ? " " Ees," said she, carelessly; "he's round here now, I heard my master say, about the 'Delphy, with my master ; a drinking, I suppose. No good, I '11 warrant." " My good woman," said Campbell, panting for breath, "bring me face, to faeewith that- man, and^I '11 put afiye^ pound note in your hand there and then." " Five pounds is a sight to me ; but it 's a sight more than the sight of he's worth," said she, suspiciously, again. " That 's tiie gentleman's concern," said Tom. " Tha 448 THE THIRTIETH OP SEPTEMBER. mouey's yours. I suppose you know the worth of it hj now ? " " Ees, none better. But I don't want he to get hold of it ; he 's made away with enough already ; " and she began to think. " Curiously impassive people, we Wessex worthies, when we are a little ground down with trouble. You must givG her time, and she will do our work. She wants the money, but she is long past being excited at the prospect of it." " What 's that you 're whispering ? " asked she, sharply. Campbell stamped with impatience. "You don't trust us yet, eh? — then, there I " and he took five sovereigns from his pocket, and tossed them on the table. " There 's your money ! I trust you to do the work, as you 've been paid beforehand." She caught up the gold, rang every piece on the table to see if it was sound ; and then — " Sally, you go down with these gentlemen to the Jon- son's Head, and, if he be n't there, go to the Fighting Cocks ; and, if he be n't there, go to the Duke of Welling- ton ; and tell he there 's two gentlemen has heard of his poetry, and wants to hear 'un excite. And then you give he a glass of liquor, and praise up his nonsense, and he '11 tell you all he knows, and a sight more. Gi' un plenty .to drink. It '11 be a saving and charity ; for, if he don't get it out of you, he will out of me." And she returned doggedly to her washing. " Can't I do anything for you ? " asked Tom, whose heart always yearned over a Berkshire soul. " I have plenty of friends down at Whitbury, still.'" " More than I have. No, sir," said she, sadly, and with the first touch of sweetness they had yet heard ia her voice. " I 've cured my own bacon, and I must eat it. There 's none down there minds me, but them that would be ashamed of me. And I could n't go without he, and they would take he in ; so I must just bide." And she went on washing. " God help her I " said Campbell, as he went down stairs. " Misery breeds that temper, and only misery, in out people. I can show you as thorough gentlemen and ladies, people round Whitbury, living on ten shillings a week, as you will show me in Belgravia living on five thousand a year." " I don't doubt it," said Campbell. . . "So ' she THB THIKTIETH OF SEPTEMBER. 449 couldn't go without he,' drunken dog as he is ! Thus it is ^^^ith them all the world over." " So much the worse for them," said Tom, cynically, " and for the men, too. They make fools of us first with our over-fondness of them ; and then they let us make fools of ourselves with their over-fondness of us." " I fancy, sometimes, that they were all meant to be the mates of angels, and stooped to men as npisaller ; revers- ing the old story of the sons of heaven, and the daughters of men." " And accounting for the present degeneracy. When the sons of heaven married the daughters of men, their offspring were giants, and men of renown. Now the sons of men marry the daughters of heaven, and the offspring is Wiggle, Waggle, Windbag, and Red-tape." They visited one public-house after another, till the girl found for them the man they wanted, a shabby, sodden- visaged fellow, with a would-be-jaunty air of conscious shrewdness and vanity, who stood before the bar, his thumbs in his armholes, and laying down the law to a group of coster-boys, for want of better audience. The girl, after sundry plucks at his coat-tail, stopped him In the midst of his oration, and explained her errand some- what fearfully. Mr. Barker bent down his head on one side, to signify that he was absorbed in attention to her news ; and then drawing himself up once more, lifted his greasy hat high ic air, bowed to the very floor, and broke forth : " Most potent, grave, and reverend signiors : A man of war, and eke a man of peace — That is, if you come peaceful ; and if not, Have we not Hiren here? " And the fellow put himself into a fresh attitude. " We come in peace, my good sir," said Tom ; "first to listen to your talented effusions, and next for a little private conversation on a subject on which — " but Mr. Barker iaterrupted, — " To listen, and to drink ? The muse is dry. And Pegasus doth thirst for Hippoorene, And fain would paint — imbibe the vulgar call— Or hot or cold, or long or short — Attendant ' " The bar girl, who knew his humor, came forward. 38* 450 THE THIRTIETH OF SEPTEMBER. " Glasses all rovrnd — these noble knights will pay — Of hottest hot, and stiffest str£ Thou mark'st me? Now to your quest ! ' ' And he faced round with a third attitude. " Do you know Mr. Briggs ?" asked the straight-forward major. He rolled his eyes to every quarter of the seventh sphere, clapped his hand upon his heart, and assumed an expression of angelic gratitude, — " My benefactor ! Were the world a waste, A thistle-waste, ass-nibbled, goldfinch-pecked. And all the men and women merdy asses, I still could lay this hand upon this heart. And cry, ' Not yet alone ! I know a man — A man Jove-fronted, and Hyperion-curled — A gushing, flushing, blushing human heart ! ' " " As sure as you live, sir," said Tom, " if you won't talk honest prose, I won't pay for the brandy and water." " Base is the slave who pays, and baser prose — Hang uninspired patter ! 'T is in verse That angels praise, and fiends in Limbo curse." " And asses bray, I think," said Tom, in despair. " Tkt you know where Mr. Briggs is now ? " " And why the devil do you want to know ? For that 's a verse, sir, although somewhat slow." The two men laughed in spite of themselves. " Better tell the fellow the plain truth," said Campbell to Thurnall. " Come out with us, and I will tell you." And Campbell threw down the money, and led him off, after he had gulped down his own brandy, and half Tom's beside. " What ? leave the nepenthe untasted ? " They took him out, and he tucked his arms through theirs, and strutted down Drury Lane. " The fact is, sir, — I speak to you, of course, in confi- dence, as one gentleman to another — " Mr. Barker replied by a lofty and gracious bow. " That his family are exceedingly distressed at his ab- sence, and his wife, who, as-you may know, is a lady of high family, dangerously ill ; and he cannot be aware of the fact. This g-entleman is the medical man of her family, ar i THE THIRTIETH OF SEPTEMBER. 451 I — I ftm an intimate friend. "We should esteem it, there- fore, the very greatest service if you would give us any information which — '' " Weep no more, gentle shepherds, weep no more : For Lyoidas your sorrow is not dead, Sunk though he be upon a garret floor, With fumes of Morpheus' crown about his head." " Fumes of Morpheus's crown ? " asked Thurnall. " That crimson flower which crowns the sleepy god. And sweeps the soul aloft, though flesh may nod." " He has taken to opium ! " said Thurnall, to the bewil- dered major. " What I should have expected." " God help him ! We must save him out of that last, lowest deep 1 " cried Campbell. " Where is he, sir ? " " A vow ! a TOW ! I have a vow in heaven ! Why guide the hounds toward the trembling hare 7 Our Adonais hath drunk poison ; ! What deaf and viperous murderer could crown Life's early cup with such a draught of woe ? " " As I live, sir," cried Campbell, losing his self-possession in disgust at the fool ; "you may rhyme your own nonsense as long as you will, but you shan't quote the Adonais about that fellow in my presence." Mr. Barker shook himself fiercely free of Campbell's arm, and faced round at him in a fighting attitude. Campbell stood eying him sternly, but at his wit's end. " Mr. Barker," said Tom, blandly, " will you have another glass of brandy and water, or shall I call a policeman ? " "Sir," sputtered he, speaking prose at last, "this gen- tleman has insulted me I He has called my poetry nonsense, and my friend a fellow. And blood shall not wipe out — what liquor may ! " The hint was sufficient ; but, ere he had drained another glass, Mr. Barker was decidedly incapable of managing his affairs, much less theirs ; and became withal exceedingly quarrelsome, returning angrily to the grievance of Briggs having been called a fellow. In spite of all their entreaties, he talked himself into a passion, and at last, to Campbells extreme disgust, rushed out of the bar into the street. " This is too vexatious 1 To have kept half-an-hour'a company with such an animal, and then to have him escape 452 THE THIRTIETH OF SEPTEMBER. me aftei all 1 A just punishment on me for pandering to ]\\t drunkenness." Tom made no answer, but went quietly to the door, and peeped out. " Pay for his liquor, major, and follow. Keep a few yards behind me ; there will be less chance of his recognizing us than if he saw us both together." " Why, where do you think he 's going ? " " Not home, I can see. Ten to one that he will go raging off straight to Briggs, to put him on his guard against us. Just like a drunkard's cunning it would be. There, he has turned up that side street. Now follow me quick. that he may only keep his legs ! " They gained the bottom of that street before he had turned out of it ; and so through another, and another, till they ran him to earth in one of the courts out of St. Mar- tin's Lane. Into a doorway he went, and up a stair. Tom stood listening at the bottom, till he heard the fellow knock at a door far above, and call out in a drunken tone. Then he beckoned to Campbell, and both, careless of what might fol- low, ran up stairs, and, pushing him aside, entered the room without ceremony. Their chances of being on the right scent were small enough, considering that, though every one was out of town, there were a million and a half of people in London at that moment ; and, unfortunately, at least fifty thousand who would have considered Mr. John Barker a desirable visitor ; but somehow, in the excitement of the chase, both had forgotten the chances against them, and the probability that they would have to retire down stairs again, apolo- gizing humbly to some wrathful Joseph Buggins, whose convivialities they might have interrupted. But no ; Tom's cunning had, as usual, played him true ; and, as they en- tered the door, they beheld none other than the lost Elsley Vavasour, alias John Briggs. Major Campbell advanced, bowing, hat in hand, with a courteous apology on his lips. It was a low lean-to garret ; there was a deal table and an old chair in it, but no bed. The windows were broken ; the paper hanging down in strips. Elsley was standing before the empty fire-place, his hand in his bosom, as if hfe had been startled by the scuffle outside. He had not Ehaved for some days. So much Tom could note ; but no more. He saw tlw THE THIRTIETH OF SEPTEMBER. 453 glance of recognition pass over Elsley's face, and that an ugly one. He saw him draw something from his bosom, and spring like a cat almost upon the table. A flash — a crack I He had fired a pistol full in Campbell's face ! Tom was startled, not at the thing, but that such a man should have done it. He had seen souls, and too many, flit out of the world by that same tiny crack, in California taverns, Arabian deserts, Australian gullies. He knew all about that : but he liked Campbell ; and he breathed more freely the next moment, when he saw him standing still erect, a quiet smile on his face, and felt the plaster dropping from the wall upon his. own head. The bullet had gone over the major. All was right. " He is not man enough for a second shot," thought Tom, quietly, " While the major's eye is on him." " I beg your pardon, Mr. Vavasour," he heard the major say, in a gentle, unmoved voice, " for this intrusion. I assure you that there is no cause for any anger on your part ; and I am come to entreat you to forget and forgive any conduct of mine which may have caused you to mistake either me or a lady whom I am unworthy to mention." "I am glad the beggar fired at him," thought Tom. " One spice of danger, and he 's himself again, and will overawe the poor cur by mere civility. I was afraid of some abject Methodist parson humility, which would have given the other party a handle." Elsley heard him with a stupefied look, like that of a trapped wild beast, in which rage, shame, suspicion, and fear, were mingled with the vacant glare of the opium-eater's eye. Then his eye drooped beneath Campbell's steady, gen- tle gaze, and he looked uneasily round the room, still like a trapped wild beast, as if for a hole to escape by ; then up again, but sidelong, at Major Campbell. " I assure you, sir, on the word of a Christian and a sol- dier, that you are laboring under an entire misapprehension. For God's sake, and Mrs. Vavasour's sake, come back, sir, to those who will receive you with nothing but affection ! Your wife has been all but dead ; she thinks of no one but you, asks for no one but you. In God's name, sir, what are you doing here, while a wife who adores you is dying from your — I do not wish to be rude, sir, but let me say at least — neglect ? " Elsley looked at him still askance, puzzled, inquiring. Suddenly his great, beautiful eyes opened to preternatural vnldness, as if trying to grasp a new thought. He started, <54 THE THIETIETH OF SEPTEMBEB. ehifted hie feet to and fro, his arms straight down by his sides, his fingers clutching after something. Then he looked up hurriedly again at Campbell ; and Thurnall looked at him also ; and his face was as the face of an angel. " Miserable ass ! " thought Tom ; " if he don't see inno- cence in that man's countenance, he would n't see it in his own child's." Elsley suddenly turned his back to them, and thrust bis hand into his bosom. Now was Tom's turn. In a moment he had vaulted over the table and seized Elsley's wrist, ere he could draw the second pistol. " No, my dear Jack," whispered he, quietly, " once is enough in a day I " " Not for him, Tom — for myself! " moaned Elsley. "For neither, dear ladl Let bygones be bygones, and do you be a new man, and go home to Mrs. Vavasour." "Never, never, never, never, never, never ! " shrieked Elsley, like a baby, every word increasing in intensity, till the whole house rang ; and then threw himself into the crazy chair, and dashed his head between his hands upon the table. " This is a case for me. Major Campbell. I think you had better go now." " You will not leave him ? " " No, sir. It is a very curious psychological study, and he is a Whitbury man." Campbell knew quite enough of the would-be cynical doctor to understand what all that meant. He came up to Elsley. " Mr. Vavasour, I am going to the war, from which I expect never to return. If you believe me, give me your hand before I go." Elsley, without lifting his head, beat on the table with his hand. " I wish Jodie at. peace ydiix you andall the world. I am innocent in word, in thought. I shall not insult another person^byBaying that she is'so. If you believe me, give me your hand." Elsley stretched his hand, his head still buried. Gamp< bell took it, and went silently down stairs. " Is he gone ? " moaned he, after a while. "Yes." " Does she — does she care for him ? " "Good heavens! How did you ev«r dream such an absurdity? " THE THIRTIETH OP SEPTEMBER. 456 Ekley only beat upon the table. " She has been ill ? " " Is ill. She has lost her child." " Which ? " shrieked Elsley. " A boy whom she should have had." Elsley only beat on the table ; then — *' Give me the bottle, Tom ! " " What bottle ? " " The laudanum ; there in the cupboard." " I shall do no such thing. You are poisoning yourself." " Let me, then ! I must, I tell you 1 I can live on noth ing else I I shall go mad if I do not have it I I should aave been mad by now. Nothing else keeps off these fits ; I feel one coming now ! Curse you I give me the bottle I " " What fits ? " " How do I know ? Agony and torture, ever since I got wet on that mountain." Tom knew enough to guess his meaning, and felt Elsley's pulse and forehead. " I tell you it turns every bone to red-hot iron 1 " almost screamed he. " Neuralgia ; rheumatic, I suppose," said Tom, to him- self. " Well, this is not the thing to cure you ; but you shall have it to keep you quiet." And he measured him out a small dose. "More, I tell you, morel" said Elsley, lifting up his head, and looking at it. " Not more while you are with me." " With you ! Who the devil sent you here ? " "John Briggs I John Briggs ! if I did not mean you good, should I be here now ? Now do, like a reasonable man, tell me what you intend to do." " What is that to you, or any man 1 " said Elsley, writh- ing with neuralgia. " No concern of mine, of course ; but your poor wife — you must see her." " I can't 1 I won't ! — that is, not yet ! I tell you I can- not face thb thought of her, much less the sight of her, and her family, — that Valencia ! I 'd rather the earth should open and swallow me ! Don't talk to me, I say ! " And, hiding his face in his hands, he writhed with pain, while Thurnall stood still, patiently watching him, as a pointer dog does a partridge. He had found his game, and did not intend to lose it. " I am better, now ; quite well 1 " said he, as the lauda- 456 THE THIRTIETH OF SEPTEMBEB. iium began to work. " Yes ! I '11 go — that will be it — go to * * * * at once. He '11 give me an order for a magazine article ; I '11 earn ten pounds, and then ofifto Italy." " If you want ten pounds, my good fellow, you can have them without racking your brains over an article." Elsley looked up proudly. "I do not borrow, sir 1 " "Well — I '11 give you five for those pistols. They are of no use to you, and I shall want a spare brace for the East." "Ahl I forgot them. I spent my last money on them," said he with a shudder ; but I won't sell them to you at a fancy price — no dealings between gentleman and gentleman. I '11 go to a shop, and get for them what they are worth." " Very good. I '11 go with you, if you like. I fancy I may got you a better price for them than you would your- self; being rather a knowing one about the pretty little bark- ers." And Tom took his arm, and walked him quietly down into the street. "If you ever go up those kennel-stairs again, friend," said he to himself, " my name 's not Tom Thurnall." They walked to a gunsmith's shop in the Strand, where Tom had often dealt, and sold the pistols for some three pounds. "Now then let's go into 333, and get a mutton-chop." "No." Elsley was too shy ; he was " not fit to be seen." " Come to my rooms, then, in the Adelphi, and have a wash and a shave. It will make you as fresh as a lark again, and then we '11 send out for the eatables, and have a quiet chat." Elsley did not say no. Thurnall took the thing as a mat- ter of course, and he was too weak and tired to argue with him. Beside, there was a sort of relief in the company of a man who, though he knew all, chatted on to him cheerily and quietly, as if nothing had happened ; who at least treated him as a sane man. From any one else he would have shrunk, lest they should find him out ; but a companion, who knew the worst, at least saved him suspicion and dread. His weakness, now that the collapse after passion had come on, clung to any human friend. The very sound of Tom's clear sturdy voice seemed pleasant to him, after long solitude and silence. At least it kept off the fiends of memory. Tom, anxious to keep Elsley's mind employed on some subject which should not be painful, began chatting about the war and its prospects. Elsley soon caught the cue, THE THIRTIETH OP SEPTEMBER. 451 and talked with wild energy and pathos, opiam-fed, of the coming struggle between despotism and liberty, the arising of Poland and Hungary, and all the grand dreams which then haunted minds like his. •'By Jove! " said Tom, "you are yourself again now Why don't you put all that into a book ? " " I may perhaps," said Elsley proudly. " And if it comes to that, why not come to the war, an